Selected quad for the lemma: soul_n

Word A Word B Word C Word D Occurrence Frequency Band MI MI Band Prominent
soul_n body_n eternal_a spirit_n 5,952 5 5.0650 4 false
View all documents for the selected quad

Text snippets containing the quad

ID Title Author Corrected Date of Publication (TCP Date of Publication) STC Words Pages
A75460 The comfort of the soul laid down by way of meditation upon some heads of Christian religion, very profitable for every true Christian. Composed and written by Iohn Anthony of London Doctor of Physick. Anthony, John, 1585-1655. 1654 (1654) Wing A3479; Thomason E739_1; ESTC R207006 271,347 376

There are 50 snippets containing the selected quad. | View original text

he_o smite_v he_o with_o his_o sword_n and_o he_o die_v 29._o die_v 2_o sam._n 13._o 28_o 29._o thus_o treacherous_o do_v absalon_n kill_v his_o brother_n amnon_n when_o he_o invite_v he_o to_o a_o feast_n in_o his_o own_o house_n the_o disciple_n do_v little_o think_v that_o judas_n betray_v his_o master_n when_o he_o come_v and_o salute_v he_o with_o a_o kiss_n but_o christ_n know_v it_o who_o be_v the_o searcher_n of_o all_o heart_n and_o none_o but_o he_o can_v know_v it_o for_o he_o know_v what_o he_o have_v do_v with_o the_o ruler_n what_o compact_n and_o bargain_n he_o have_v make_v with_o they_o and_o what_o he_o do_v further_a purpose_n and_o intend_v to_o do_v and_o therefore_o he_o say_v unto_o he_o 4●_n he_o luke_n 22._o 4●_n judas_z betray_v thou_o the_o son_n of_o man_n with_o a_o kiss_n thus_o say_v a_o reverend_a divine_a it_o be_v a_o special_a cunning_n of_o the_o devil_n and_o it_o be_v full_a of_o danger_n to_o put_v a_o smile_a and_o a_o allure_a countenance_n upon_o his_o bait_n as_o he_o do_v by_o his_o temptation_n of_o profit_n and_o gain_v which_o like_o unseen_a bullet_n wound_n and_o kill_v before_o they_o be_v discern_v or_o like_o the_o viper_n that_o put_v we_o to_o no_o pain_n bring_v we_o into_o a_o please_a slumber_n of_o security_n which_o end_v in_o the_o dead_a sleep_n of_o death_n and_o condemnation_n for_o prosperity_n and_o worldly_a allurement_n hide_v hostility_n under_o the_o pretence_n of_o friendship_n and_o make_v we_o love_v the_o weapon_n that_o hurt_v we_o and_o to_o refuse_v the_o mean_n whereby_o we_o may_v be_v cure_v and_o these_o make_v conquest_n not_o only_o of_o our_o power_n and_o strength_n but_o also_o of_o our_o heart_n will_n and_o affection_n and_o they_o retain_v we_o in_o a_o voluntary_a servitude_n have_v no_o desire_n to_o come_v out_o of_o this_o please_a bondage_n or_o to_o recover_v our_o liberty_n though_o the_o mean_n be_v offer_v to_o we_o this_o be_v the_o policy_n and_o subtle_a cunning_n of_o the_o devil_n to_o beguile_v poor_a soul_n with_o such_o fair_a pretence_n for_o in_o their_o smile_n and_o fawn_n he_o do_v secret_o attempt_v their_o ruin_n and_o destruction_n consider_v further_o 8._o further_o mat._n 10._o 1_o 8._o that_o when_o jesus_n send_v forth_o his_o twelve_o disciple_n to_o preach_v he_o give_v unto_o they_o all_o power_n against_o unclean_a spirit_n to_o cast_v they_o out_o to_o heal_v all_o manner_n of_o sickness_n and_o all_o manner_n of_o disease_n to_o cleanse_v the_o leper_n and_o to_o raise_v the_o dead_a they_o have_v free_o receive_v these_o gift_n of_o he_o and_o therefore_o they_o shall_v free_o dispense_v they_o judas_n have_v the_o same_o power_n and_o receive_v the_o same_o gift_n with_o the_o rest_n of_o the_o disciple_n but_o because_o his_o heart_n be_v not_o season_v with_o sanctify_a grace_n though_o he_o do_v cure_v other_o yet_o he_o can_v not_o cure_v himself_o and_o though_o 29._o though_o 1_o cor._n 9_o 29._o he_o do_v preach_v to_o other_o yet_o he_o himself_o be_v a_o castaway_n he_o have_v the_o gift_n of_o preach_v but_o not_o the_o grace_n of_o preach_v he_o have_v faith_n to_o work_v miracle_n but_o not_o the_o grace_n of_o faith_n unto_o justification_n and_o to_o rest_n and_o confide_v in_o christ_n for_o his_o salvation_n these_o gift_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n be_v sometime_o give_v to_o unregenerate_a man_n and_o yet_o they_o be_v no_o whit_n near_o to_o the_o kingdom_n of_o heaven_n wherefore_o let_v no_o man_n rest_v secure_a of_o his_o salvation_n because_o he_o have_v such_o excellent_a gift_n for_o except_o the_o holy_a ghost_n do_v confer_v sanctify_v grace_n with_o his_o gift_n they_o will_v not_o be_v effectual_a to_o salvation_n we_o may_v have_v the_o gift_n of_o prayer_n of_o temperance_n of_o continency_n of_o patience_n and_o of_o all_o moral_a virtue_n and_o yet_o if_o we_o have_v not_o the_o grace_n of_o prayer_n that_o we_o can_v pray_v in_o faith_n and_o the_o grace_n of_o all_o other_o virtue_n as_o be_v the_o fruit_n of_o faith_n they_o will_v not_o be_v acceptable_a to_o god_n nor_o profitable_a to_o we_o for_o the_o salvation_n of_o our_o soul_n wherefore_o if_o god_n have_v give_v we_o the_o gift_n of_o his_o spirit_n and_o the_o mean_n of_o grace_n we_o ought_v to_o use_v his_o gift_n to_o his_o glory_n and_o to_o improve_v the_o mean_n of_o grace_n for_o the_o sanctify_a of_o his_o gift_n unto_o we_o that_o we_o may_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d to_o eternal_a life_n let_v this_o be_v our_o daily_a study_n and_o constant_a care_n to_o enrich_v our_o soul_n with_o true_a save_a grace_n and_o then_o the_o devil_n can_v so_o easy_o undermine_v we_o and_o we_o shall_v be_v so_o watchful_a over_o our_o way_n that_o no_o iniquity_n shall_v cleave_v to_o our_o soul_n for_o if_o the_o devil_n can_v fasten_v any_o one_o sin_n upon_o we_o he_o will_v soon_o link_v another_o sin_n to_o that_o and_o will_v draw_v we_o on_o from_o sin_n to_o sin_n until_o they_o make_v a_o strong_a chain_n which_o will_v pull_v we_o down_o into_o the_o pit_n of_o destruction_n unless_o we_o break_v every_o link_n of_o this_o chain_n with_o true_a repentance_n also_o if_o we_o be_v thus_o watchful_a it_o will_v keep_v we_o from_o security_n and_o from_o presume_v upon_o our_o own_o strength_n in_o time_n or_o place_n of_o danger_n 37._o danger_n psa_fw-la 119._o 37._o and_o we_o shall_v turn_v our_o eye_n from_o behold_v vanity_n and_o refuse_v the_o false_a favour_n which_o the_o world_n do_v promise_v we_o for_o the_o fear_n of_o god_n will_v be_v always_o before_o our_o eye_n and_o then_o we_o may_v be_v confident_a 11_o confident_a psa_fw-la 91._o 11_o that_o god_n will_v give_v his_o angel_n charge_v over_o we_o to_o keep_v we_o in_o all_o our_o way_n lest_o at_o any_o time_n we_o dash_v our_o foot_n against_o a_o stone_n or_o lest_o we_o stumble_v at_o those_o block_n which_o the_o devil_n lay_v in_o our_o way_n 41._o way_n mat._n 26._o 41._o christ_n have_v command_v we_o to_o watch_v and_o pray_v that_o we_o enter_v not_o into_o temptation_n 13._o temptation_n eph._n 6._o 13._o and_o he_o have_v give_v we_o spiritual_a armour_n and_o weapon_n of_o defence_n which_o we_o must_v take_v unto_o ourselves_o that_o we_o may_v be_v able_a to_o resist_v in_o the_o evil_a day_n let_v we_o learn_v 5._o learn_v psa_fw-la 58._o 5._o the_o wisdom_n of_o the_o serpent_n by_o stop_v our_o ear_n against_o their_o charm_a persuasion_n and_o by_o suspect_v most_o their_o malicious_a attempt_n when_o with_o great_a show_n of_o love_n they_o smile_v and_o fawn_v upon_o we_o we_o must_v now_o consider_v by_o the_o example_n of_o judas_n that_o unless_o the_o spirit_n of_o god_n do_v accompany_v the_o use_n of_o all_o his_o holy_a ordinance_n we_o may_v outward_o partake_v of_o they_o but_o we_o shall_v not_o inward_o be_v edify_v by_o they_o neither_o shall_v we_o find_v any_o spiritual_a consolation_n in_o the_o use_n of_o they_o because_o there_o be_v no_o efficacious_a work_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n in_o our_o heart_n the_o outward_a man_n may_v be_v affect_v for_o the_o present_a but_o the_o inward_a man_n can_v be_v edify_v for_o there_o will_v be_v no_o illumination_n wrought_v in_o the_o understanding_n to_o conceive_v right_o of_o heavenly_a thing_n no_o true_a conformity_n in_o the_o will_n to_o the_o will_n of_o god_n no_o holy_a zeal_n in_o the_o heart_n and_o affection_n and_o no_o pious_a reformation_n will_v be_v wrought_v in_o the_o life_n and_o conversation_n 2._o conversation_n 2_o the_o 〈◊〉_d 2._o all_o man_n have_v not_o faith_n as_o say_v the_o apostle_n all_o man_n do_v not_o profit_v by_o the_o mean_n of_o salvation_n and_o all_o man_n be_v not_o edify_v by_o the_o preach_n of_o the_o word_n of_o god_n we_o may_v join_v with_o the_o congregation_n in_o hear_v in_o pray_v in_o sing_v of_o psalm_n some_o shall_v receive_v comfort_n and_o instruction_n other_o shall_v receive_v no_o benefit_n thereby_o we_o may_v also_o partake_v with_o they_o in_o the_o lord_n supper_n and_o we_o may_v feed_v our_o body_n with_o the_o outward_a element_n in_o that_o sacrament_n but_o we_o shall_v never_o feed_v and_o nourish_v our_o soul_n to_o eternal_a life_n with_o that_o spiritual_a grace_n which_o be_v signify_v by_o they_o except_o our_o heart_n be_v prepare_v to_o receive_v it_o through_o the_o sanctification_n of_o the_o spirit_n we_o may_v eat_v and_o drink_v the_o bread_n and_o wine_n but_o we_o can_v eat_v and_o drink_v the_o body_n and_o blood_n of_o christ_n but_o only_o by_o faith_n our_o soul_n may_v languish_v and_o starve_v for_o want_v of_o heavenly_a food_n and_o nourishment_n if_o the_o milk_n of_o god_n word_n and_o this_o spiritual_a food_n
6●_n before_o i_o be_v afflict_v say_v he_o i_o go_v astray_o but_o now_o have_v i_o keep_v thy_o word_n also_o he_o say_v 4_o say_v psal_n 23._o 4_o thy_o rod_n and_o thy_o staff_n they_o comfort_v i_o and_o then_o he_o conclude_v thus_o 12_o thus_o psal_n 94._o 12_o bless_a be_v the_o man_n who_o thou_o chastene_v o_o lord_n this_o exhortation_n the_o wise_a man_n give_v 12._o give_v prov._n 3._o 11_o 12._o my_o son_n despise_v not_o the_o chasten_n of_o the_o lord_n neither_o beweary_a of_o his_o correction_n for_o who_o the_o lord_n love_v he_o correct_v even_o as_o a_o father_n the_o son_n in_o who_o he_o delight_v 11._o delight_v heb._n 12._o 11._o but_o no_o chasten_n for_o the_o present_a seem_v joyous_a but_o grievous_a nevertheless_o afterward_o it_o yield_v the_o peaceable_a fruit_n of_o righteousness_n unto_o they_o which_o be_v exercise_v thereby_o wherefore_o we_o must_v not_o measure_v the_o love_n of_o god_n by_o the_o outward_a blessing_n which_o we_o enjoy_v nor_o his_o displeasure_n by_o the_o cross_n which_o we_o suffer_v consider_v now_o that_o none_o can_v ever_o claim_v great_a privilege_n from_o affliction_n and_o sorrow_n than_o the_o virgin_n mary_n and_o none_o be_v ever_o more_o to_o be_v honour_v upon_o earth_n than_o she_o for_o she_o do_v bear_v christ_n the_o only_a son_n of_o the_o eternal_a god_n in_o her_o bless_a womb_n who_o have_v the_o command_n of_o all_o creature_n in_o heaven_n and_o in_o earth_n and_o who_o be_v the_o fountain_n of_o all_o true_a consolation_n and_o she_o enjoy_v the_o comfort_n of_o his_o sacred_a society_n many_o year_n and_o yet_o she_o have_v her_o care_n she_o have_v her_o sorrow_n her_o whole_a life_n be_v full_a of_o affliction_n want_n and_o necessity_n she_o be_v put_v to_o great_a extremity_n when_o christ_n be_v bear_v soon_o after_o she_o flee_v into_o egypt_n for_o the_o safety_n of_o her_o son_n life_n she_o lose_v he_o three_o day_n at_o jerusalem_n and_o at_o that_o time_n she_o seek_v he_o with_o a_o sorrowful_a heart_n but_o above_o all_o behold_v and_o see_v how_o her_o soul_n be_v now_o pierce_v through_o with_o grief_n for_o she_o must_v now_o lose_v his_o gracious_a company_n for_o ever_o she_o now_o behold_v he_o upon_o the_o cross_n she_o see_v how_o his_o tender_a body_n be_v rend_v and_o tear_v with_o the_o thorn_n and_o with_o the_o whip_n how_o his_o hand_n and_o foot_n be_v nail_v to_o the_o cross_n as_o if_o he_o have_v be_v a_o notorious_a malefactor_n and_o she_o hear_v the_o revile_n and_o blasphemy_n that_o be_v utter_v against_o he_o in_o a_o most_o shameful_a &_o spiteful_a manner_n which_o be_v enough_o to_o break_v her_o sorrowful_a heart_n but_o especial_o she_o do_v see_v his_o very_a heart_n blood_n gush_v out_o of_o his_o side_n which_o be_v pierce_v with_o a_o spear_n this_o be_v the_o woeful_a and_o lamentable_a condition_n of_o the_o bless_a virgin_n at_o this_o time_n but_o christ_n give_v her_o inward_a comfort_n and_o strength_n of_o faith_n answerable_a to_o the_o greatness_n of_o her_o sorrow_n which_o do_v uphold_v her_o heart_n from_o faint_a and_o her_o soul_n from_o sink_v this_o may_v be_v the_o condition_n of_o any_o of_o god_n servant_n they_o may_v be_v oppress_v and_o press_v down_o with_o temporal_a misery_n they_o may_v drink_v deep_a in_o the_o bitterness_n of_o they_o but_o yet_o they_o be_v free_v from_o the_o curse_n that_o be_v upon_o they_o and_o there_o be_v nothing_o in_o they_o to_o hurt_v their_o soul_n for_o that_o be_v take_v away_o by_o these_o suffering_n of_o christ_n which_o make_v the_o burden_n of_o they_o more_o easy_a that_o they_o may_v bear_v it_o with_o a_o willing_a mind_n when_o our_o affliction_n be_v thus_o sanctify_v we_o shall_v find_v the_o fruit_n and_o benefit_n that_o come_v thereby_o to_o be_v very_o sweet_a and_o profitable_a so_o that_o we_o shall_v have_v good_a cause_n to_o rejoice_v under_o they_o for_o as_o our_o sorrow_n and_o suffering_n do_v abound_v so_o also_o grace_n shall_v superabound_v 5._o superabound_v 2_o cor._n 1._o 5._o and_o as_o the_o suffering_n of_o christ_n abound_v in_o we_o so_o our_o consolation_n also_o abound_v by_o christ_n consider_v yet_o further_o that_o as_o the_o holy_a virgin_n be_v continual_o exercise_v under_o the_o cross_n and_o have_v she_o share_v in_o common_a calamity_n so_o likewise_o she_o have_v her_o particular_a care_n of_o want_n and_o scarcity_n for_o her_o condition_n of_o life_n be_v but_o mean_a and_o her_o livelihood_n be_v but_o small_a therefore_o she_o be_v now_o like_a to_o be_v leave_v destitute_a of_o all_o comfort_n relief_n and_o succour_n but_o christ_n her_o belove_a son_n take_v care_n of_o she_o he_o provide_v as_o well_o for_o the_o maintenance_n of_o her_o body_n as_o for_o the_o comfort_n of_o her_o soul_n and_o commend_v she_o to_o john_n his_o belove_a disciple_n 27._o disciple_n john_n 19_o 26_o 27._o woman_n say_v he_o to_o his_o mother_n behold_v thy_o son_n and_o to_o john_n he_o say_v behold_v thy_o mother_n and_o from_o that_o hour_n john_n take_v she_o unto_o his_o own_o home_n and_o provide_v for_o she_o during_o her_o life_n thus_o be_v the_o bless_a virgin_n train_v up_o in_o the_o school_n of_o affliction_n and_o sorrow_n to_o keep_v she_o from_o spiritual_a pride_n though_o she_o be_v honour_v and_o bless_v above_o all_o other_o woman_n and_o that_o her_o mind_n shall_v not_o be_v draw_v away_o after_o the_o pomp_n and_o vanitis_n of_o the_o world_n but_o still_o to_o bear_v christ_n in_o her_o heart_n as_o sometime_o she_o do_v bear_v he_o in_o her_o womb_n it_o be_v also_o to_o free_v she_o from_o all_o earthly_a care_n that_o the_o meditation_n of_o her_o heart_n may_v be_v always_o heavenly_a and_o that_o the_o desire_n of_o her_o soul_n may_v be_v to_o be_v with_o christ_n this_o care_n christ_n will_v have_v to_o provide_v whatsoever_o be_v needful_a for_o all_o those_o that_o belong_v unto_o he_o for_o he_o best_o know_v what_o be_v good_a for_o we_o and_o he_o will_v not_o suffer_v we_o to_o want_v if_o we_o put_v our_o trust_n in_o he_o we_o need_v not_o cark_n and_o care_n for_o the_o transitory_a thing_n of_o this_o life_n which_o be_v give_v to_o the_o wicked_a as_o well_o as_o to_o the_o godly_a we_o need_v not_o distrust_v the_o wise_a providence_n of_o god_n but_o we_o may_v confident_o rest_v upon_o christ_n for_o he_o will_v support_v and_o comfort_v we_o in_o our_o tribulation_n and_o will_v provide_v for_o we_o in_o our_o want_n and_o necessity_n trouble_n and_o sorrow_n may_v come_v upon_o we_o loss_n of_o parent_n child_n or_o friend_n will_v come_v and_o casualty_n may_v happen_v in_o our_o estate_n which_o we_o will_v neither_o foresee_v nor_o prevent_v these_o and_o the_o like_a will_v embitter_v all_o the_o comfort_n and_o content_n that_o we_o can_v find_v in_o this_o world_n but_o if_o we_o belong_v unto_o christ_n we_o shall_v never_o lose_v he_o neither_o can_v any_o thing_n bereave_v we_o of_o the_o sweet_a consolation_n that_o we_o shall_v find_v in_o he_o this_o we_o may_v believe_v to_o be_v true_a that_o our_o cross_n and_o suffering_n in_o this_o life_n may_v be_v better_o for_o we_o then_o to_o enjoy_v all_o earthly_a pleasure_n and_o delight_n moses_n refuse_v to_o be_v call_v the_o son_n of_o pharaoh_n daughter_n choose_v rather_o to_o 26._o ●_o heb._n 11._o 35_o 25_o 26._o suffer_v affliction_n with_o the_o people_n of_o god_n than_o to_o enjoy_v the_o pleasure_n of_o sin_n for_o a_o season_n esteem_v the_o reproach_n of_o christ_n great_a riches_n than_o the_o treasure_n in_o egypt_n for_o he_o have_v respect_n unto_o the_o recompense_n of_o the_o reward_n 12_o reward_n heb._n 12._o 12_o then_o lift_v up_o the_o hand_n which_o hang_v down_o and_o the_o feeble_a knee_n let_v not_o outward_a cross_n or_o affliction_n too_o much_o seize_v upon_o thou_o but_o by_o faith_n have_v respect_n unto_o the_o recompense_n of_o the_o reward_n and_o raise_v up_o thy_o meditation_n to_o spiritual_a thing_n set_v the_o affection_n of_o thy_o heart_n upon_o christ_n and_o he_o crucify_v which_o will_v make_v thy_o life_n comfortable_a here_o and_o will_v bring_v thou_o to_o reign_v eternal_o with_o he_o hereafter_o now_o we_o must_v learn_v how_o to_o draw_v true_a consolation_n to_o our_o soul_n from_o this_o eternal_a fountain_n of_o comfort_n when_o outward_a calamity_n or_o anguish_n of_o spirit_n do_v overpresse_v we_o our_o worldly_a preferment_n our_o natural_a endowment_n humane_a learning_n or_o common_a grace_n can_v reach_v this_o fountain_n the_o well_o be_v deep_a and_o nothing_o can_v reach_v it_o but_o true_a faith_n which_o be_v the_o only_a bucket_n to_o draw_v this_o water_n of_o comfort_n from_o christ_n which_o will_v refresh_v
cor._n 1._o 3._o who_o be_v the_o god_n of_o all_o comfort_n for_o thus_o he_o say_v by_o his_o prophet_n 12._o prophet_n isa_n 51._o 11_o 12._o the_o redeem_v of_o the_o lord_n shall_v return_v and_o come_v with_o sing_v unto_o zion_n and_o everlasting_a joy_n shall_v be_v upon_o their_o head_n they_o shall_v obtain_v gladn●sse_n and_o joy_n and_o mourning_n shall_v flee_v away_o i_o even_o i_o be_o he_o that_o comfort_v you_o what_o comfort_n can_v we_o then_o want_v if_o god_n be_v our_o comforter_n second_o if_o we_o delight_v in_o pleasure_n heaven_n will_v afford_v we_o more_o than_o our_o heart_n can_v desire_v 9_o desire_v psal_n 36._o 8_o 9_o there_o we_o shall_v be_v abundant_o satisfy_v with_o the_o fatness_n of_o god_n house_n and_o he_o will_v make_v we_o drink_v of_o the_o river_n of_o his_o pleasure_n for_o with_o he_o be_v the_o fountain_n of_o life_n in_o his_o light_n shall_v we_o see_v light_a also_o the_o psalmist_n say_v thus_o 11_o thus_o psal_n 16._o 11_o god_n will_v show_v we_o the_o path_n of_o life_n in_o his_o presence_n be_v fullness_n of_o joy_n at_o his_o right_a hand_n there_o be_v pleasure_n for_o evermore_o for_o heaven_n be_v the_o place_n of_o all_o peace_n and_o comfort_n of_o all_o joy_n and_o happiness_n and_o of_o all_o glory_n and_o immortality_n three_o heaven_n be_v the_o place_n of_o all_o security_n as_o abraham_n say_v to_o dives_n 26_o dives_n lu._n 16._o 26_o between_o we_o and_o you_o there_o be_v a_o great_a gulf_n fix_v so_o that_o they_o which_o will_v pass_v from_o hence_o to_o you_o can_v neither_o can_v they_o ●asse_v to_o we_o that_o will_v come_v from_o thence_o also_o th●●_n say_v christ_n 10._o christ_n mat._n 25._o 10._o when_o the_o brid●groom_n come_v and_o they_o that_o be_v ready_a be_v go_v in_o with_o he_o to_o the_o marriage_n the_o door_n will_v be_v shut_v and_o the●_n none_o can_v go_v in_o and_o none_o can_v come_v out_o 20_o out_o mat._n 6._o 20_o ●n_a heaven_n we_o may_v safe_o keep_v our_o spiritual_a treasure_n from_o the_o moth_n and_o rust_n and_o from_o that_o arch_a thief_n the_o devil_n if_o this_o precious_a jewel_n which_o be_v our_o ●ou●_n be_v lay_v up_o in_o heaven_n it_o will_v be_v safe_o keep_v there_o for_o nothing_o can_v corrupt_v it_o and_o no_o thief_n can_v steal_v it_o away_o last_o that_o which_o make_v up_o the_o fullness_n of_o our_o joy_n and_o happiness_n in_o the_o kingdom_n of_o heaven_n be_v the_o eternity_n of_o it_o for_o if_o we_o shall_v enjoy_v it_o but_o for_o a_o time_n it_o will_v great_o lessen_v the_o comfort_n of_o our_o felicity_n there_o shall_v be_v a_o end_n of_o time_n but_o there_o will_v be_v no_o end_n of_o our_o bless_a condition_n in_o heaven_n for_o thus_o say_v the_o lord_n 18._o lord_n isa_n 65._o 17_o 18._o behold_v i_o create_v new_a heaven_n and_o a_o new_a earth_n and_o the_o former_a shall_v not_o be_v remember_v nor_o come_v into_o mind_n but_o be_v you_o glad_a and_o rejoice_v for_o ever_o in_o that_o which_o i_o create_v for_o behold_v i_o create_v jerusalem_n a_o rejoice_n and_o her_o people_n a_o joy_n and_o again_o he_o say_v by_o the_o same_o prophet_n 22_o prophet_n isa_n 66_o 22_o for_o as_o the_o new_a heaven_n and_o the_o new_a earth_n which_o i_o will_v make_v shall_v remain_v b●fore_o i_o so_o shall_v your_o seed_n and_o your_o name_n remain_v thus_o say_v john_n 5._o john_n rev._n 2_o 2._o 5._o the_o servant_n of_o the_o lamb_n shall_v be_v in_o this_o city_n of_o god_n and_o they_o shall_v reign_v for_o ever_o and_o ever_o paul_n speak_v of_o the_o resurrection_n say_v thus_o 17_o thus_o 1_o thes_n 4._o 17_o then_o we_o which_o be_v alive_a and_o remain_v shall_v be_v catch_v up_o together_o with_o they_o in_o the_o cloud_n to_o meet_v the_o lord_n in_o the_o air_n and_o so_o shall_v we_o ever_o be_v with_o the_o lord_n daniel_n also_o say_v thus_o 18._o thus_o dan._n 7._o 18._o and_o the_o saint_n of_o the_o most_o high_a god_n shall_v take_v the_o kingdom_n and_o possess_v it_o for_o ever_o even_o for_o ever_o and_o ever_o holy_a david_n say_v 18_o say_v psal_n 37._o 18_o that_o the_o inheritance_n of_o the_o upright_o shall_v be_v for_o ever_o thus_o it_o be_v evident_a how_o great_a our_o gain_n shall_v be_v by_o christ_n after_o death_n and_o that_o there_o shall_v be_v no_o end_n of_o our_o happiness_n consider_v now_o that_o whatsoever_o we_o suffer_v in_o this_o life_n be_v but_o for_o a_o short_a time_n and_o that_o the_o bitterness_n of_o our_o sorrow_n be_v sweeten_v with_o some_o comfort_n also_o that_o our_o joy_n and_o felicity_n in_o heaven_n be_v for_o eternity_n and_o that_o it_o be_v no_o way_n embitter_v with_o any_o trouble_n or_o vexation_n that_o we_o may_v patient_o and_o meek_o bear_v whatsoever_o god_n shall_v lay_v upon_o we_o and_o earnest_o desire_v to_o be_v unclothe_v of_o this_o corruptible_a body_n that_o we_o may_v put_v on_o the_o glorious_a robe_n of_o immortality_n for_o ever_o thus_o say_v paul_n 17_o paul_n ●_o cor._n 4._o 17_o our_o light_a affliction_n which_o be_v but_o for_o a_o moment_n work_v for_o we_o a_o far_o more_o exceed_a and_o eternal_a weight_n of_o glory_n so_o likewise_o if_o we_o consider_v and_o believe_v that_o we_o have_v this_o gain_n and_o advantage_n only_o by_o christ_n it_o will_v make_v we_o study_v and_o labour_n by_o all_o mean_n to_o enjoy_v he_o and_o when_o we_o have_v get_v some_o interest_n in_o he_o to_o stick_v close_o to_o he_o by_o faith_n to_o love_v he_o with_o entire_a affection_n and_o to_o be_v obedient_a to_o his_o will_n and_o command_n wherefore_o now_o if_o thou_o have_v any_o holy_a desire_n to_o be_v free_v from_o all_o temptation_n from_o all_o sin_n and_o from_o all_o sorrow_n vexation_n and_o calamity_n then_o set_v the_o meditation_n of_o thy_o heart_n upon_o the_o fruition_n of_o the_o kingdom_n of_o heaven_n where_o thou_o shall_v be_v free_v from_o all_o these_o evil_n though_o here_o upon_o earth_n they_o will_v rush_v in_o upon_o thou_o also_o if_o thou_o desire_v to_o enjoy_v all_o the_o happiness_n that_o heaven_n can_v afford_v thou_o and_o to_o enjoy_v god_n himself_o for_o ever_o then_o look_v up_o unto_o christ_n thy_o saviour_n with_o the_o eye_n of_o faith_n who_o have_v purchase_v heaven_n for_o thou_o with_o his_o own_o blood_n and_o have_v make_v thou_o the_o son_n of_o god_n by_o adoption_n that_o he_o may_v bestow_v all_o this_o upon_o thou_o whereof_o he_o have_v give_v thou_o some_o taste_n in_o this_o life_n but_o thou_o can_v not_o be_v make_v perfect_a in_o it_o until_o this_o life_n be_v end_v 10._o end_v 2_o pet._n 1._o 10._o give_v all_o diligence_n therefore_o as_o peter_n say_v to_o make_v thy_o call_n and_o election_n sure_a by_o a_o lively_a faith_n in_o christ_n and_o get_v the_o seal_n of_o the_o new_a covenant_n which_o be_v the_o blood_n of_o christ_n to_o be_v stamp_v upon_o thy_o heart_n that_o thou_o may_v carry_v it_o to_o thy_o grave_n and_o then_o death_n will_v give_v thy_o soul_n free_a passage_n into_o the_o mansion_n of_o heaven_n where_o this_o perfect_a freedom_n be_v to_o be_v obtain_v and_o where_o this_o gain_n of_o eternal_a blessedness_n be_v to_o be_v get_v wherefore_o walk_v not_o after_o the_o flesh_n but_o after_o the_o spirit_n live_v not_o as_o a_o citizen_n of_o this_o world_n but_o live_v here_o as_o a_o free_a denizen_n of_o the_o heavenly_a jerusalem_n have_v thy_o mind_n and_o the_o affection_n of_o thy_o heart_n set_v upon_o the_o holiness_n and_o righteousness_n thereof_o that_o thy_o life_n and_o conversation_n may_v be_v pure_a and_o holy_a here_o upon_o earth_n and_o then_o thy_o soul_n shall_v live_v and_o eternal_o possess_v it_o after_o it_o be_v dissolve_v from_o thy_o body_n how_o christ_n be_v our_o spiritual_a life_n man_n in_o his_o first_o creation_n have_v a_o spiritual_a life_n which_o be_v free_a from_o any_o spot_n or_o stain_v of_o sin_n but_o he_o soon_o lose_v it_o by_o his_o transgression_n and_o deface_v this_o lively_a image_n of_o god_n that_o be_v stamp_v upon_o his_o soul_n and_o then_o in_o himself_o he_o have_v no_o ability_n to_o recover_v his_o lose_a happiness_n this_o leprosy_n of_o sin_n have_v infect_v all_o his_o posterity_n that_o proceed_v from_o he_o by_o natural_a propagation_n which_o have_v bring_v upon_o they_o a_o spiritual_a death_n and_o lay_v they_o open_a to_o eternal_a death_n hereafter_o though_o this_o be_v our_o condition_n by_o nature_n yet_o 7._o yet_o eph._n 2._o 4_o 5_o 6_o 7._o god_n who_o be_v rich_a in_o mercy_n for_o his_o great_a love_n where_o with_o he_o love_v we_o even_o when_o we_o be_v dead_a in_o sin_n have_v quicken_v we_o together_o in_o
conscience_n with_o the_o guilt_n of_o sin_n which_o be_v a_o burden_n heavy_a than_o we_o can_v bear_v thus_o say_v the_o wise_a man_n 14_o man_n prov._n 18._o 14_o a_o wound_a spirit_n who_o can_v bear_v we_o can_v have_v no_o true_a comfort_n in_o these_o or_o the_o like_a affliction_n but_o what_o come_v from_o the_o holy_a ghost_n and_o no_o hope_n of_o succour_n or_o relief_n in_o our_o distress_n without_o he_o if_o our_o spirit_n be_v wound_v he_o only_o can_v apply_v the_o true_a balm_n of_o gilead_n to_o cure_v they_o this_o balm_n be_v the_o blood_n of_o christ_n which_o be_v a_o universal_a remedy_n to_o cure_v all_o the_o spiritual_a disease_n of_o our_o soul_n and_o none_o but_o the_o holy_a ghost_n can_v apply_v it_o to_o our_o heart_n by_o faith_n also_o if_o the_o holy_a ghost_n do_v not_o refresh_v we_o with_o the_o comfort_n of_o grace_n and_o with_o the_o assurance_n of_o the_o love_n and_o favour_n of_o god_n we_o shall_v be_v ready_a to_o sink_v under_o the_o great_a weight_n of_o our_o calamity_n and_o misery_n but_o we_o may_v draw_v comfort_n enough_o from_o the_o holy_a ghost_n in_o what_o sad_a condition_n soever_o we_o be_v for_o he_o will_v sweeten_v the_o bitterness_n of_o all_o our_o suffering_n with_o true_a peace_n of_o conscience_n and_o tranquillity_n of_o mind_n in_o the_o assurance_n of_o the_o pardon_n of_o our_o sin_n he_o will_v sanctify_v all_o our_o affliction_n and_o sorrow_n with_o save_a grace_n that_o they_o shall_v be_v for_o our_o good_a and_o will_v witness_v to_o our_o spirit_n that_o we_o be_v in_o grace_n and_o favour_n with_o god_n through_o jesus_n christ_n our_o lord_n and_o saviour_n also_o he_o will_v give_v we_o strength_n and_o courage_n to_o suffer_v any_o thing_n for_o christ_n and_o for_o righteousness_n sake_n and_o likewise_o heavenly_a wisdom_n right_o to_o use_v every_o part_n of_o the_o whole_a armour_n of_o god_n to_o defend_v ourselves_o from_o all_o our_o spiritual_a enemy_n and_o to_o beat_v back_o or_o quench_v all_o the_o fiery_a dart_n of_o the_o devil_n that_o his_o temptation_n and_o evil_a suggestion_n may_v not_o wound_v our_o soul_n to_o the_o death_n last_o he_o will_v perfect_v all_o with_o the_o gift_n of_o perseverance_n so_o that_o we_o shall_v be_v able_a to_o stand_v fast_o in_o the_o day_n of_o trial_n and_o we_o shall_v have_v assure_v hope_n of_o conquest_n and_o victory_n in_o all_o our_o conflict_n and_o combat_n here_o and_o to_o be_v crown_v with_o immortal_a glory_n hereafter_o now_o let_v this_o be_v the_o desire_n of_o our_o soul_n and_o the_o meditation_n of_o our_o heart_n to_o draw_v comfort_n from_o the_o holy_a ghost_n when_o we_o be_v afflict_v trouble_a or_o any_o way_n perplex_v with_o grief_n of_o heart_n sorrow_n of_o spirit_n or_o anguish_n of_o soul_n which_o we_o may_v do_v if_o we_o know_v that_o no_o outward_a comfort_n can_v support_v we_o without_o god_n and_o therefore_o we_o do_v not_o rest_v and_o rely_v upon_o they_o but_o do_v seek_v to_o the_o true_a comforter_n by_o earnest_n and_o faithful_a prayer_n in_o all_o our_o necessity_n which_o be_v a_o sure_a mean_n to_o draw_v comfort_n from_o he_o when_o we_o want_v it_o also_o if_o we_o be_v true_o sensible_a that_o we_o do_v want_v his_o gracious_a assistance_n to_o carry_v we_o on_o cheerful_o through_o all_o the_o difficulty_n and_o danger_n that_o we_o shall_v meet_v with_o in_o this_o world_n upon_o our_o humble_a supplication_n to_o he_o he_o will_v return_v we_o a_o comfortable_a answer_n as_o shall_v be_v best_a for_o we_o so_o likewise_o if_o the_o guilt_n of_o our_o sin_n do_v stick_v close_o unto_o we_o or_o if_o we_o possess_v our_o former_a iniquity_n by_o a_o sinful_a remembrance_n of_o they_o so_o that_o we_o be_v true_o humble_v in_o the_o sight_n and_o sense_n of_o they_o and_o that_o our_o heart_n be_v touch_v with_o a_o godly_a sorrow_n for_o they_o the_o holy_a ghost_n will_v then_o come_v with_o spiritual_a consolation_n to_o comfort_v our_o poor_a soul_n with_o a_o holy_a assurance_n that_o all_o our_o sin_n be_v wash_v away_o in_o the_o blood_n of_o christ_n by_o faith_n last_o we_o may_v draw_v comfort_n from_o this_o spiritual_a fountain_n by_o our_o pious_a and_o devout_a meditation_n of_o he_o for_o than_o he_o will_v give_v we_o a_o sweet_a taste_n of_o his_o heavenly_a grace_n to_o comfort_v we_o in_o all_o condition_n of_o life_n and_o he_o will_v give_v we_o spiritual_a joy_n in_o the_o midst_n of_o all_o our_o affliction_n also_o he_o will_v unite_v we_o unto_o christ_n by_o faith_n and_o will_v seal_v our_o redemption_n to_o we_o by_o his_o blood_n whereby_o we_o shall_v enjoy_v eternal_a felicity_n for_o ever_o o_o what_o sweet_a meditation_n may_v we_o draw_v from_o this_o heavenly_a comforter_n in_o all_o the_o sadness_n of_o our_o heart_n thus_o we_o may_v meditate_v on_o the_o holy_a ghost_n as_o he_o be_v the_o true_a comforter_n of_o our_o soul_n we_o come_v now_o to_o consider_v of_o his_o divine_a operation_n from_o whence_o we_o may_v also_o draw_v much_o profitable_a and_o comfortable_a matter_n for_o our_o holy_a meditation_n and_o for_o our_o better_a understanding_n herein_o this_o eternal_a spirit_n of_o life_n be_v set_v forth_o in_o the_o holy_a scripture_n by_o several_a resemblance_n to_o show_v in_o what_o manner_n and_o how_o various_o he_o work_v in_o our_o heart_n that_o our_o meditation_n may_v be_v order_v according_o first_o the_o holy_a ghost_n be_v resemble_v to_o a_o dove_n for_o when_o christ_n be_v baptize_v 16_o baptize_v mat._n 3._o 16_o he_o descend_v in_o the_o similitude_n of_o a_o dove_n and_o rest_v upon_o he_o which_o be_v to_o show_v his_o spiritual_a anoint_v to_o his_o office_n of_o mediatorship_n and_o to_o set_v forth_o the_o true_a nature_n of_o christ_n how_o humble_a and_o and_o meek_a he_o be_v how_o innocent_a and_o harmless_a how_o love_v and_o how_o ready_a and_o willing_a he_o be_v to_o do_v good_a to_o all_o these_o dovelike_a quality_n be_v pour_v upon_o christ_n above_o measure_n that_o we_o his_o member_n may_v receive_v the_o same_o in_o some_o measure_n from_o he_o by_o the_o holy_a ghost_n for_o he_o will_v put_v all_o the_o faculty_n of_o our_o soul_n all_o the_o affection_n of_o our_o heart_n and_o all_o the_o part_n of_o our_o body_n into_o a_o new_a frame_n he_o will_v change_v the_o corruption_n of_o our_o nature_n into_o a_o holy_a temper_n of_o proud_a and_o haughty_a mind_v he_o will_v make_v we_o lowly_a and_o meek_a of_o hateful_a and_o malicious_a he_o will_v make_v we_o love_v and_o courteous_a to_o all_o he_o will_v so_o season_v we_o with_o sanctify_a grace_n throughout_o that_o our_o evil_a disposition_n shall_v be_v change_v into_o a_o gracious_a condition_n this_o spirit_n of_o truth_n will_v bring_v we_o a_o olive_n leaf_n 11_o leaf_n gen._n 8._o 11_o like_o noah_n dove_n to_o let_v we_o know_v that_o though_o we_o be_v in_o the_o midst_n of_o trouble_n danger_n or_o distress_n yet_o we_o shall_v be_v preserve_v and_o deliver_v and_o though_o we_o be_v trouble_v disquiet_v or_o perplex_v in_o our_o mind_n yet_o at_o the_o last_o we_o shall_v have_v peace_n tranquillity_n spiritual_a joy_n and_o comfort_v now_o by_o this_o resemblance_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n we_o may_v examine_v ourselves_o what_o purity_n and_o holiness_n he_o have_v wrought_v in_o we_o what_o meekness_n of_o spirit_n what_o patience_n under_o the_o cross_n what_o love_n to_o god_n and_o to_o our_o neighbour_n and_o how_o far_o we_o be_v sanctify_v in_o all_o the_o affection_n of_o our_o heart_n &_o in_o all_o the_o part_n of_o our_o body_n also_o how_o much_o the_o corruption_n of_o our_o nature_n be_v weaken_v in_o we_o and_o how_o far_o we_o be_v change_v from_o that_o which_o be_v sinful_a to_o newness_n of_o life_n if_o we_o can_v find_v these_o operation_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n in_o we_o they_o will_v afford_v we_o profitable_a matter_n for_o our_o heart_n to_o meditate_v upon_o to_o the_o glory_n of_o god_n and_o for_o the_o comfort_n of_o our_o own_o soul_n second_o some_o of_o the_o operation_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n be_v set_v forth_o unto_o we_o by_o the_o resemblance_n of_o that_o 21_o that_o exod._n 13_o 21_o pillar_n of_o a_o cloud_n which_o go_v before_o the_o child_n of_o israel_n by_o day_n when_o they_o march_v out_o of_o egypt_n to_o guide_v they_o the_o right_a way_n that_o god_n will_v have_v they_o go_v towards_o the_o land_n of_o canaan_n this_o pillar_n do_v also_o protect_v and_o defend_v they_o from_o their_o enemy_n it_o keep_v the_o scorch_a heat_n of_o the_o sun_n from_o they_o and_o it_o cool_v and_o moisten_v the_o earth_n with_o sweet_a and_o comfortable_a dew_n which_o be_v a_o great_a refresh_n
our_o life_n will_v be_v much_o the_o hard_a time_n be_v not_o gain_v but_o lose_v which_o we_o spend_v without_o some_o fruit_n of_o grace_n and_o godliness_n which_o indeed_o be_v the_o true_a gain_n of_o time_n and_o therefore_o we_o shall_v seek_v unto_o god_n while_o he_o may_v be_v find_v 6._o find_v isa_n 55._o 6._o we_o shall_v call_v upon_o he_o while_o he_o be_v near_o otherwise_o though_o we_o seek_v he_o he_o will_v not_o be_v find_v and_o though_o we_o call_v upon_o he_o he_o will_v not_o answer_v nor_o be_v entreat_v thus_o say_v the_o apostle_n 2_o apostle_n 2_o cor._n 6._o 2_o now_o be_v the_o time_n acceptable_a now_o be_v the_o day_n of_o salvation_n but_o we_o have_v just_a cause_n to_o bewail_v our_o condition_n for_o the_o corruption_n of_o our_o nature_n do_v so_o weaken_v we_o and_o the_o power_n of_o our_o spiritual_a enemy_n do_v so_o prevail_v against_o we_o that_o we_o can_v break_v through_o such_o strong_a opposition_n as_o they_o make_v to_o hinder_v this_o holy_a work_n of_o grace_n in_o we_o i_o he_o devil_n do_v cunning_o dissuade_v we_o from_o it_o the_o world_n do_v strong_o allure_v we_o to_o follow_v still_o the_o vanity_n of_o it_o and_o our_o own_o flesh_n do_v daily_o entice_v we_o to_o carnal_a pleasure_n and_o delight_n so_o that_o we_o can_v find_v no_o time_n to_o make_v our_o peace_n with_o god_n or_o to_o improve_v the_o mean_n of_o grace_n to_o his_o glory_n and_o to_o our_o own_o comfort_n though_o we_o do_v sometime_o strive_v against_o our_o sin_n yet_o we_o can_v overcome_v they_o or_o if_o one_o sin_n be_v subdue_v another_o be_v ready_a to_o rise_v up_o against_o we_o also_o though_o we_o can_v actual_o commit_v a_o sin_n yet_o we_o may_v commit_v it_o in_o our_o sinful_a desire_n to_o it_o in_o a_o sinful_a remembrance_n of_o it_o in_o consent_v to_o it_o or_o in_o suffer_v it_o to_o be_v do_v when_o by_o our_o place_n and_o authority_n we_o may_v hinder_v it_o we_o have_v also_o just_a cause_n to_o bemoan_v ourselves_o for_o though_o we_o do_v labour_n for_o grace_n and_o do_v use_v all_o mean_n for_o it_o to_o the_o best_a of_o our_o power_n and_o yet_o we_o can_v attain_v unto_o it_o though_o it_o be_v thus_o with_o we_o yet_o we_o must_v still_o continue_v our_o best_a endeavour_n to_o oppose_v all_o the_o enemy_n of_o our_o salvation_n and_o we_o must_v still_o use_v the_o mean_n of_o grace_n and_o wait_v upon_o god_n until_o he_o shall_v please_v to_o work_v grace_n in_o we_o by_o his_o spirit_n also_o we_o must_v pray_v unto_o he_o with_o a_o faithful_a heart_n that_o by_o the_o omnipotent_a power_n of_o his_o grace_n e_z and_o by_o the_o rod_n of_o his_o strength_n which_o be_v the_o word_n and_o spirit_n he_o will_v make_v we_o able_a to_o overcome_v our_o corruption_n by_o season_v our_o heart_n with_o grace_n to_o subdue_v the_o power_n of_o our_o sin_n by_o repentance_n to_o improve_v our_o time_n to_o the_o glory_n of_o god_n and_o also_o to_o break_v through_o the_o snare_n of_o the_o devil_n the_o world_n and_o the_o flesh_n then_o god_n will_v so_o bless_v we_o in_o our_o pious_a endeavour_n that_o we_o shall_v prevail_v against_o all_o opposition_n and_o adversary_n power_n not_o by_o our_o own_o strength_n but_o by_o the_o might_n and_o power_n of_o jesus_n christ_n our_o gracious_a redeemer_n 9_o redeemer_n 2_o cor._n 12._o 9_o who_o grace_n and_o favour_n be_v sufficient_a for_o we_o and_o who_o strength_n be_v make_v perfect_a in_o our_o weakness_n under_o who_o banner_n we_o fight_v these_o spiritual_a battle_n for_o the_o honour_n of_o his_o great_a name_n of_o christ_n our_o redeemer_n if_o it_o be_v so_o that_o christ_n be_v our_o redeemer_n and_o have_v wrought_v our_o redemption_n with_o his_o own_o blood_n and_o have_v purchase_v for_o we_o a_o new_a covenant_n and_o a_o everlasting_a inheritance_n in_o heaven_n as_o formerly_z in_o part_n have_v be_v show_v also_o if_o we_o have_v all_o our_o strength_n and_o power_n from_o he_o against_o our_o spiritual_a enemy_n without_o who_o we_o can_v stand_v against_o they_o nor_o break_v through_o the_o band_n of_o death_n to_o enjoy_v that_o heavenly_a inheritance_n which_o he_o have_v prepare_v for_o we_o we_o must_v then_o know_v who_o christ_n be_v what_o be_v the_o nature_n of_o his_o person_n what_o be_v his_o power_n and_o strength_n and_o how_o he_o be_v qualify_v for_o this_o great_a work_n that_o we_o may_v have_v a_o sure_a ground_n to_o confide_v in_o he_o and_o to_o rest_v upon_o he_o as_o our_o redeemer_n and_o only_a saviour_n also_o we_o must_v know_v how_o he_o have_v satisfy_v the_o justice_n of_o god_n for_o our_o sin_n how_o he_o have_v conquer_v death_n hell_n and_o the_o devil_n and_o what_o price_n he_o have_v pay_v for_o our_o ransom_n for_o without_o this_o heavenly_a knowledge_n and_o faith_n to_o apply_v it_o to_o ourselves_o we_o can_v draw_v no_o comfort_n to_o our_o soul_n from_o christ_n neither_o can_v we_o have_v any_o good_a assurance_n that_o we_o be_v free_v from_o the_o curse_n of_o the_o law_n that_o the_o justice_n of_o god_n be_v satisfy_v for_o our_o sin_n that_o sin_n have_v no_o condemn_a power_n over_o we_o that_o the_o sting_n of_o death_n be_v take_v away_o and_o that_o we_o be_v reconcile_v again_o unto_o the_o favour_n of_o god_n god_n have_v reveal_v these_o deep_a mystery_n to_o we_o in_o his_o holy_a word_n that_o the_o meditation_n of_o our_o heart_n may_v be_v enlarge_v upon_o they_o for_o our_o instruction_n and_o edification_n and_o for_o the_o comfort_n of_o our_o soul_n as_o god_n shall_v give_v light_n to_o our_o understanding_n by_o his_o bless_a spirit_n but_o as_o the_o prophet_n say_v 8._o say_v be_v 53._o 8._o who_o can_v declare_v his_o generation_n which_o be_v from_o eternity_n for_o christ_n our_o redeemer_n be_v the_o only_o beget_v son_n of_o god_n 18._o god_n joh._n 1._o 18._o who_o be_v in_o the_o bosom_n of_o the_o father_n and_o be_v promise_v and_o expect_v since_o the_o begin_n of_o the_o world_n and_o when_o the_o fullness_n of_o time_n be_v come_v that_o god_n have_v appoint_v for_o his_o incarnation_n 14_o incarnation_n john_n 1._o 14_o the_o word_n be_v make_v flesh_n for_o 16_o for_o heb._n 2._o 16_o he_o take_v on_o he_o the_o seed_n of_o abraham_n and_o personal_o unite_v to_o his_o divine_a nature_n a_o true_a humane_a body_n 32._o body_n luc._n 1._o 31_o 32._o of_o the_o seed_n of_o the_o virgin_n mary_n 38_o mary_n mat._n 26._o 38_o which_o be_v endue_v with_o a_o reasonable_a soul_n and_o the_o holy_a ghost_n do_v so_o sanctify_v her_o womb_n that_o he_o be_v bear_v without_o sin_n either_o original_n or_o actual_a and_o though_o the_o humane_a nature_n of_o christ_n be_v take_v into_o his_o deity_n whereby_o this_o union_n be_v never_o to_o be_v dissolve_v yet_o either_o nature_n have_v their_o whole_a property_n and_o operation_n remain_v still_o unconfound_v and_o therefore_o he_o be_v true_a god_n and_o true_a man_n 17_o man_n heb._n 2._o 17_o like_v unto_o we_o in_o all_o thing_n 15._o thing_n heb._n 4._o 15._o sin_n only_o except_v and_o those_o two_o nature_n make_v but_o one_o person_n in_o christ_n 18_o christ_n mat._n 28._o 18_o to_o who_o god_n the_o father_n have_v give_v all_o power_n in_o heaven_n and_o in_o earth_n so_o that_o he_o command_v and_o over-ruleth_a all_o create_a power_n whatsoever_o god_n do_v also_o give_v he_o three_o honourable_a office_n that_o he_o may_v be_v every_o way_n fit_a to_o be_v our_o eternal_a mediator_n between_o god_n and_o we_o for_o god_n ordain_v he_o to_o be_v a_o prophet_n to_o teach_v and_o instruct_v we_o to_o be_v a_o priest_n to_o make_v intercession_n for_o we_o and_o to_o offer_v such_o a_o sacrifice_n to_o god_n for_o our_o sin_n as_o he_o will_v accept_v and_o to_o be_v a_o king_n to_o rule_v and_o govern_v his_o church_n and_o also_o to_o rule_v in_o our_o heart_n by_o his_o spirit_n christ_n be_v thus_o qualify_v have_v fulfil_v for_o we_o and_o in_o our_o nature_n whatsoever_o the_o law_n do_v require_v of_o we_o and_o his_o righteousness_n be_v impute_v to_o we_o by_o faith_n for_o our_o justification_n that_o no_o guilt_n of_o sin_n may_v cleave_v to_o we_o in_o the_o sight_n of_o god_n when_o christ_n do_v execute_v that_o part_n of_o his_o priestly_a office_n which_o be_v the_o offer_v up_o of_o his_o body_n a_o sacrifice_n for_o we_o no_o heart_n can_v conceive_v and_o no_o tongue_n can_v express_v the_o bitter_a torment_n which_o he_o suffer_v both_o in_o his_o soul_n and_o in_o his_o body_n to_o satisfy_v the_o justice_n of_o god_n for_o our_o sin_n and_o to_o purchase_v our_o freedom_n and_o redemptition_n out_o of_o the_o captivity_n
be_v overthrow_v it_o may_v be_v shake_v with_o his_o boisterous_a and_o violent_a temptation_n but_o it_o shall_v never_o be_v cast_v down_o because_o our_o faith_n be_v build_v upon_o a_o sure_a rock_n which_o be_v christ_n jesus_n our_o king_n and_o head_n if_o sorrow_n and_o cross_n break_v in_o upon_o we_o which_o we_o can_v not_o prevent_v nor_o avoid_v we_o need_v not_o fear_v for_o we_o shall_v see_v the_o salvation_n of_o christ_n either_o in_o our_o strength_n and_o patience_n to_o bear_v they_o meek_o or_o in_o our_o deliverance_n out_o of_o they_o or_o else_o he_o will_v sanctify_v they_o to_o our_o good_a we_o need_v not_o cark_n and_o care_n for_o the_o thing_n of_o this_o life_n but_o when_o we_o have_v do_v our_o best_a endeavour_n in_o a_o honest_a and_o lawful_a call_n we_o must_v leave_v the_o event_n and_o success_n to_o god_n which_o peculiar_o belong_v unto_o he_o and_o then_o he_o will_v have_v a_o care_n of_o we_o 3._o we_o deut._n 8._o 3._o for_o man_n live_v not_o by_o bread_n only_o but_o by_o every_o word_n that_o proceed_v out_o of_o the_o mouth_n of_o the_o lord_n 24_o lord_n luc._n 12._o 24_o god_n feed_v the_o young_a raven_n when_o they_o cry_v unto_o he_o then_o much_o more_o will_v he_o feed_v we_o for_o it_o be_v part_n of_o his_o kingly_a office_n to_o provide_v all_o thing_n that_o be_v needful_a for_o those_o that_o belong_v unto_o he_o shall_v not_o the_o head_n provide_v for_o the_o member_n of_o the_o same_o body_n and_o shall_v not_o christ_n provide_v for_o we_o who_o have_v near_a relation_n to_o he_o by_o faith_n now_o try_v and_o examine_v thyself_o search_v into_o thy_o own_o soul_n to_o see_v if_o christ_n have_v set_v up_o his_o sceptre_n of_o righteousness_n in_o thy_o heart_n to_o bear_v rule_n in_o thy_o affection_n to_o regulate_v thy_o crooked_a and_o perverse_a will_n and_o to_o bring_v unto_o his_o subjection_n whatsoever_o resist_v or_o rebell_v against_o the_o spirit_n of_o grace_n if_o thou_o do_v find_v the_o fruit_n of_o sanctify_a grace_n in_o thou_o then_o make_v a_o further_a scrutiny_n to_o see_v unto_o what_o measure_n of_o grace_n thou_o have_v attain_v what_o corruption_n have_v it_o mortify_v in_o thou_o what_o strong_a hold_v of_o sinful_a lust_n have_v it_o beat_v down_o how_o be_v the_o body_n of_o sin_n dismember_v and_o weaken_v how_o strong_a be_v thy_o faith_n to_o rest_v and_o depend_v upon_o christ_n in_o all_o difficulty_n and_o danger_n can_v thou_o joyful_o bear_v the_o scandal_n of_o the_o cross_n can_v thou_o meek_o bear_v the_o loss_n of_o thy_o friend_n of_o thy_o liberty_n or_o estate_n for_o his_o sake_n have_v thou_o faith_n and_o patience_n to_o suffer_v affliction_n persecution_n sword_n or_o famine_n for_o he_o and_o can_v thou_o resist_v unto_o blood_n if_o christ_n thy_o king_n shall_v call_v thou_o to_o it_o then_o it_o be_v a_o evident_a sign_n that_o his_o kingdom_n of_o grace_n be_v well_o establish_v in_o thy_o heart_n and_o hereafter_o thou_o shall_v have_v a_o large_a inheritance_n in_o his_o kingdom_n of_o glory_n 10_o pet._n 1._o 10_o wherefore_o give_v all_o diligence_n to_o make_v thy_o call_n and_o election_n sure_a that_o thou_o may_v be_v invest_v into_o his_o kingdom_n of_o grace_n here_o which_o will_v bring_v thou_o hereafter_o to_o eternal_a blessedness_n in_o the_o kingdom_n of_o heaven_n now_o set_v thy_o mind_n and_o the_o meditation_n of_o thy_o heart_n upon_o christ_n as_o he_o be_v thy_o king_n and_o resolve_v with_o a_o holy_a resolution_n to_o submit_v thyself_o to_o his_o rule_n and_o government_n to_o be_v direct_v by_o he_o in_o all_o thy_o way_n and_o to_o express_v thy_o thankfulness_n to_o he_o for_o his_o great_a care_n of_o thou_o who_o by_o his_o divine_a providence_n dispose_v all_o thing_n for_o thy_o good_a if_o trouble_n and_o calamity_n follow_v thou_o like_o the_o billow_n of_o the_o sea_n christ_n will_v calm_v they_o if_o they_o be_v ready_a to_o overwhelm_v thou_o then_o even_o then_o will_v christ_n take_v thou_o by_o the_o hand_n 31_o hand_n mat._n 14._o 31_o as_o he_o do_v peter_n upon_o the_o sea_n and_o will_v keep_v thou_o from_o sink_v if_o god_n look_v angry_o upon_o thou_o for_o thy_o sin_n christ_n will_v appease_v his_o wrath_n and_o make_v intercession_n for_o thou_o if_o death_n look_v upon_o thou_o with_o a_o grim_a countenance_n and_o be_v ready_a to_o bereave_v thou_o of_o thy_o soul_n and_o to_o expose_v thy_o body_n to_o the_o worm_n yet_o know_v with_o holy_a job_n 25_o job_n job_n 19_o 25_o that_o thy_o redeemer_n live_v also_o 22._o also_o luc_n 6._o 22._o that_o he_o will_v give_v his_o angel_n charge_v to_o carry_v thy_o soul_n up_o into_o abraham_n bosom_n and_o at_o length_n he_o will_v raise_v up_o thy_o body_n out_o of_o the_o dust_n and_o will_v make_v it_o a_o glorious_a and_o incorruptible_a body_n fit_a to_o live_v and_o reign_v with_o he_o for_o ever_o thus_o and_o much_o more_o will_v christ_n do_v for_o all_o those_o that_o have_v any_o relation_n to_o he_o by_o faith_n or_o that_o belong_v to_o his_o spiritual_a kingdom_n for_o the_o honour_n of_o his_o great_a name_n and_o for_o the_o eternal_a good_a of_o his_o church_n of_o the_o passion_n of_o christ._n when_o christ_n have_v finish_v his_o prophetical_a office_n in_o his_o ministry_n and_o have_v wrought_v so_o many_o miracle_n as_o seem_v good_a to_o his_o divine_a wisdom_n the_o time_n be_v then_o come_v that_o he_o must_v offer_v up_o a_o sacrifice_n to_o god_n for_o our_o redemption_n which_o be_v his_o whole_a humane_a nature_n soul_n and_o body_n for_o our_o sin_n then_o 25._o then_o rom._n 4._o 25._o god_n deliver_v he_o up_o to_o the_o power_n of_o the_o devil_n and_o into_o the_o hand_n of_o his_o enemy_n for_o our_o offence_n because_o the_o guilt_n of_o all_o our_o sinne_n be_v charge_v upon_o he_o for_o before_o this_o very_a time_n neither_o the_o devil_n nor_o his_o deadly_a enemy_n have_v any_o power_n against_o he_o this_o be_v the_o time_n which_o god_n have_v decree_v in_o his_o secret_a counsel_n that_o christ_n shall_v submit_v himself_o to_o their_o malice_n and_o power_n that_o the_o work_n which_o god_n have_v send_v he_o to_o do_v may_v be_v finish_v and_o when_o that_o work_n be_v perfect_o wrought_v than_o god_n deliver_v he_o out_o of_o their_o power_n by_o his_o resurrection_n and_o ascension_n wherefore_o we_o ought_v to_o prepare_v our_o heart_n for_o holy_a and_o devout_a meditation_n upon_o the_o passion_n of_o christ_n which_o be_v most_o bitter_a to_o his_o humane_a nature_n because_o the_o wrath_n of_o god_n be_v pour_v out_o upon_o he_o for_o our_o sin_n and_o the_o power_n of_o darkness_n be_v let_v loose_a against_o he_o like_v so_o many_o wolf_n to_o worry_v this_o immaculate_a lamb_n of_o god_n or_o like_v so_o many_o fierce_a mastiff_n against_o the_o lion_n of_o the_o tribe_n of_o juda_n but_o the_o innocency_n of_o christ_n do_v carry_v he_o through_o his_o whole_a passion_n and_o by_o his_o own_o power_n he_o overcome_v the_o sury_n of_o all_o his_o enemy_n though_o they_o be_v permit_v to_o torment_v and_o torture_v he_o at_o their_o pleasure_n even_o to_o the_o death_n christ_n suffer_v nothing_o for_o himself_o but_o it_o be_v for_o all_o those_o that_o be_v of_o the_o election_n of_o grace_n the_o guilt_n of_o who_o sin_n he_o do_v take_v upon_o himself_o and_o to_o pay_v their_o debt_n to_o satisfy_v the_o penalty_n of_o the_o law_n for_o they_o by_o his_o death_n and_o the_o justice_n of_o god_n by_o the_o merit_n of_o his_o blood_n also_o it_o be_v to_o clothe_v they_o with_o his_o own_o righteousness_n that_o they_o may_v be_v justify_v in_o the_o sight_n of_o god_n therefore_o let_v no_o circumstance_n of_o his_o passion_n pass_v without_o due_a consideration_n 12_o consideration_n lam._n 1._o 12_o behold_v and_o see_v if_o there_o be_v any_o sorrow_n like_a unto_o his_o sorrow_n which_o be_v do_v unto_o he_o wherewith_o the_o lord_n have_v afflict_v he_o in_o the_o day_n of_o his_o fierce_a anger_n how_o be_v the_o perfection_n of_o beauty_n stain_v how_o be_v the_o sun_n of_o righteousness_n cloud_v how_o be_v the_o bright_a morning_n star_n darken_v how_o be_v the_o lord_n of_o glory_n contemn_v blaspheme_v scorn_v and_o spiteful_o use_v how_o be_v perfect_a holiness_n and_o innocency_n accuse_v reject_v condemn_a cruel_o torment_v and_o most_o shameful_o kill_v and_o how_o be_v truth_n itself_o despise_v and_o tread_v under_o foot_n can_v we_o think_v upon_o his_o passion_n without_o tear_n and_o mourning_n if_o we_o belong_v unto_o he_o can_v we_o ruminate_v upon_o it_o and_o not_o accuse_v and_o condemn_v ourselves_o who_o be_v the_o cause_n why_o he_o suffer_v these_o thing_n and_o much_o
more_o for_o the_o guilt_n of_o our_o sin_n bring_v all_o this_o evil_a upon_o he_o our_o sin_n bring_v the_o eternal_a son_n of_o god_n from_o his_o glorious_a palace_n in_o heaven_n to_o be_v of_o the_o low_a degree_n and_o condition_n among_o man_n here_o upon_o earth_n and_o to_o be_v expose_v to_o all_o the_o ignominy_n reproach_n and_o cruelty_n that_o the_o devil_n and_o wicked_a man_n can_v put_v upon_o he_o otherwise_o we_o have_v be_v still_o alien_n and_o stranger_n unto_o god_n we_o have_v be_v still_o under_o the_o curse_n of_o the_o law_n and_o under_o the_o dominion_n and_o power_n of_o sin_n and_o satan_n wherefore_o we_o have_v great_a cause_n to_o admire_v the_o riches_n of_o his_o mercy_n of_o his_o goodness_n and_o love_n to_o we_o nothing_o can_v move_v he_o to_o do_v this_o for_o we_o but_o his_o tender_a mercy_n and_o his_o free_a grace_n for_o he_o see_v nothing_o in_o we_o to_o move_v he_o to_o pity_n but_o our_o misery_n and_o wretched_a condition_n this_o be_v the_o time_n of_o his_o love_n than_o do_v he_o cast_v his_o skirt_n over_o we_o to_o hide_v our_o shame_n and_o then_o do_v he_o undertake_v this_o great_a work_n of_o our_o redemption_n now_o let_v the_o consideration_n of_o what_o christ_n have_v suffer_v for_o we_o and_o of_o the_o great_a benefit_n which_o we_o receive_v thereby_o bound_v we_o in_o a_o firm_a bond_n of_o love_n and_o thankfulness_n to_o he_o and_o how_o to_o express_v it_o by_o our_o due_a respect_n to_o all_o his_o commandment_n the_o incarnation_n of_o christ_n without_o his_o passion_n can_v profit_v we_o nothing_o the_o purity_n of_o his_o doctrine_n can_v not_o edify_v our_o heart_n if_o he_o have_v not_o shed_v his_o blood_n to_o cleanse_v we_o from_o our_o sin_n his_o prayer_n to_o god_n can_v not_o avail_v we_o nor_o procure_v mercy_n for_o we_o if_o he_o have_v not_o offer_v a_o sacrifice_n and_o shed_v his_o blood_n to_o satisfy_v the_o justice_n of_o god_n for_o all_o our_o transgression_n also_o the_o perfect_a pattern_n of_o his_o holy_a life_n can_v not_o bring_v we_o to_o the_o integrity_n of_o conversation_n if_o he_o have_v not_o die_v that_o sin_n may_v be_v mortify_v and_o kill_v in_o we_o and_o if_o he_o have_v not_o also_o rise_v again_o to_o quicken_v we_o up_o to_o newness_n of_o life_n it_o be_v therefore_o the_o passion_n of_o christ_n that_o reconcile_v we_o to_o god_n that_o take_v away_o the_o guilt_n of_o our_o sin_n that_o give_v we_o power_n to_o mortify_v and_o subdue_v they_o that_o pull_v out_o the_o sting_n of_o death_n that_o bring_v heavenly_a joy_n and_o comfort_n to_o our_o deject_a spirit_n and_o at_o length_n will_v bring_v salvation_n to_o our_o soul_n but_o a_o unregenerate_a man_n be_v not_o sensible_a of_o the_o bitter_a passion_n of_o christ_n he_o can_v feel_v no_o sweetness_n in_o it_o because_o he_o have_v no_o spiritual_a taste_n he_o know_v not_o the_o power_n of_o it_o and_o he_o can_v have_v no_o benefit_n by_o it_o so_o long_o as_o he_o be_v in_o that_o condition_n because_o he_o have_v no_o spiritual_a relation_n to_o christ_n he_o live_v in_o health_n wealth_n and_o pleasure_n he_o feel_v no_o misery_n he_o be_v not_o afflict_v with_o cross_n trouble_n and_o sorrow_n like_o other_o man_n his_o mind_n be_v not_o trouble_v and_o his_o thought_n be_v not_o disquiet_v for_o his_o sin_n they_o come_v not_o near_o his_o heart_n and_o therefore_o he_o regard_v not_o the_o affliction_n of_o joseph_n he_o look_v not_o after_o the_o passion_n of_o christ_n nor_o after_o the_o salvation_n of_o his_o own_o soul_n thereby_o but_o he_o bless_v himself_o in_o this_o his_o condition_n though_o there_o be_v no_o true_a comfort_n in_o it_o thus_o the_o devil_n delude_v he_o and_o lead_v he_o on_o in_o blindness_n of_o understanding_n in_o hardness_n of_o heart_n and_o in_o gross_a security_n to_o the_o great_a danger_n and_o hazard_n of_o his_o soul_n unless_o god_n in_o much_o mercy_n do_v anoint_v his_o eye_n with_o his_o spiritual_a eye_n salve_n to_o let_v he_o see_v his_o own_o sad_a condition_n and_o to_o bring_v he_o unto_o christ_n by_o faith_n let_v no_o man_n therefore_o measure_v his_o spiritual_a condition_n by_o those_o outward_a blessing_n that_o he_o enjoy_v for_o a_o poor_a man_n may_v be_v rich_a in_o grace_n and_o godliness_n and_o a_o rich_a man_n may_v be_v empty_a and_o void_a of_o all_o piety_n and_o goodness_n god_n do_v common_o give_v more_o wealth_n to_o the_o wicked_a than_o he_o do_v to_o his_o own_o servant_n 3_o servant_n eccl._n 5_o 3_o and_o their_o large_a portion_n of_o earthly_a blessing_n may_v be_v for_o their_o hurt_n consider_v now_o o_o vain_a man_n who_o bless_v thyself_o in_o thy_o plenty_n that_o thy_o misery_n be_v so_o much_o the_o great_a by_o how_o much_o thou_o be_v less_o sensible_a of_o thy_o sin_n and_o the_o close_o thou_o be_v join_v to_o the_o world_n the_o far_o thou_o be_v from_o christ_n and_o the_o more_o thou_o delight_v in_o earthly_a pleasure_n the_o less_o comfort_n can_v thou_o have_v in_o the_o passion_n of_o christ_n though_o thy_o riches_n and_o honour_n do_v daily_o increase_v yet_o thy_o sin_n will_v make_v they_o bitter_a to_o thou_o for_o the_o least_o of_o all_o thy_o sin_n though_o conceive_v but_o in_o thought_n only_o and_o never_o act_v will_v bring_v thou_o under_o the_o curse_n of_o the_o law_n and_o will_v make_v thou_o liable_a to_o the_o eternal_a wrath_n of_o god_n and_o it_o will_v so_o pollute_v and_o defile_v thy_o soul_n and_o so_o poison_v the_o whole_a man_n that_o god_n will_v abhor_v thou_o for_o thy_o filthiness_n and_o whatsoever_o flow_v from_o that_o corrupt_a fountain_n be_v unclean_a thy_o riches_n and_o pleasure_n will_v keep_v thou_o from_o mount_n calvary_n where_o christ_n be_v crucify_v so_o long_o as_o thou_o delight_v in_o they_o more_o than_o in_o the_o meditation_n on_o the_o passion_n of_o christ_n the_o blessing_n which_o thou_o injoye_v be_v curse_n unto_o thou_o so_o long_o as_o thou_o be_v without_o christ_n and_o he_o crucify_v and_o continue_v in_o thy_o sin_n without_o repentance_n there_o be_v a_o sting_n in_o every_o thing_n that_o thou_o possesse_v which_o sting_n be_v the_o evil_a of_o sin_n and_o it_o will_v wound_v thy_o soul_n to_o the_o death_n if_o it_o be_v not_o cure_v by_o the_o blood_n of_o christ_n which_o he_o shed_v in_o his_o passion_n and_o it_o must_v be_v true_o apply_v to_o thy_o heart_n by_o faith_n do_v not_o think_v that_o the_o mercy_n of_o god_n will_v save_v thou_o for_o if_o thou_o have_v no_o interest_n in_o christ_n crucify_v and_o neglecte_v the_o mean_n of_o grace_n when_o it_o be_v offer_v the_o guilt_n of_o thy_o sin_n cleave_v still_o to_o thy_o soul_n and_o thou_o can_v lay_v no_o claim_n to_o the_o mercy_n of_o god_n but_o be_v under_o the_o severity_n of_o his_o justice_n where_o be_v now_o the_o civil_a honest_a man_n comfort_n that_o think_v to_o gain_v heaven_n by_o his_o outward_a form_n of_o godliness_n without_o the_o blood_n of_o christ_n what_o be_v the_o condition_n of_o the_o great_a man_n and_o mighty_a hunter_n of_o this_o world_n who_o think_v they_o be_v high_o in_o the_o favour_n of_o god_n because_o they_o abound_v in_o all_o earthly_a pomp_n and_o pleasure_n if_o they_o have_v no_o interest_n in_o the_o passion_n of_o christ_n sure_o their_o condition_n be_v no_o better_a than_o that_o of_o the_o lacdiccans_n 27._o lacdiccans_n rev._n 3._o 27._o who_o think_v themselves_o rich_a and_o increase_v with_o good_n and_o have_v need_n of_o nothing_o and_o know_v not_o that_o they_o be_v spiritual_o wretched_a and_o miserable_a and_o poor_a and_o blind_a and_o naked_a if_o any_o cloud_n of_o affliction_n and_o cross_n do_v but_o shadow_v their_o earthly_a felicity_n it_o take_v away_o all_o their_o joy_n and_o it_o be_v ready_a to_o break_v their_o heart_n for_o they_o think_v that_o to_o be_v their_o great_a misery_n because_o they_o do_v not_o see_v how_o poor_a and_o naked_a they_o be_v of_o grace_n nor_o the_o evil_a of_o their_o sin_n how_o they_o be_v hold_v in_o subjection_n to_o every_o carnal_a and_o base_a lust_n and_o to_o every_o evil_a concupiscence_n which_o will_v bring_v all_o misery_n whatsoever_o upon_o their_o soul_n but_o let_v my_o heart_n still_o ruminate_v and_o meditate_v upon_o the_o passion_n of_o my_o dear_a saviour_n 2_o saviour_n 1_o cor._n 2._o 2_o and_o let_v it_o be_v the_o desire_n of_o my_o soul_n to_o know_v jesus_n christ_n and_o he_o crucify_v who_o be_v my_o wisdom_n righteousness_n sanctification_n and_o redemption_n for_o 14._o for_o heb._n 9_o 14._o it_o be_v only_o the_o blood_n of_o christ_n who_o through_o the_o eternal_a spirit_n offer_v himself_o without_o spot_n to_o
be_v wash_v away_o in_o the_o blood_n that_o flow_v from_o thence_o and_o he_o will_v bid_v we_o put_v our_o finger_n by_o faith_n into_o the_o print_n of_o the_o nail_n and_o thrust_v our_o hand_n into_o his_o side_n that_o we_o may_v not_o be_v faithless_a but_o faithful_a to_o believe_v that_o all_o this_o be_v do_v to_o our_o belove_a redeemer_n for_o our_o deliverance_n out_o of_o the_o bondage_n of_o sin_n and_o satan_n and_o for_o our_o eternal_a salvation_n for_o christ_n will_v not_o suffer_v any_o member_n of_o his_o mystical_a body_n to_o be_v hurt_v or_o wound_v by_o the_o devil_n or_o wicked_a man_n to_o the_o anger_n of_o their_o soul_n it_o be_v a_o great_a honour_n to_o we_o if_o we_o be_v make_v conformable_a to_o our_o head_n christ_n in_o his_o suffering_n 12._o suffering_n rom._n 8._o 17_o 2_o tim._n 2._o 12._o if_o we_o suffer_v with_o he_o we_o shall_v also_o reign_v with_o he_o let_v the_o devil_n rage_n what_o he_o will_v yet_o he_o can_v do_v nothing_o until_o his_o hour_n of_o permission_n be_v come_v and_o then_o he_o can_v do_v no_o more_o but_o what_o christ_n will_v suffer_v he_o to_o do_v and_o that_o will_v be_v according_a to_o our_o strength_n of_o grace_n and_o not_o according_a to_o his_o malicious_a will_n and_o purpose_n concern_v the_o fidelity_n of_o peter_n and_o the_o treachery_n of_o judas_n now_o behold_v and_o see_v how_o the_o sorrow_n of_o our_o sweet_a saviour_n come_v upon_o he_o 1._o he_o job_n 1._o like_o job_n messenger_n and_o like_o the_o throw_v of_o a_o woman_n in_o travel_n for_o no_o soon_o be_v he_o out_o of_o his_o sharp_a agony_n and_o bloody_a sweat_n and_o a_o little_a refresh_v with_o the_o comfort_n of_o a_o angel_n but_o present_o 22._o present_o luk._n 22._o a_o band_n of_o rude_a and_o cruel_a soldier_n send_v from_o the_o chief_a priest_n and_o ruler_n of_o the_o jew_n be_v ready_a at_o hand_n to_o apprehend_v he_o and_o judas_n one_o of_o his_o disciple_n who_o sell_v he_o for_o a_o prey_n to_o the_o blood_n thirsty_a jew_n be_v their_o guide_n to_o conduct_v they_o to_o the_o place_n be_v jesus_n be_v and_o he_o give_v they_o a_o sign_n how_o they_o shall_v know_v he_o and_o also_o a_o watchword_n to_o hold_v he_o fast_o but_o when_o peter_n see_v that_o his_o dear_a master_n be_v apprehend_v and_o ready_a to_o be_v carry_v away_o by_o that_o base_a multitude_n his_o love_n and_o zeal_n to_o he_o be_v so_o inflame_v that_o he_o do_v hazard_v his_o own_o life_n in_o his_o cause_n and_o he_o cut_v off_o the_o high-priest_n servant_n ear_n with_o his_o sword_n in_o his_o master_n defence_n but_o christ_n rebuke_v he_o for_o it_o say_v 53._o say_v mat._n 26_o 52_o 53._o put_v up_o again_o thy_o sword_n into_o his_o place_n think_v thou_o that_o i_o can_v now_o pray_v to_o my_o father_n and_o he_o shall_v present_o give_v i_o more_o than_o twelve_o legion_n of_o angel_n yea_o he_o be_v able_a by_o his_o own_o divine_a power_n to_o defend_v himself_o from_o they_o all_o for_o by_o the_o power_n of_o his_o word_n his_o enemy_n be_v smite_v to_o the_o ground_n but_o to_o show_v how_o ready_a he_o be_v to_o obey_v his_o heavenly_a father_n will_n and_o to_o finish_v the_o work_n of_o man_n redemption_n for_o which_o cause_n he_o be_v send_v into_o the_o world_n he_o do_v meek_o as_o a_o lamb_n submit_v to_o his_o father_n will_n and_o suffer_v himself_o to_o be_v bind_v and_o lead_v away_o to_o annas_n the_o highpriest_n now_o we_o may_v see_v that_o a_o holy_a and_o religious_a master_n may_v have_v a_o wicked_a or_o ungodly_a servant_n though_o the_o example_n of_o his_o own_o life_n and_o his_o discipline_n in_o his_o family_n be_v pious_a and_o godly_a 5._o godly_a 2_o king_n 5._o elisha_n the_o prophet_n have_v a_o covetous_a gehazi_n philemon_n have_v a_o unfaithful_a and_o unprofitable_a onesimus_n until_o paul_n do_v work_v upon_o he_o and_o convert_v he_o to_o the_o faith_n so_o likewise_o a_o good_a servant_n do_v sometime_o dwell_v in_o the_o house_n of_o a_o irreligious_a and_o ungodly_a master_n 39_o master_n gen._n 39_o potiphar_n have_v a_o faithful_a and_o a_o chaste_a joseph_n in_o his_o house_n naaman_n have_v a_o virtuous_a maid_n in_o his_o 5._o 2_o king_n 5._o family_n and_o there_o be_v saint_n in_o caesar_n household_n 22._o household_n phil._n 4._o 22._o who_o send_v their_o salutation_n to_o the_o philippian_n also_o a_o godly_a and_o religious_a father_n have_v oft_o time_n a_o wicked_a and_o ungracious_a son_n adam_n have_v a_o wicked_a cain_n noah_n have_v a_o curse_a cham._n abraham_n have_v a_o scoff_a ishmael_n isaac_n have_v a_o profane_a esau_n and_o david_n also_o have_v a_o incestuous_a amnon_n and_o a_o rebellious_a absalon_n for_o good_a education_n and_o holy_a instruction_n can_v make_v child_n to_o be_v virtuous_a and_o godly_a unless_o the_o holy_a ghost_n do_v season_v their_o heart_n with_o grace_n if_o we_o settle_v and_o compose_v our_o thought_n to_o ruminate_v serious_o upon_o these_o two_o disciple_n of_o christ_n we_o shall_v see_v the_o damnable_a treason_n of_o wretched_a judas_n and_o the_o courageous_a boldness_n of_o bless_a peter_n both_o of_o they_o do_v hear_v the_o heavenly_a doctrine_n that_o christ_n preach_v yet_o they_o be_v not_o alike_o edify_v by_o it_o for_o it_o be_v as_o good_a seed_n sow_o in_o good_a ground_n to_o peter_n which_o bring_v forth_o fruit_n unto_o holiness_n and_o righteousness_n but_o to_o judas_n that_o good_a seed_n be_v sow_o in_o barren_a ground_n for_o his_o heart_n be_v stony_a full_a of_o unbelief_n and_o void_a of_o all_o grace_n and_o goodness_n and_o can_v not_o receive_v it_o the_o preach_v of_o christ_n be_v but_o as_o a_o bare_a sound_n to_o his_o ear_n which_o do_v not_o profit_v he_o to_o salvation_n because_o the_o holy_a ghost_n do_v not_o spiritual_o bear_v his_o ear_n and_o convey_v it_o to_o his_o heart_n they_o do_v also_o see_v the_o great_a miracle_n that_o christ_n wrought_v but_o they_o be_v not_o alike_o instruct_v by_o they_o for_o peter_n by_o the_o eye_n of_o his_o faith_n do_v thereby_o see_v his_o deity_n and_o do_v believe_v and_o confess_v that_o he_o be_v the_o christ_n the_o son_n of_o the_o everliving_a god_n but_o judas_n can_v see_v no_o more_o of_o christ_n but_o his_o humane_a nature_n though_o he_o may_v conceive_v he_o to_o be_v a_o great_a prophet_n these_o two_o disciple_n be_v like_o 24._o like_o gen._n 25._o 23_o 24._o the_o twin_n in_o rebeckahs_n womb_n 13._o womb_n rom._n 9_o 13._o for_o god_n love_v jacob_n but_o he_o hate_v esau_n so_o christ_n love_v peter_n 70._o peter_n joh._n 6._o 70._o but_o judas_n be_v a_o devil_n for_o the_o devil_n enter_v into_o he_o and_o take_v possession_n of_o his_o heart_n and_o then_o he_o plot_v and_o contrive_v how_o to_o betray_v his_o most_o gracious_a and_o love_a master_n who_o he_o know_v to_o be_v blameless_a and_o free_a from_o any_o offence_n and_o his_o treason_n be_v carry_v on_o in_o a_o most_o deceitful_a and_o malicious_a way_n against_o he_o 15._o he_o mat._n 26._o 15._o for_o he_o betray_v he_o to_o the_o ruler_n of_o the_o jew_n for_o a_o small_a sum_n of_o money_n who_o be_v his_o deadly_a enemy_n and_o seek_v his_o life_n and_o to_o colour_v his_o devilish_a mischief_n he_o betray_v he_o to_o the_o soldier_n with_o a_o kiss_n thus_o apt_a be_v judas_n to_o learn_v any_o wickedness_n in_o the_o devil_n school_n but_o he_o can_v learn_v no_o goodness_n in_o the_o school_n of_o christ_n though_o christ_n himself_o be_v the_o schoolmaster_n but_o such_o be_v the_o faithfulness_n of_o peter_n to_o his_o dear_a lord_n that_o he_o will_v not_o be_v daunt_v at_o the_o band_n of_o soldier_n neither_o will_v he_o shrink_v from_o he_o when_o he_o be_v in_o this_o danger_n but_o do_v great_o jeopard_v his_o own_o life_n for_o his_o master_n safety_n if_o it_o be_v so_o that_o the_o devil_n teach_v wicked_a and_o ungodly_a man_n to_o hide_v their_o mischievous_a design_n under_o some_o pretence_n of_o love_n and_o kindness_n we_o shall_v hardly_o escape_v their_o snare_n for_o we_o can_v tell_v what_o be_v intend_v under_o a_o fair_a show_n of_o friendship_n and_o we_o can_v be_v free_a from_o danger_n when_o it_o lurk_v so_o privy_o under_o plausible_a pretence_n abner_n do_v not_o suspect_v that_o joab_n intend_v to_o kill_v he_o 27._o he_o 2_o sam._n 3._o 27._o when_o he_o take_v he_o aside_o in_o the_o gate_n to_o speak_v with_o he_o quiet_o joab_n also_o salute_v amasa_n with_o these_o kind_a word_n 10._o word_n 2_o sam._n 20._o 9_o 10._o be_v thou_o in_o health_n my_o brother_n and_o he_o take_v he_o by_o the_o beard_n with_o the_o right_a hand_n to_o kiss_v he_o and_o then_o
though_o the_o guilt_n of_o all_o our_o sin_n be_v impute_v unto_o christ_n yet_o he_o be_v not_o defile_v therewith_o and_o though_o he_o suffer_v for_o sin_n yet_o it_o be_v not_o for_o his_o own_o but_o for_o the_o sin_n of_o all_o the_o elect_a of_o god_n which_o he_o take_v upon_o himself_o for_o the_o perfection_n of_o his_o purity_n and_o of_o his_o righteousness_n do_v still_o remain_v unspotted_a and_o undefiled_a that_o we_o may_v be_v clothe_v therewith_o by_o faith_n to_o hide_v our_o nakedness_n and_o the_o shame_n of_o our_o sin_n when_o we_o come_v into_o the_o presence_n of_o god_n to_o perform_v any_o holy_a service_n unto_o he_o but_o special_o when_o we_o shall_v appear_v before_o his_o dreadful_a tribunal_n at_o the_o last_o day_n from_o hence_o also_o we_o may_v draw_v much_o consolation_n when_o we_o be_v false_o accuse_v spiteful_o use_v or_o cruel_o persecute_v for_o the_o profession_n of_o the_o truth_n and_o for_o a_o good_a conscience_n for_o our_o dear_a saviour_n have_v suffer_v the_o like_a in_o our_o nature_n and_o for_o our_o sake_n that_o these_o and_o the_o like_a suffering_n may_v be_v sanctify_v to_o we_o and_o that_o we_o shall_v follow_v christ_n example_n of_o patience_n and_o meekness_n when_o we_o be_v under_o they_o we_o need_v not_o therefore_o be_v dismay_v when_o we_o be_v thus_o unjust_o deal_v with_o for_o christ_n have_v take_v away_o the_o evil_a of_o these_o suffering_n and_o have_v teach_v we_o how_o to_o demean_v ourselves_o under_o they_o and_o if_o we_o wait_v patient_o upon_o god_n he_o will_v in_o due_a time_n make_v our_o innocency_n break_v forth_o like_o the_o sun_n out_o of_o a_o cloud_n to_o his_o own_o glory_n and_o to_o our_o great_a comfort_n consider_v now_o and_o admire_v to_o see_v how_o the_o malice_n and_o cruelty_n of_o the_o chief_a priest_n and_o scribe_n do_v increase_v against_o christ_n for_o when_o they_o perceive_v that_o pilate_n have_v clear_v his_o innocency_n and_o be_v willing_a to_o release_v he_o their_o rage_n and_o fury_n be_v the_o more_o inflame_v 20._o inflame_v mat._n 27._o 20._o insomuch_o as_o they_o move_v the_o people_n to_o desire_v that_o barrabas_n may_v be_v release_v to_o they_o who_o raise_v sedition_n in_o the_o city_n and_o be_v also_o a_o murderer_n and_o that_o jesus_n may_v be_v crucify_v which_o kind_n of_o death_n be_v most_o ignominious_a most_o shameful_a and_o accurse_a though_o they_o know_v by_o their_o own_o law_n what_o a_o cry_a sin_n in_o the_o ear_n of_o god_n the_o shed_n of_o innocent_a blood_n be_v yet_o no_o blood_n can_v satisfy_v they_o but_o innocent_a blood_n pilate_n offer_v they_o the_o blood_n of_o barrabas_n but_o that_o will_v not_o content_v they_o for_o they_o thirst_v after_o the_o pure_a blood_n that_o ever_o be_v spill_v even_o the_o most_o precious_a blood_n of_o the_o eternal_a son_n of_o god_n because_o he_o lay_v open_v their_o corrupt_a doctrine_n and_o discover_v their_o hypocrisy_n to_o all_o the_o people_n the_o cruel_a jew_n do_v shed_v the_o blood_n of_o the_o prophet_n that_o be_v send_v to_o they_o and_o now_o they_o do_v eager_o hunt_v after_o the_o blood_n of_o christ_n who_o they_o can_v no_o way_n convince_v of_o any_o sin_n thus_o do_v their_o devilish_a envy_n and_o malice_n carry_v on_o to_o the_o high_a degree_n of_o rebellion_n against_o god_n and_o against_o his_o anoint_v now_o let_v we_o meditate_v with_o a_o holy_a zeal_n and_o pious_a devotion_n upon_o the_o price_n of_o our_o redemption_n 19_o redemption_n 1_o pet._n 1._o 18_o 19_o for_o we_o be_v not_o redeem_v with_o corruptible_a thing_n as_o silver_n and_o gold_n from_o our_o vain_a conversation_n but_o with_o the_o precious_a blood_n of_o christ_n as_o of_o a_o lamb_n without_o blemish_n and_o without_o spot_n who_o be_v both_o god_n and_o man_n so_o that_o the_o jew_n crucify_v he_o that_o be_v 8._o be_v 1_o cor._n 2._o 8._o the_o lord_n of_o glory_n and_o the_o blood_n which_o they_o spill_v be_v the_o blood_n of_o that_o person_n who_o be_v god_n as_o well_o as_o man_n according_a to_o this_o of_o paul_n 28_o paul_n act._n 20._o 28_o that_o god_n have_v purchase_v to_o himself_o a_o church_n with_o his_o own_o blood_n wherefore_o 20_o wherefore_o 1_o cor._n 6._o 20_o see_v we_o be_v buy_v with_o such_o a_o price_n we_o ought_v to_o glorify_v god_n in_o our_o body_n and_o in_o our_o spirit_n which_o be_v god_n 6._o god_n heb._n 6._o 5_o 6._o and_o not_o to_o fall_v away_o when_o we_o have_v taste_v of_o the_o good_a word_n of_o god_n and_o of_o the_o power_n of_o the_o world_n to_o come_v see_v thereby_o we_o crucify_v to_o ourselves_o the_o son_n of_o god_n afresh_o and_o put_v he_o to_o a_o open_a shame_n by_o our_o new_a commit_v sin_n after_o repentance_n also_o we_o must_v ruminate_v upon_o the_o transcendent_a worth_n of_o the_o blood_n of_o our_o crucify_a redeemer_n with_o pure_a affection_n for_o it_o be_v a_o infinite_a price_n to_o satisfy_v the_o justice_n of_o a_o infinite_a god_n we_o can_v conceive_v much_o less_o express_v the_o incomprehensible_a goodness_n of_o christ_n who_o of_o his_o mere_a love_n have_v give_v up_o himself_o and_o his_o whole_a nature_n both_o divine_a and_o humane_a to_o purchase_v our_o redemption_n with_o his_o own_o blood_n his_o deity_n of_o itself_o can_v not_o suffer_v either_o hunger_n or_o thirst_n pain_n or_o torment_v for_o these_o and_o all_o other_o his_o suffering_n do_v proper_o belong_v to_o his_o humane_a nature_n but_o by_o the_o personal_a union_n of_o his_o humanity_n with_o his_o deity_n the_o divine_a nature_n of_o christ_n do_v suffer_v together_o with_o his_o humanity_n by_o a_o near_a sympathy_n than_o be_v between_o the_o member_n of_o the_o natural_a body_n and_o the_o head_n or_o between_o the_o member_n of_o the_o mystical_a body_n of_o christ_n and_o himself_o who_o be_v their_o head_n for_o these_o member_n both_o natural_a and_o spiritual_a be_v but_o knit_v and_o unite_v to_o the_o head_n by_o firm_a ligament_n but_o the_o humanity_n of_o christ_n be_v take_v up_o into_o his_o deity_n and_o so_o make_v one_o christ_n saul_n persecute_v christ_n when_o he_o do_v persecute_v his_o church_n for_o thus_o say_v christ_n unto_o he_o 5_o he_o act._n 9_o 4_o 5_o saul_n saul_n why_o persecute_v thou_o i_o and_o he_o say_v who_o be_v thou_o lord_n and_o the_o lord_n say_v i_o be_o jesus_n who_o thou_o persecute_v for_o he_o persecute_v he_o in_o his_o member_n he_o be_v their_o head_n how_o much_o more_o than_o do_v the_o deity_n of_o christ_n suffer_v throughout_o his_o whole_a passion_n by_o simpathize_v with_o his_o humane_a nature_n not_o only_o as_o 3_o as_o cor._n 11._o 3_o god_n be_v the_o head_n of_o christ_n but_o chief_o because_o his_o humane_a nature_n be_v personal_o unite_v to_o his_o deity_n this_o be_v the_o cause_n why_o the_o blood_n of_o christ_n his_o suffering_n and_o his_o death_n be_v of_o so_o great_a merit_n and_o of_o such_o a_o infinite_a price_n if_o it_o be_v so_o that_o christ_n do_v give_v himself_o in_o his_o whole_a nature_n for_o we_o that_o his_o blood_n shall_v be_v spill_v his_o body_n mangle_a and_o torture_v his_o soul_n torment_v his_o glory_n cloud_v with_o ignominy_n and_o shame_n and_o that_o his_o deity_n shall_v be_v blaspheme_v and_o spiteful_o dishonour_v for_o our_o redemption_n and_o if_o we_o be_v buy_v with_o so_o great_a a_o price_n we_o have_v then_o as_o great_a cause_n as_o ever_o david_n have_v 4._o have_v psal_n 103_o 1_o 2_o 3_o 4._o to_o bless_v the_o lord_n and_o to_o stir_v up_o all_o that_o be_v within_o we_o to_o praise_v his_o holy_a name_n for_o all_o the_o benefit_n of_o our_o redemption_n for_o he_o forgive_v all_o our_o iniquity_n he_o heal_v all_o our_o disease_n he_o redeem_v our_o life_n from_o destruction_n and_o he_o crow_v we_o with_o love_a kindness_n and_o tender_a mercy_n for_o if_o we_o can_v apply_v to_o ourselves_o by_o a_o true_a faith_n jesus_n christ_n and_o he_o crucify_v for_o we_o 20_o we_o gal._n 2._o 20_o as_o paul_n do_v he_o will_v fasten_v the_o guilt_n of_o our_o sin_n to_o his_o own_o cross_n that_o it_o shall_v not_o cleave_v to_o our_o soul_n and_o he_o will_v remit_v the_o punishment_n that_o be_v due_a to_o we_o for_o they_o also_o he_o will_v heal_v and_o cure_v all_o the_o spiritual_a disease_n of_o our_o soul_n by_o pour_v clean_a water_n upon_o we_o and_o by_o sanctify_v we_o with_o his_o grace_n and_o holy_a spirit_n unto_o newness_n of_o life_n which_o be_v a_o sure_a evidence_n of_o the_o pardon_n of_o our_o sin_n and_o then_o he_o will_v embrace_v we_o with_o the_o arm_n of_o his_o love_n and_o will_v crown_v we_o with_o everlasting_a peace_n consider_v yet_o
blasphemous_a word_n and_o cruel_a torment_n upon_o the_o cross_n even_o to_o the_o pour_v out_o of_o his_o very_a heart_n blood_n to_o purge_v and_o cleanse_v we_o from_o the_o guilt_n and_o from_o the_o filth_n of_o all_o our_o sin_n and_o that_o he_o suffer_v whatsoever_o the_o malice_n and_o power_n of_o the_o devil_n can_v inflict_v upon_o he_o and_o also_o that_o for_o the_o time_n his_o divine_a nature_n do_v refuse_v to_o minister_v comfort_n to_o his_o humanity_n in_o these_o his_o bitter_a torment_n what_o thankfulness_n then_o do_v we_o owe_v to_o our_o dear_a saviour_n for_o his_o wonderful_a love_n to_o we_o what_o can_v be_v too_o dear_a for_o he_o that_o do_v account_v nothing_o too_o dear_a for_o we_o what_o duty_n what_o reverence_n and_o fear_n do_v we_o owe_v unto_o he_o who_o have_v pay_v so_o great_a a_o price_n for_o our_o redemption_n our_o best_a expression_n of_o love_n and_o duty_n be_v no_o way_n answerable_a to_o that_o which_o christ_n have_v deserve_v and_o which_o we_o be_v sound_v to_o perform_v unto_o he_o yet_o if_o they_o come_v from_o a_o willing_a mind_n and_o from_o a_o sincere_a heart_n christ_n our_o saviour_n will_v accept_v they_o and_o out_o of_o his_o fullness_n will_v supply_v what_o be_v want_v in_o we_o and_o god_n will_v be_v well_o please_v with_o it_o for_o his_o sake_n here_o be_v much_o matter_n of_o heavenly_a comfort_n for_o we_o if_o our_o heart_n can_v devout_o meditate_v upon_o it_o and_o receive_v it_o our_o life_n may_v be_v full_a of_o misery_n and_o our_o heart_n full_a of_o sadness_n and_o perplexity_n our_o faith_n may_v be_v so_o weak_a that_o we_o can_v have_v no_o apprehension_n of_o the_o love_n and_o favour_n of_o god_n and_o our_o spirit_n may_v be_v so_o cast_v down_o that_o we_o can_v raise_v they_o up_o towards_o heaven_n we_o may_v be_v press_v with_o trouble_n cross_n and_o sorrow_n beyond_o our_o strength_n and_o the_o light_n of_o god_n countenance_n may_v be_v so_o eclipse_v that_o we_o can_v see_v no_o token_n of_o his_o grace_n and_o favour_n to_o sweeten_v the_o bitterness_n of_o our_o suffering_n and_o to_o support_v we_o under_o the_o pressure_n of_o they_o but_o we_o be_v ready_a to_o faint_v and_o to_o cast_v off_o all_o hope_n of_o relief_n and_o comfort_n 11._o comfort_n psal_n 42._o 11._o but_o for_o all_o this_o we_o need_v not_o fear_v our_o soul_n need_v not_o be_v disquiet_v within_o we_o for_o if_o we_o wait_v on_o god_n he_o will_v be_v our_o present_a help_n he_o will_v be_v our_o god_n and_o he_o will_v not_o forsake_v we_o the_o brightness_n of_o his_o countenance_n may_v be_v darken_v for_o a_o few_o hour_n as_o it_o be_v with_o the_o sun_n at_o this_o very_a same_o time_n 2._o time_n mal._n 4._o 2._o but_o the_o sun_n of_o righteousness_n will_v again_o appear_v to_o we_o with_o heal_v in_o his_o wing_n then_o we_o shall_v see_v the_o salvation_n of_o the_o lord_n if_o we_o can_v look_v up_o with_o the_o eye_n of_o faith_n to_o our_o sweet_a saviour_n who_o be_v bring_v to_o a_o low_a degree_n of_o spiritual_a desertion_n in_o the_o apprehension_n of_o his_o humane_a nature_n than_o we_o can_v be_v and_o yet_o he_o find_v a_o return_n of_o the_o gracious_a aspect_n of_o his_o father_n countenance_n towards_o he_o whereby_o he_o have_v sanctify_v and_o sweeten_v whatsoever_o can_v betide_v we_o to_o sink_v our_o spirit_n or_o to_o shake_v our_o faith_n and_o confidence_n in_o god_n if_o our_o ear_n be_v spiritual_o bore_v to_o hear_v those_o doleful_a and_o lamentable_a word_n which_o our_o saviour_n utter_v upon_o the_o cross_n when_o he_o be_v ready_a to_o yield_v up_o his_o spirit_n to_o god_n his_o father_n and_o yet_o apply_v they_o to_o ourselves_o by_o faith_n we_o may_v then_o draw_v virtue_n and_o power_n from_o they_o to_o strengthen_v our_o faith_n and_o to_o support_v our_o hope_n in_o the_o assurance_n of_o his_o love_n that_o he_o will_v not_o bring_v we_o to_o so_o low_a a_o degree_n of_o spiritual_a desertion_n because_o our_o weakness_n will_v not_o bear_v so_o great_a a_o trial_n but_o will_v make_v we_o to_o hold_v out_o to_o the_o end_n by_o the_o almighty_a power_n of_o his_o eternal_a spirit_n now_o learn_v o_o my_o sorrowful_a soul_n so_o to_o imprint_v the_o crucify_a of_o thy_o dear_a saviour_n in_o thy_o heart_n by_o faith_n that_o thou_o may_v draw_v grace_n and_o virtue_n from_o thence_o to_o crucify_v all_o thy_o corruption_n and_o the_o evil_a concupiscence_n of_o thy_o flesh_n that_o thy_o affection_n may_v not_o be_v carry_v after_o worldly_a vanity_n that_o thy_o eye_n may_v not_o delight_v to_o gaze_v upon_o obscene_a spectacle_n that_o thy_o ear_n may_v be_v dull_a to_o unsavoury_a speech_n but_o swift_a to_o hear_v word_n that_o tend_v to_o edification_n and_o that_o thy_o tongue_n may_v have_v no_o motion_n to_o utter_v any_o thing_n that_o be_v dishonourable_a to_o god_n or_o hurtful_a to_o thy_o neighbour_n 14._o neighbour_n gal._n 6._o 14._o thus_o by_o the_o power_n of_o christ_n crucify_v the_o world_n shall_v be_v crucify_v to_o thou_o and_o thou_o unto_o the_o world_n if_o thou_o do_v true_o believe_v that_o he_o be_v crucify_v for_o thou_o because_o it_o will_v dull_v the_o edge_n of_o thy_o affection_n to_o all_o earthly_a thing_n it_o will_v work_v in_o thou_o a_o hatred_n and_o detestation_n of_o all_o sinful_a pleasure_n and_o thou_o will_v daily_o labour_v and_o 22._o and_o col._n 3._o 9_o eph._n 4._o 22._o strive_v to_o mortify_v the_o old_a man_n of_o sin_n that_o have_v have_v his_o habitation_n in_o thy_o bosom_n above_o these_o threescore_o year_n in_o thy_o first_o creation_n thou_o be_v a_o lovely_a creature_n belove_v of_o thy_o god_n without_o spot_n or_o blemish_n in_o soul_n or_o in_o body_n thou_o be_v beautify_v and_o adorn_v with_o all_o grace_n and_o holy_a virtue_n reverence_v and_o obey_v of_o all_o other_o creature_n here_o upon_o earth_n and_o the_o celestial_a orb_n do_v cast_v no_o evil_a aspect_n upon_o thou_o but_o now_o thou_o be_v deform_v with_o sin_n thou_o be_v pollute_v in_o all_o the_o faculty_n of_o thy_o soul_n and_o in_o all_o the_o part_n of_o thy_o body_n for_o thou_o be_v spiritual_o blind_a naked_a and_o void_a of_o all_o goodness_n thou_o be_v deaf_a and_o dumb_a to_o heavenly_a thing_n thou_o be_v lame_a and_o impotent_a and_o can_v not_o walk_v in_o the_o path_n of_o righteousness_n also_o thou_o be_v so_o bend_v and_o bow_v to_o the_o earth_n that_o thou_o can_v not_o raise_v up_o thy_o heart_n towards_o heaven_n and_o so_o full_a of_o spiritual_a disease_n and_o infirmity_n that_o there_o be_v no_o sound_a part_n in_o thou_o but_o this_o be_v thy_o comfort_n o_o my_o soul_n that_o the_o blood_n of_o thy_o crucify_a redeemer_n which_o be_v spill_v upon_o the_o cross_n will_v take_v away_o all_o thy_o deformity_n of_o sin_n and_o will_v heal_v all_o thy_o spiritual_a disease_n and_o his_o righteousness_n will_v make_v thou_o lovely_a in_o the_o sight_n of_o god_n if_o this_o be_v our_o condition_n by_o nature_n if_o we_o be_v thus_o deform_v with_o the_o guilt_n of_o sin_n that_o cleave_v to_o our_o soul_n by_o our_o fall_n in_o adam_n and_o if_o we_o have_v no_o mean_n to_o regain_v our_o first_o happiness_n in_o adam_n first_o innocency_n but_o by_o christ_n and_o to_o be_v cleanse_v from_o all_o our_o sin_n but_o by_o his_o blood_n then_o our_o chief_a care_n must_v be_v how_o to_o enjoy_v christ_n and_o how_o to_o have_v this_o great_a benefit_n by_o his_o blood_n if_o we_o be_v ingraft_v into_o he_o by_o faith_n we_o shall_v enjoy_v he_o in_o his_o whole_a nature_n as_o he_o be_v god_n and_o man_n we_o shall_v partake_v with_o he_o in_o all_o his_o excellency_n and_o grace_n he_o will_v work_v a_o new_a creation_n in_o we_o by_o his_o spirit_n and_o a_o thorough_a change_n in_o all_o the_o faculty_n of_o our_o soul_n and_o in_o all_o the_o affection_n of_o our_o heart_n that_o no_o sin_n shall_v cleave_v to_o our_o soul_n for_o our_o condemnation_n for_o he_o will_v also_o nail_v the_o the_o guilt_n of_o all_o our_o sin_n to_o his_o cross_n upon_o which_o he_o shed_v his_o most_o precious_a blood_n to_o make_v a_o atonement_n for_o they_o all_o he_o will_v also_o take_v away_o the_o stain_n and_o filth_n of_o our_o sin_n by_o his_o sanctify_a grace_n and_o holy_a spirit_n and_o will_v put_v upon_o we_o the_o robe_n of_o his_o own_o righteousness_n which_o will_v cover_v all_o our_o deformity_n and_o will_v make_v we_o amiable_a and_o lovely_a in_o the_o sight_n of_o god_n by_o the_o merit_n of_o christ_n blood_n our_o sin_n shall_v never_o be_v lay_v to_o our_o charge_n by_o the_o power_n of_o his_o death_n we_o be_v make_v able_a
prophecy_n be_v then_o fulfil_v that_o be_v speak_v of_o he_o in_o his_o life_n 46._o life_n luk._n 23._o 46._o then_o he_o commend_v his_o spirit_n into_o the_o hand_n of_o his_o father_n and_o give_v up_o the_o ghost_n as_o this_o lamb_n of_o god_n live_v in_o perfect_a innocency_n so_o he_o die_v in_o perfect_a meekness_n then_o present_o after_o 34_o after_o joh._n 19_o 34_o one_o of_o the_o soldier_n pierce_v his_o side_n with_o a_o spear_n to_o his_o very_a heart_n and_o forthwith_o c●me_v thereout_o blood_n and_o water_n that_o the_o scripture_n may_v be_v fulfil_v 10._o fulfil_v zech._n 12_o 10._o they_o shall_v look_v on_o he_o who_o they_o pierce_v this_o be_v also_o do_v that_o we_o may_v faithful_o believe_v the_o truth_n of_o his_o death_n this_o be_v a_o special_a article_n of_o our_o faith_n which_o we_o must_v steadfast_o believe_v if_o we_o will_v have_v comfort_n in_o the_o assurance_n of_o our_o redemption_n for_o if_o christ_n have_v not_o true_o dye_v the_o justice_n of_o god_n have_v not_o be_v full_o satisfy_v for_o our_o sin_n we_o can_v have_v have_v no_o power_n to_o die_v unto_o sin_n or_o to_o mortify_v our_o corruption_n and_o sinful_a lust_n and_o death_n will_v be_v most_o bitter_a fearful_a and_o terrible_a to_o we_o if_o christ_n have_v not_o dye_v and_o rise_v again_o how_o can_v death_n have_v be_v destroy_v how_o can_v the_o sting_n of_o death_n be_v take_v out_o who_o shall_v have_v sanctify_v death_n unto_o we_o and_o how_o can_v we_o be_v willing_a to_o embrace_v it_o wherefore_o if_o we_o do_v true_o believe_v the_o death_n of_o christ_n and_o that_o he_o die_v for_o we_o it_o will_v minister_v much_o matter_n of_o exceed_v great_a consolation_n to_o our_o soul_n at_o the_o hour_n of_o our_o dissolution_n from_o the_o former_a consideration_n we_o may_v draw_v much_o comfortable_a matter_n for_o our_o heart_n to_o meditate_v upon_o first_o it_o do_v evident_o appear_v that_o our_o saviour_n christ_n do_v assume_v to_o his_o deity_n our_o whole_a nature_n soul_n and_o body_n which_o do_v still_o retain_v all_o the_o property_n of_o humane_a nature_n unconfound_v with_o his_o deity_n 17_o deity_n heb._n 2._o 17_o he_o be_v like_a unto_o we_o in_o all_o thing_n 25._o thing_n heb_fw-mi 4._o 25._o sin_n only_o except_v his_o soul_n be_v sensible_a of_o grief_n and_o sorrow_n his_o body_n do_v feel_v the_o smart_n of_o pain_n he_o be_v subject_a to_o all_o our_o natural_a passion_n and_o infirmity_n which_o may_v be_v without_o sin_n he_o be_v sensible_a of_o hunger_n thirst_n weariness_n and_o the_o like_a he_o be_v also_o subject_a to_o mortality_n though_o not_o to_o corruption_n for_o 10_o for_o psal_n 16._o 10_o god_n will_v not_o suffer_v his_o holy_a one_o to_o see_v corruption_n because_o he_o have_v no_o spot_n or_o stain_v of_o sin_n in_o he_o and_o there_o be_v a_o true_a dissolution_n of_o his_o soul_n from_o his_o body_n when_o he_o die_v if_o christ_n have_v not_o assume_v our_o whole_a nature_n he_o can_v not_o have_v perfect_o save_v and_o redeem_v we_o soul_n and_o body_n and_o then_o the_o work_n which_o god_n send_v he_o to_o do_v have_v not_o be_v finish_v but_o we_o have_v still_o remain_v in_o our_o sin_n 10_o heb._n 10._o 10_o but_o the_o whole_a work_n of_o our_o redemption_n be_v full_o wrought_v by_o that_o which_o he_o suffer_v both_o in_o his_o soul_n and_o in_o his_o body_n to_o give_v we_o a_o holy_a assurance_n that_o we_o be_v free_v from_o the_o guilt_n of_o sin_n here_o and_o save_v from_o the_o condemn_a power_n of_o sin_n hereafter_o second_o we_o may_v learn_v from_o thence_o this_o instruction_n so_o to_o regulate_v our_o thirsty_a desire_n that_o they_o may_v be_v for_o the_o glory_n of_o god_n and_o not_o for_o own_o sinful_a end_n if_o we_o thirst_v after_o the_o thing_n of_o this_o world_n for_o any_o other_o end_n than_o for_o the_o honour_n of_o god_n our_o thirst_n be_v sinful_a and_o it_o will_v be_v satisfy_v with_o vinegar_n or_o gall_n and_o if_o we_o thirst_v after_o blood_n rapine_n or_o revenge_n the_o end_n of_o these_o and_o the_o like_a thirsty_a desire_n will_v be_v the_o death_n of_o our_o soul_n but_o if_o our_o thirst_n be_v holy_a and_o heavenly_a we_o shall_v then_o have_v thirsty_a desire_n and_o holy_a endeavour_n 613._o endeavour_n isal_n 613._o how_o to_o enjoy_v god_n and_o to_o do_v his_o will_n how_o to_o preserve_v our_o neighbour_n safety_n and_o how_o to_o keep_v ourselves_o undefiled_a and_o if_o we_o can_v say_v as_o david_n do_v 6._o do_v psal_n 143._o 6._o my_o soul_n thirst_v after_o thou_o o_o lord_n as_o a_o thirsty_a land_n then_o our_o thirst_n shall_v be_v quench_v and_o our_o soul_n shall_v be_v refresh_v with_o the_o sweet_a comfort_n of_o god_n also_o if_o we_o thirst_v after_o christ_n jesus_n who_o be_v the_o chief_a honour_n of_o a_o christian_a and_o after_o grace_n and_o godliness_n which_o be_v the_o true_a riches_n of_o the_o soul_n then_o christ_n will_v be_v a_o fountain_n of_o live_a water_n to_o we_o which_o only_o can_v quench_v our_o spiritual_a 10._o o_o joh._n 4._o 10._o thirst_n and_o refresh_v our_o pant_a soul_n and_o it_o shall_v spring_v up_o in_o we_o to_o everlasting_a life_n christ_n call_v every_o one_o to_o drink_v of_o this_o water_n 37_o water_n john_n 7._o 37_o be_v any_o man_n thirst_n let_v he_o come_v unto_o i_o and_o drink_n thus_o say_v the_o prophet_n 1._o prophet_n isa_n 55._o 1._o ho_o every_o one_o that_o thirst_v come_v you_o to_o the_o water_n and_o you_o that_o have_v no_o silver_n come_v buy_v and_o eat_v come_v i_o say_v buy_v wine_n and_o milk_n without_o silver_n and_o without_o money_n here_o christ_n offer_v himself_o and_o his_o grace_n free_o but_o to_o who_o it_o be_v only_o to_o such_o as_o have_v a_o spiritual_a thirst_n after_o he_o wherefore_o if_o this_o be_v the_o thirst_n of_o our_o soul_n to_o enjoy_v christ_n and_o he_o crucify_v we_o shall_v see_v such_o a_o fountain_n of_o water_n of_o life_n flow_v out_o of_o his_o bless_a fide_fw-la as_o will_v purify_v our_o heart_n from_o all_o sin_n and_o cleanse_v our_o conscience_n from_o all_o iniquity_n whereby_o our_o thirsty_a soul_n will_v be_v more_o comfort_v and_o refresh_v than_o our_o body_n can_v be_v by_o any_o fountain_n of_o water_n in_o our_o natural_a thirst_n 42._o thirst_n psal_n 42._o this_o holy_a thirst_n make_v david_n soul_n pant_v more_o after_o god_n than_o the_o hart_n pant_v after_o the_o water-brook_n three_o from_o this_o consideration_n that_o christ_n have_v vinegar_n give_v he_o in_o a_o sponge_n we_o may_v learn_v this_o profitable_a doctrine_n that_o there_o be_v no_o content_n nor_o stability_n in_o any_o earthly_a thing_n for_o though_o we_o shall_v enjoy_v all_o the_o contentment_n that_o the_o world_n can_v give_v we_o yet_o it_o will_v not_o satisfy_v our_o desire_n something_o will_v be_v want_v and_o we_o shall_v still_o thirst_v after_o more_o and_o we_o shall_v find_v soureness_n and_o bitterness_n in_o the_o best_a of_o earthly_a thing_n also_o that_o which_o we_o do_v possess_v we_o have_v it_o but_o in_o a_o sponge_n a_o sudden_a casualty_n by_o fire_n or_o water_n a_o word_n speak_v against_o king_n or_o state_n will_v wring_v it_o out_o a_o little_a pain_n or_o sickness_n a_o little_a trouble_n or_o sorrow_n will_v soon_o blast_n the_o comfort_n of_o of_o it_o and_o make_v it_o like_o vinegar_n to_o our_o taste_n if_o we_o shall_v meet_v with_o nothing_o to_o embitter_v or_o blast_v our_o earthly_a joy_n yet_o in_o their_o own_o nature_n they_o be_v transitory_a and_o unstable_a 1._o unstable_a eccl._n 12._o 1._o and_o when_o old_a age_n come_v we_o shall_v take_v no_o pleasure_n in_o they_o and_o death_n will_v quite_o bereave_v we_o of_o they_o all_o now_o than_o if_o we_o put_v our_o trust_n in_o these_o vain_a thing_n they_o will_v deceive_v and_o will_v give_v we_o no_o solid_a comfort_n except_o we_o do_v enjoy_v they_o in_o christ_n for_o without_o he_o the_o best_a of_o all_o earthly_a blessing_n be_v but_o vanity_n and_o vexation_n of_o spirit_n wherefore_o let_v this_o be_v our_o great_a care_n our_o chief_a joy_n and_o the_o desire_n of_o our_o soul_n to_o enjoy_v christ_n to_o be_v join_v unto_o he_o with_o the_o bond_n of_o faith_n and_o love_n and_o than_o whatsoever_o our_o estate_n or_o condition_n be_v we_o shall_v find_v comfort_n in_o it_o we_o shall_v enjoy_v it_o with_o a_o good_a conscience_n we_o shall_v glorify_v god_n with_o it_o and_o if_o we_o do_v casual_o lose_v it_o we_o shall_v lose_v nothing_o by_o it_o for_o we_o shall_v still_o enjoy_v christ_n who_o will_v abundant_o recompense_v our_o earthly_a loss_n with_o spiritual_a comfort_n here_o and_o with_o a_o eternal_a
inheritance_n hereafter_o four_o when_o death_n come_v near_o to_o we_o we_o have_v most_o need_v of_o the_o best_a comfort_n both_o for_o soul_n and_o body_n that_o we_o may_v the_o more_o strong_o encounter_v with_o this_o terrible_a enemy_n in_o the_o dissolution_n of_o our_o soul_n from_o our_o body_n but_o christ_n at_o this_o time_n have_v sour_a vinegar_n give_v he_o which_o can_v no_o way_n comfort_v he_o but_o rather_o aggravate_v his_o pain_n and_o sorrow_n when_o he_o be_v every_o way_n in_o great_a extremity_n this_o do_v fit_o resemble_v the_o case_n of_o many_o of_o god_n dear_a servant_n for_o they_o be_v often_o trouble_v and_o perplex_v with_o many_o fear_n doubt_n temptation_n and_o evil_a suggestion_n of_o the_o devil_n when_o they_o be_v to_o enter_v into_o a_o single_a combat_n with_o death_n itself_o for_o than_o he_o will_v lay_v their_o sin_n before_o they_o with_o all_o the_o aggravation_n that_o may_v be_v and_o he_o will_v labour_v to_o hide_v the_o mercy_n of_o god_n in_o christ_n from_o they_o that_o they_o may_v have_v no_o hope_n or_o comfort_n to_o support_v they_o in_o this_o great_a conflict_n which_o do_v put_v they_o into_o trouble_n of_o mind_n grief_n of_o heart_n and_o anguish_n of_o spirit_n and_o it_o be_v more_o uncomfortable_a and_o unpleasing_a to_o their_o spiritual_a taste_n than_o any_o vinegar_n can_v be_v to_o the_o palate_n then_o be_v the_o time_n when_o the_o devil_n be_v most_o malicious_o bend_v against_o they_o than_o do_v he_o bestir_v himself_o to_o trouble_v the_o peace_n of_o their_o conscience_n to_o disquiet_v the_o tranquillity_n of_o their_o mind_n and_o to_o keep_v they_o from_o the_o assurance_n of_o the_o love_n and_o favour_n of_o god_n to_o they_o in_o christ_n that_o they_o shall_v not_o comfortable_o resign_v up_o their_o soul_n unto_o god_n he_o will_v affright_v they_o with_o the_o fear_n of_o death_n with_o the_o greatness_n of_o their_o sin_n with_o the_o hypocrisy_n of_o their_o heart_n with_o their_o infidelity_n and_o unbelief_n he_o will_v labour_v to_o keep_v the_o gracious_a promise_n of_o god_n from_o they_o or_o else_o to_o persuade_v they_o that_o they_o belong_v not_o unto_o they_o that_o so_o they_o shall_v have_v no_o comfortable_a assurance_n of_o the_o pardon_n of_o their_o sin_n also_o he_o will_v terrify_v they_o with_o the_o fear_n of_o god_n justice_n and_o with_o the_o terror_n of_o the_o dreadful_a day_n of_o judgement_n if_o it_o be_v possible_a to_o drive_v they_o into_o despair_n but_o here_o be_v comfort_n for_o a_o poor_a sinner_n that_o it_o be_v thus_o assault_v by_o the_o devil_n when_o he_o be_v near_o his_o departure_n out_o of_o this_o life_n or_o at_o any_o other_o time_n that_o christ_n have_v sanctify_v all_o these_o sorrow_n and_o conflict_n to_o he_o and_o he_o will_v confirm_v his_o faith_n and_o establish_v his_o hope_n upon_o his_o true_a humiliation_n for_o his_o sin_n and_o then_o those_o fear_n and_o doubt_n will_v vanish_v away_o for_o he_o know_v that_o we_o be_v not_o able_a to_o resist_v such_o temptation_n and_o the_o weakness_n of_o our_o spirit_n and_o of_o body_n be_v such_o that_o we_o can_v withstand_v such_o strong_a assault_n and_o therefore_o christ_n will_v give_v most_o strength_n to_o our_o inward_a man_n when_o the_o outward_a man_n be_v most_o weak_a and_o he_o will_v most_o weaken_v the_o power_n of_o the_o devil_n when_o his_o malice_n be_v strong_a to_o do_v we_o hurt_v and_o though_o we_o may_v be_v dangerous_o foil_v in_o these_o spiritual_a combat_n yet_o christ_n will_v uphold_v our_o faith_n he_o will_v give_v we_o spiritual_a consolation_n and_o will_v speak_v peace_n to_o our_o soul_n and_o conscience_n when_o through_o weakness_n of_o body_n we_o can_v express_v the_o joy_n and_o comfort_n of_o it_o five_o before_o we_o can_v willing_o leave_v this_o world_n we_o must_v be_v well_o persuade_v that_o we_o shall_v enjoy_v a_o better_a habitation_n in_o the_o world_n to_o come_v which_o holy_a persuasion_n that_o we_o may_v have_v we_o must_v serious_o consider_v how_o we_o have_v do_v the_o work_n which_o god_n have_v appoint_v we_o how_o we_o have_v improve_v the_o talon_n that_o he_o have_v lend_v we_o how_o we_o have_v glorify_v god_n in_o our_o call_n and_o what_o good_a we_o have_v do_v to_o our_o neighbour_n according_a to_o the_o mean_n and_o ability_n that_o god_n have_v give_v we_o for_o we_o must_v give_v a_o account_n of_o all_o these_o thing_n before_o the_o tribunal_n seat_n of_o god_n and_o we_o shall_v be_v judge_v according_a to_o our_o work_n wherefore_o if_o we_o can_v true_o say_v that_o we_o have_v do_v god_n work_n to_o the_o best_a of_o our_o power_n &_o with_o a_o upright_a heart_n and_o that_o we_o have_v well_o improve_v our_o time_n and_o our_o talon_n to_o the_o glory_n of_o god_n than_o we_o may_v say_v with_o christ_n it_o be_v finish_v and_o with_o paul_n 8_o paul_n 2_o tim._n 7._o 8_o i_o have_v finish_v my_o course_n and_o have_v keep_v the_o faith_n henceforth_o be_v lay_v up_o for_o i_o a_o crown_n of_o righteousness_n which_o the_o lord_n the_o righteous_a judge_n shall_v give_v i_o at_o that_o day_n and_o not_o to_o i_o only_o but_o unto_o all_o they_o also_o that_o love_n his_o appear_v and_o though_o our_o work_n have_v be_v very_o imperfect_o do_v by_o we_o yet_o christ_n our_o saviour_n will_v make_v it_o perfect_a by_o that_o which_o he_o have_v do_v for_o we_o in_o our_o nature_n and_o god_n will_v accept_v it_o for_o his_o sake_n then_o we_o shall_v cheerful_o resign_v up_o our_o soul_n to_o god_n at_o the_o hour_n of_o our_o dissolution_n six_o christ_n do_v here_o teach_v we_o to_o commend_v our_o soul_n into_o the_o hand_n of_o god_n we_o receive_v they_o immediate_o from_o god_n and_o therefore_o we_o ought_v to_o resign_v they_o up_o again_o unto_o he_o he_o breathe_v into_o we_o the_o breath_n of_o life_n which_o be_v our_o chief_a and_o most_o precious_a jewel_n and_o therefore_o we_o ought_v to_o keep_v it_o holy_a and_o undefiled_a for_o he_o that_o when_o he_o be_v please_v to_o call_v for_o it_o we_o may_v be_v sure_a to_o deliver_v it_o up_o to_o himself_o for_o the_o devil_n will_v be_v ready_a watch_v for_o it_o as_o soon_o as_o it_o be_v separate_v from_o the_o body_n and_o none_o can_v keep_v it_o from_o he_o but_o only_a god_n wherefore_o we_o must_v keep_v our_o soul_n so_o pure_a and_o clean_a that_o god_n may_v accept_v they_o and_o take_v they_o into_o his_o charge_n for_o if_o we_o present_v unto_o he_o a_o filthy_a soul_n pollute_v with_o the_o guilt_n of_o sin_n we_o have_v no_o ground_n to_o believe_v that_o god_n will_v take_v care_n of_o it_o and_o keep_v it_o unto_o the_o general_a resurrection_n wherefore_o we_o shall_v study_v and_o labour_n to_o keep_v our_o soul_n clean_o from_o sin_n by_o wash_v they_o daily_o in_o the_o blood_n of_o christ_n by_o faith_n if_o they_o be_v stain_v with_o the_o sin_n of_o the_o day_n we_o shall_v thus_o cleanse_v they_o at_o night_n before_o we_o sleep_v and_o if_o they_o be_v defile_v with_o the_o pollution_n of_o the_o night_n ●_o we_o must_v not_o forget_v to_o wash_v they_o with_o the_o tear_n sigh_n and_o groan_n that_o flow_v from_o a_o sorrowful_a and_o contrite_a heart_n in_o the_o morning_n before_o we_o set_v about_o our_o necessary_a occasion_n in_o our_o call_n that_o we_o may_v comfortable_o believe_v that_o god_n will_v bless_v and_o prosper_v our_o handy_a work_n if_o this_o be_v our_o daily_a and_o constant_a practice_n the_o blessing_n of_o god_n will_v go_v along_o with_o we_o in_o all_o our_o action_n sin_n can_v then_o cleave_v to_o our_o soul_n to_o make_v death_n fearful_a to_o we_o death_n can_v then_o come_v sudden_o upon_o we_o neither_o will_v the_o remembrance_n of_o it_o be_v terrible_a but_o we_o shall_v cheerful_o commend_v our_o soul_n to_o god_n because_o we_o may_v confident_o believe_v that_o he_o will_v keep_v they_o in_o his_o heavenly_a mansion_n until_o they_o shall_v be_v again_o unite_v to_o our_o body_n with_o a_o unseparable_a union_n and_o make_v glorious_a body_n fit_a to_o live_v and_o reign_v with_o christ_n for_o ever_o but_o natural_a man_n know_v not_o the_o worth_n of_o their_o soul_n nor_o the_o great_a price_n wherewith_o they_o be_v redeem_v if_o they_o belong_v unto_o christ_n they_o suppose_v that_o the_o soul_n come_v from_o a_o principle_n of_o nature_n as_o the_o body_n do_v whereas_o it_o be_v a_o immortal_a spirit_n which_o proceed_v not_o from_o any_o mortal_a principle_n but_o be_v breathe_v into_o we_o by_o the_o holy_a ghost_n as_o soon_o as_o the_o body_n be_v frame_v in_o the_o womb_n and_o make_v capable_a to_o receive_v this_o breath_n of_o
life_n though_o the_o soul_n be_v thus_o high_o to_o be_v prize_v and_o far_o excel_v the_o body_n in_o worth_n and_o dignity_n yet_o natural_a man_n will_v pamper_v and_o garnish_v out_o the_o body_n which_o be_v every_o day_n subject_a to_o corruption_n and_o change_n but_o they_o suffer_v their_o soul_n to_o starve_v for_o want_v of_o spiritual_a food_n and_o to_o go_v naked_a for_o want_v of_o spiritual_a clothing_n whereby_o they_o be_v expose_v to_o the_o venomous_a dart_n of_o the_o devil_n and_o to_o the_o scorch_a heat_n of_o their_o sinful_a lust_n their_o soul_n have_v no_o spiritual_a light_n to_o foresee_v danger_n and_o to_o shun_v they_o they_o have_v no_o heavenly_a grace_n to_o resist_v the_o temptation_n and_o allurement_n of_o the_o world_n the_o flesh_n and_o the_o devil_n but_o what_o the_o eye_n or_o the_o ear_n let_v in_o be_v willing_o receive_v thus_o their_o soul_n be_v pollute_v and_o unclean_a and_o death_n do_v snatch_v they_o away_o because_o they_o can_v willing_o deliver_v they_o up_o for_o they_o have_v no_o faith_n to_o believe_v and_o no_o assurance_n to_o persuade_v they_o that_o god_n will_v receive_v their_o soul_n when_o they_o be_v part_v from_o their_o body_n this_o be_v the_o condition_n of_o our_o soul_n by_o nature_n and_o so_o long_o as_o they_o be_v in_o this_o condition_n god_n will_v not_o receive_v they_o and_o then_o they_o must_v needs_o be_v a_o prey_n to_o the_o devil_n 4._o devil_n psal_n 103_o 4._o but_o christ_n have_v redeem_v our_o soul_n from_o destruction_n 20._o destruction_n 1_o cor._n 6._o 20._o he_o have_v buy_v we_o with_o a_o great_a price_n he_o have_v shed_v his_o most_o precious_a blood_n upon_o the_o cross_n to_o take_v away_o the_o guilt_n and_o filth_n of_o our_o sin_n wherefore_o god_n may_v just_o claim_v our_o whole_a man_n both_o soul_n and_o body_n as_o his_o due_n by_o a_o treble_a right_n by_o the_o right_n of_o creation_n of_o donation_n and_o of_o purchase_n 28_o purchase_n act._n 17._o 28_o for_o in_o he_o we_o live_v and_o move_v and_o have_v our_o be_v 7_o be_v 1_o cor._n 4._o 7_o what_o have_v we_o that_o we_o do_v not_o receive_v from_o god_n what_o shall_v we_o bequeath_v unto_o he_o in_o thankfulness_n for_o all_o his_o benefit_n to_o we_o we_o can_v do_v no_o less_o than_o devote_v ourselves_o soul_n and_o body_n to_o he_o and_o to_o his_o service_n while_o we_o live_v here_o and_o when_o this_o life_n shall_v be_v end_v to_o bequeath_v our_o precious_a soul_n unto_o he_o purify_v and_o cleanse_v from_o all_o sin_n in_o the_o blood_n of_o christ_n by_o faith_n for_o nothing_o can_v be_v too_o pure_a that_o be_v present_v to_o he_o and_o nothing_o can_v be_v too_o dear_a and_o precious_a for_o he_o if_o we_o bequeath_v this_o precious_a legacy_n to_o god_n in_o our_o life-time_n than_o he_o will_v require_v it_o as_o of_o right_o belong_v unto_o he_o and_o he_o will_v receive_v it_o from_o we_o at_o our_o death_n this_o will_v sweeten_v the_o bitterness_n of_o death_n to_o we_o which_o will_v put_v a_o end_n to_o all_o our_o sorrow_n and_o this_o will_v make_v we_o willing_a to_o leave_v this_o world_n and_o desire_v with_o paul_n to_o be_v dissolve_v because_o we_o do_v steadfast_o believe_v that_o we_o shall_v be_v with_o christ_n but_o if_o we_o give_v ourselves_o to_o worldly_a vanity_n to_o lewd_a and_o licentious_a live_n and_o not_o to_o the_o true_a worship_n and_o service_n of_o god_n we_o shall_v then_o be_v unwilling_a to_o part_v with_o this_o life_n or_o to_o look_v upon_o death_n when_o it_o come_v because_o we_o know_v not_o to_o who_o it_o will_v deliver_v our_o poor_a soul_n for_o we_o can_v comfortable_o commend_v they_o to_o god_n when_o we_o die_v with_o any_o hope_n or_o good_a assurance_n that_o he_o will_v receive_v they_o see_v they_o do_v god_n no_o service_n while_o we_o live_v what_o thankfulness_n be_v it_o then_o to_o commend_v our_o soul_n unto_o god_n when_o we_o can_v keep_v they_o no_o long_o for_o the_o world_n or_o for_o our_o sinful_a delight_n and_o what_o comfort_n can_v we_o have_v at_o our_o death_n if_o we_o have_v no_o faith_n to_o believe_v that_o we_o shall_v enjoy_v all_o happiness_n with_o christ_n but_o rather_o just_a cause_n to_o fear_v that_o the_o sinfulness_n of_o our_o life_n will_v bring_v we_o to_o everlasting_a torment_n after_o death_n it_o may_v sometime_o fall_v out_o that_o we_o shall_v neither_o have_v time_n nor_o ability_n to_o dispose_v of_o our_o soul_n when_o we_o die_v as_o we_o desire_v and_o as_o we_o ought_v for_o if_o death_n come_v sudden_o upon_o we_o by_o any_o casualty_n or_o otherwise_o we_o have_v then_o no_o time_n to_o commit_v our_o soul_n unto_o god_n protection_n or_o if_o we_o be_v take_v away_o by_o some_o violent_a or_o malignant_a disease_n which_o do_v distemper_v our_o sense_n and_o weaken_v our_o understanding_n and_o reason_n that_o we_o be_v unfit_a for_o this_o great_a work_n we_o have_v then_o no_o ability_n to_o resign_v up_o our_o spirit_n unto_o god_n in_o a_o holy_a way_n what_o shall_v we_o do_v then_o where_o be_v our_o comfort_n in_o death_n this_o need_v not_o trouble_v our_o thought_n if_o we_o have_v former_o in_o our_o life_n have_v any_o holy_a assurance_n of_o our_o union_n with_o christ_n of_o our_o justification_n by_o his_o righteousness_n of_o our_o redemption_n by_o the_o merit_n of_o his_o blood_n and_o of_o his_o death_n and_o of_o his_o sanctification_n by_o the_o holy_a ghost_n and_o that_o we_o have_v live_v virtuous_o and_o pious_o in_o the_o fear_n of_o god_n and_o have_v serve_v the_o lord_n our_o god_n with_o a_o perfect_a and_o upright_a heart_n in_o the_o time_n of_o our_o life_n for_o then_o death_n can_v come_v sudden_o upon_o we_o and_o no_o extremity_n of_o sickness_n or_o pain_n can_v separate_v we_o from_o christ_n nor_o take_v away_o our_o comfort_n from_o our_o soul_n at_o our_o death_n because_o god_n will_v receive_v they_o up_o into_o his_o holy_a habitation_n to_o abide_v and_o dwell_v with_o christ_n for_o ever_o though_o we_o have_v neither_o time_n nor_o ability_n to_o commend_v they_o unto_o he_o last_o let_v we_o zealous_o meditate_v for_o our_o great_a comfort_n upon_o the_o blood_n and_o water_n that_o gush_v out_o from_o our_o saviour_n heart_n after_o he_o be_v dead_a when_o his_o side_n be_v pierce_v with_o the_o spear_n there_o be_v blood_n to_o take_v away_o the_o guilt_n of_o sin_n for_o our_o justification_n and_o there_o be_v water_n to_o wash_v away_o the_o stain_n of_o sin_n for_o our_o sanctification_n for_o as_o our_o sin_n be_v impute_v to_o he_o as_o our_o surety_n so_o by_o faith_n his_o righteousness_n be_v impute_v to_o we_o and_o god_n do_v account_v we_o just_o and_o righteous_a in_o his_o sight_n for_o the_o sake_n of_o christ_n so_o likewise_o by_o grace_n we_o be_v renew_v daily_o and_o sanctify_a in_o our_o life_n and_o conversation_n wherefore_o we_o shall_v raise_v up_o our_o thought_n and_o the_o affection_n of_o our_o heart_n to_o this_o sanctify_a water_n when_o we_o think_v upon_o our_o baptism_n or_o see_v that_o sacrament_n celebrate_v that_o our_o heart_n may_v be_v sprinkle_v with_o it_o by_o faith_n to_o purify_v our_o soul_n from_o the_o leprosy_n and_o spot_n of_o our_o sin_n also_o we_o must_v set_v the_o cogitation_n of_o our_o heart_n upon_o this_o sacred_a blood_n when_o we_o feed_v at_o the_o lord_n table_n that_o by_o faith_n we_o may_v be_v persuade_v that_o christ_n do_v shed_v his_o blood_n and_o be_v crucify_v for_o we_o consider_v also_o that_o though_o the_o body_n of_o our_o bless_a redeemer_n be_v miserable_o rend_v and_o tear_v by_o the_o cruelty_n of_o his_o enemy_n yet_o god_n will_v not_o suffer_v they_o to_o break_v a_o bone_n of_o he_o according_a to_o this_o of_o david_n 20_o david_n psal_n 34._o 20_o he_o keep_v all_o his_o bone_n not_o one_o of_o they_o be_v break_v and_o though_o they_o break_v the_o bone_n of_o the_o two_o malefactor_n that_o be_v crucify_v with_o he_o yet_o they_o break_v not_o a_o bone_n of_o he_o that_o the_o scripture_n may_v be_v fulfil_v 12._o fulfil_v num._n 9_o 12._o that_o not_o a_o bone_n of_o he_o shall_v be_v break_v god_n so_o restrain_v his_o bloody_a enemy_n that_o they_o can_v do_v no_o more_o than_o what_o be_v decree_v and_o what_o christ_n be_v willing_a to_o suffer_v for_o he_o do_v not_o yield_v to_o their_o malice_n and_o cruelty_n but_o only_o in_o obedience_n to_o his_o father_n will_n for_o a_o word_n of_o his_o mouth_n have_v be_v sufficient_a to_o confound_v all_o his_o tormentor_n but_o how_o then_o shall_v our_o redemption_n be_v wrought_v how_o shall_v the_o will_n of_o god_n be_v fulfil_v and_o how_o
do_v we_o hope_v for_o no_o great_a felicity_n than_o what_o we_o now_o enjoy_v we_o h●ve_v no_o abide_v place_n here_o but_o we_o be_v subject_a to_o change_v every_o moment_n and_o upon_o every_o small_a occasion_n 15._o occasion_n 1_o chro._n 29_o 15._o we_o be_v stranger_n and_o sojourner_n here_o our_o day_n on_o earth_n be_v as_o a_o shadow_n and_o there_o be_v none_o abide_v our_o mansion_n house_n where_o we_o must_v dwell_v for_o ever_o be_v in_o heaven_n which_o christ_n our_o saviour_n have_v prepare_v for_o we_o to_o draw_v our_o mind_n from_o all_o earthly_a delight_n which_o be_v fade_a and_o transitory_a and_o always_o mix_v and_o embitter_v with_o some_o sorrow_n and_o vexation_n that_o our_o heart_n and_o affection_n may_v be_v inflame_v to_o enjoy_v that_o celestial_a happiness_n where_o we_o shall_v be_v establish_v and_o confirm_v in_o perfect_a holiness_n for_o ever_o and_o where_o we_o shall_v enjoy_v the_o perfection_n of_o all_o blessedness_n for_o evermore_o wherefore_o 2._o wherefore_o heb._n 12._o 2._o look_v unto_o jesus_n the_o author_n and_o finisher_n of_o our_o faith_n who_o for_o the_o joy_n that_o be_v set_v before_o he_o endure_v the_o cross_n despise_v the_o shame_n and_o be_v set_v down_o at_o the_o right_a hand_n of_o the_o throne_n of_o god_n i2_n god_n 2_o tim._n 2._o i2_n if_o we_o suffer_v with_o christ_n we_o shall_v also_o reign_v with_o he_o if_o we_o die_v with_o he_o we_o shall_v also_o live_v with_o he_o if_o we_o be_v bury_v with_o he_o we_o shall_v rise_v with_o he_o and_o if_o we_o partake_v with_o he_o in_o his_o humiliation_n we_o shall_v also_o partake_v with_o he_o in_o his_o exaltation_n for_o the_o member_n must_v be_v make_v conformable_a to_o the_o head_n of_o the_o resurrection_n of_o christ_n we_o come_v now_o to_o the_o exaltation_n of_o our_o bless_a redeemer_n for_o though_o he_o suffer_v his_o enemy_n to_o tyrannize_v over_o he_o at_o their_o pleasure_n and_o to_o put_v he_o to_o a_o most_o cruel_a and_o shameful_a death_n upon_o the_o cross_n because_o it_o be_v his_o heavenly_a father_n will_v it_o shall_v be_v so_o yet_o he_o rise_v again_o the_o three_o day_n by_o the_o almighty_a power_n of_o his_o deity_n and_o clothe_v himself_o with_o the_o glorious_a robe_n of_o immortality_n triumph_v over_o all_o his_o enemy_n both_o spiritual_a and_o temporal_a the_o truth_n of_o his_o resurrection_n 24._o a_o luk._n 24._o do_v first_o appear_v by_o the_o testimony_n of_o two_o angel_n to_o the_o woman_n that_o come_v the_o three_o day_n to_o his_o sepulchre_n to_o embalm_v his_o body_n 20._o body_n john_n 20._o then_o he_o appear_v to_o mary_n and_o to_o his_o disciple_n at_o several_a time_n also_o to_o five_o hundred_o brethren_n at_o once_o and_o he_o converse_v with_o his_o disciple_n forty_o day_n upon_o earth_n before_o he_o ascend_v up_o into_o heaven_n many_o saint_n that_o sleep_v be_v raise_v out_o of_o their_o grave_n with_o he_o who_o also_o appear_v to_o many_o in_o the_o holy_a city_n and_o probable_o ascend_v up_o with_o he_o into_o heaven_n so_o that_o we_o may_v safe_o build_v our_o faith_n upon_o the_o truth_n of_o his_o resurrection_n which_o be_v a_o article_n of_o faith_n that_o we_o must_v believe_v for_o the_o well_o ground_v of_o our_o hope_n that_o our_o body_n shall_v also_o rise_v again_o from_o the_o dead_a with_o song_n of_o rejoice_v and_o triumph_n here_o be_v matter_n of_o exceed_v great_a comfort_n to_o our_o soul_n for_o our_o heart_n to_o meditate_v upon_o if_o we_o do_v steadfast_o believe_v that_o jesus_n christ_n our_o bless_a saviour_n be_v rise_v from_o the_o dead_a first_o we_o may_v be_v true_o persuade_v hereby_o that_o he_o have_v full_o satisfy_v the_o justice_n of_o god_n for_o all_o our_o sin_n and_o that_o the_o guilt_n of_o sin_n be_v take_v away_o from_o our_o soul_n and_o nail_v to_o his_o cross_n so_o that_o if_o god_n look_v upon_o our_o sin_n there_o he_o will_v also_o see_v the_o precious_a blood_n of_o his_o dear_a son_n that_o be_v spill_v for_o they_o second_o we_o may_v firm_o believe_v that_o christ_n by_o his_o resurrection_n have_v get_v the_o victory_n and_o conquest_n over_o sin_n death_n hell_n and_o the_o devil_n 18_o devil_n john_n 10._o 18_o for_o as_o he_o have_v power_n to_o lay_v down_o his_o life_n so_o he_o have_v power_n to_o take_v it_o up_o again_o christ_n have_v likewise_o take_v away_o the_o strength_n of_o sin_n and_o have_v pull_v out_o the_o sting_n of_o death_n in_o that_o he_o have_v fulfil_v all_o righteousness_n and_o full_o satisfy_v the_o penalty_n of_o the_o law_n 56._o law_n 1_o cor._n 15._o 56._o for_o the_o sting_n of_o death_n be_v sin_n and_o the_o strength_n of_o sin_n be_v the_o law_n wherefore_o we_o may_v now_o draw_v virtue_n and_o grace_n from_o christ_n to_o overpower_v all_o the_o corruption_n of_o our_o nature_n 1._o nature_n eph._n 2._o 1._o and_o though_o we_o be_v dead_a in_o trespass_n and_o sin_n yet_o by_o the_o power_n of_o his_o resurrection_n he_o will_v quicken_v we_o and_o raise_v we_o up_o out_o of_o the_o grave_n of_o sin_n and_o will_v give_v we_o a_o spiritual_a life_n to_o live_v the_o life_n of_o grace_n to_o he_o here_o that_o we_o may_v live_v the_o life_n of_o glory_n with_o he_o hereafter_o for_o ever_o why_o then_o shall_v we_o fear_v death_n that_o have_v no_o sting_n to_o wound_v we_o why_o shall_v we_o not_o smile_v upon_o it_o see_v christ_n have_v sanctify_v it_o to_o we_o why_o shall_v we_o fear_v the_o devil_n with_o a_o servile_a fear_n see_v christ_n have_v redeem_v we_o out_o of_o his_o bondage_n his_o malice_n may_v molest_v and_o trouble_v we_o if_o we_o be_v not_o well_o arm_v with_o faith_n but_o christ_n have_v weaken_v his_o power_n below_o our_o strength_n when_o our_o bodieslye_o in_o the_o dust_n our_o soul_n will_v be_v out_o of_o the_o devil_n reach_v for_o christ_n will_v take_v they_o up_o to_o himself_o into_o the_o paradise_n of_o god_n where_o the_o devil_n can_v come_v for_o he_o be_v cast_v down_o into_o utter_a darkness_n he_o may_v be_v permit_v to_o tempt_v or_o afflict_v we_o while_o we_o be_v in_o the_o flesh_n but_o christ_n who_o we_o serve_v will_v not_o suffer_v he_o to_o prevail_v against_o we_o three_o see_v christ_n our_o head_n be_v rise_v from_o the_o dead_a we_o also_o that_o be_v his_o member_n must_v rise_v again_o at_o the_o last_o day_n for_o the_o head_n will_v draw_v all_o the_o member_n of_o the_o body_n with_o it_o christ_n have_v redeem_v our_o body_n from_o the_o grave_n as_o well_o as_o our_o soul_n from_o death_n if_o therefore_o we_o be_v not_o raise_v again_o out_o of_o the_o grave_n our_o redemption_n be_v not_o perfect_o wrought_v also_o if_o there_o shall_v be_v no_o resurrection_n of_o our_o body_n and_o if_o death_n have_v power_n to_o keep_v they_o still_o in_o the_o grave_n than_o our_o union_n with_o christ_n be_v not_o firm_a and_o our_o faith_n be_v not_o able_a to_o keep_v we_o close_o unto_o he_o and_o our_o hope_n be_v not_o steadfast_a but_o death_n have_v not_o this_o power_n the_o grave_n will_v open_v and_o deliver_v up_o their_o dead_a and_o our_o body_n shall_v rise_v again_o to_o enjoy_v that_o unconceivable_a happiness_n with_o our_o soul_n of_o the_o beatifical_a vision_n of_o god_n and_o to_o be_v for_o ever_o with_o christ_n our_o redeemer_n because_o christ_n our_o head_n be_v rise_v last_o our_o chief_a comfort_n depend_v upon_o our_o resurrection_n to_o glory_n for_o in_o this_o life_n we_o find_v nothing_o but_o labour_n and_o travel_n sorrow_n and_o trouble_n vexation_n and_o anguish_n of_o spirit_n our_o hope_n of_o future_a rest_n and_o peace_n of_o joy_n and_o comfort_n happiness_n and_o glory_n do_v sweeten_v all_o our_o affliction_n here_o and_o make_v we_o bear_v they_o content_o and_o cheerful_o for_o as_o david_n say_v 11._o say_v psal_n 58._o 11._o very_o there_o be_v a_o reward_n for_o the_o righteous_a and_o this_o reward_n be_v in_o heaven_n now_o if_o there_o be_v no_o resurrection_n from_o the_o dead_a our_o hope_n be_v vain_a our_o comfort_n will_v deceive_v we_o and_o our_o life_n be_v most_o miserable_a of_o all_o man_n according_a to_o this_o of_o paul_n 15._o paul_n 1_o cor._n 15._o 15._o if_o in_o this_o life_n only_o we_o have_v hope_n in_o christ_n we_o be_v of_o all_o man_n most_o miserable_a for_o we_o shall_v never_o enjoy_v this_o reward_n which_o god_n have_v promise_v but_o our_o faith_n be_v ground_v upon_o the_o sure_a promise_n of_o god_n which_o can_v deceive_v we_o concern_v the_o resurrection_n of_o our_o body_n unto_o glory_n which_o will_v yield_v we_o unspeakable_a consolation_n when_o we_o serious_o meditate_v upon_o it_o wherefore_o now_o raise_v
with_o christ_n and_o have_v raise_v we_o up_o together_o and_o make_v we_o sit_v together_o in_o heavenly_a place_n in_o christ_n jesus_n that_o he_o may_v show_v the_o exceed_a riches_n of_o his_o grace_n in_o his_o kindness_n towards_o we_o through_o christ_n jesus_n 23_o jesus_n eph._n 4._o 23_o this_o renovation_n in_o the_o spirit_n of_o our_o mind_n be_v wrought_v in_o we_o by_o the_o holy_a ghost_n through_o christ_n for_o he_o be_v anoint_v with_o the_o holy_a ghost_n for_o this_o end_n and_o purpose_n that_o by_o he_o we_o may_v be_v raise_v up_o from_o the_o death_n of_o sin_n to_o a_o spiritual_a life_n of_o grace_n according_a to_o the_o signification_n of_o his_o name_n for_o as_o he_o be_v christ_n he_o be_v anoint_v of_o god_n and_o as_o he_o be_v jesus_n he_o be_v the_o saviour_n of_o the_o world_n to_o save_v we_o from_o our_o sin_n and_o to_o work_v salvation_n for_o we_o whereof_o we_o be_v not_o capable_a until_o we_o have_v a_o spiritual_a life_n wrought_v in_o we_o thus_o say_v the_o spouse_n of_o christ_n 3_o christ_n cant._n 1._o 3_o thy_o name_n be_v as_o ointment_n pour_v forth_o a_o precious_a ointment_n have_v many_o excellent_a virtue_n 15._o virtue_n psal_n 104._o 15._o for_o it_o make_v a_o cheerful_a countenance_n it_o comfort_v and_o strengthen_v all_o the_o part_n of_o the_o body_n it_o heal_v all_o disease_n and_o it_o send_v forth_o a_o sweet_a savour_n when_o it_o be_v pour_v out_o which_o refresh_v and_o comfort_v all_o the_o sense_n thus_o be_v christ_n to_o every_o true_a believer_n soul_n he_o be_v the_o anoint_v of_o god_n as_o say_v the_o psalmist_n of_o he_o 7._o he_o psal_n 45._o 7._o thou_o love_v righteousness_n and_o hate_v wickedness_n therefore_o god_n thy_o god_n have_v anoint_v thou_o with_o the_o oil_n of_o gladness_n above_o thy_o fellow_n 38_o fellow_n act._n 10._o 38_o for_o he_o be_v anoint_v with_o the_o holy_a ghost_n and_o with_o power_n first_o by_o the_o power_n of_o his_o holy_a unction_n christ_n do_v put_v a_o spiritual_a light_n into_o our_o understanding_n by_o his_o spirit_n that_o we_o may_v see_v how_o to_o walk_v in_o the_o path_n of_o godliness_n and_o truth_n according_a to_o this_o of_o old_a simeon_n 32._o simeon_n lu._n 2._o 31_o 32._o that_o god_n have_v prepare_v he_o to_o be_v a_o light_n to_o lighten_v the_o gentile_n and_o to_o be_v the_o glory_n of_o his_o people_n israel_n 11_o israel_n psal_n 97._o 11_o light_n be_v sow_o for_o the_o righteous_a and_o the_o comfort_n and_o gladness_n of_o it_o for_o the_o upright_a in_o heart_n this_o prophecy_n be_v fulfil_v in_o christ_n 9_o christ_n isa_n 2._o 9_o the_o people_n that_o walk_v in_o darkness_n have_v see_v a_o great_a light_n they_o that_o dwell_v in_o the_o land_n of_o the_o shadow_n of_o death_n upon_o they_o have_v the_o light_n shine_v 14_o shine_v eph._n 5._o 14_o wherefore_o awake_v thou_o that_o sleep_v in_o fin_n and_o arise_v from_o the_o dead_a and_o christ_n shall_v give_v thou_o light_n if_o we_o want_v this_o heavenly_a light_n we_o must_v needs_o wander_v and_o go_v astray_o from_o god_n and_o we_o have_v no_o mean_n to_o obtain_v such_o a_o light_n but_o by_o christ_n it_o be_v sin_n that_o have_v bring_v this_o darkness_n and_o this_o spiritual_a death_n upon_o our_o soul_n and_o none_o but_o christ_n can_v take_v it_o away_o this_o be_v the_o begin_n of_o our_o spiritual_a life_n when_o we_o have_v some_o light_n to_o discern_v the_o spiritual_a thing_n of_o god_n for_o the_o good_a of_o our_o soul_n second_o christ_n be_v the_o food_n and_o nourishment_n of_o our_o soul_n to_o preserve_v this_o spiritual_a life_n in_o we_o who_o flesh_n we_o must_v spiritual_o eat_v and_o who_o blood_n we_o must_v spiritual_o drink_v by_o faith_n in_o the_o hear_n of_o his_o word_n preach_v and_o sacramental_o when_o we_o come_v to_o his_o holy_a table_n or_o else_o we_o have_v not_o this_o spiritual_a life_n in_o we_o 53._o we_o john_n 6._o 48_o 53._o i_o be_o that_o bread_n of_o life_n say_v christ_n which_o come_v down_o from_o heaven_n who_o so_o eat_v my_o flesh_n and_o drink_v my_o blood_n have_v eternal_a life_n and_o i_o will_v raise_v he_o up_o at_o the_o last_o day_n for_o my_o flesh_n be_v meat_n indeed_o and_o my_o blood_n be_v drink_v indeed_o wherefore_o if_o our_o soul_n do_v hunger_n and_o thirst_n after_o this_o heavenly_a food_n and_o do_v earnest_o desire_v to_o be_v refresh_v and_o full_o satisfy_v therewith_o it_o be_v a_o evident_a sign_n that_o there_o be_v a_o spiritual_a life_n in_o we_o for_o christ_n do_v free_o offer_v himself_o to_o every_o empty_a soul_n that_o can_v feed_v upon_o he_o by_o faith_n in_o his_o word_n or_o in_o his_o sacrament_n but_o if_o our_o desire_n and_o the_o affection_n of_o our_o heart_n be_v take_v up_o with_o the_o love_n of_o this_o world_n and_o of_o earthly_a vanity_n it_o be_v no_o marvel_n if_o we_o have_v no_o hunger_n nor_o thirst_n after_o christ_n and_o that_o we_o feel_v so_o little_a want_n and_o need_v of_o he_o three_o the_o blood_n of_o christ_n be_v the_o true_a balm_n to_o heal_v and_o cure_v all_o the_o disease_n and_o wound_n that_o sin_n have_v make_v in_o our_o soul_n it_o be_v like_o 34_o like_o lu._n 10._o 34_o the_o good_a samaritan_n wine_n and_o oil_n for_o it_o have_v a_o cleanse_n and_o a_o heal_a virtue_n there_o can_v be_v no_o wound_n so_o deep_a in_o the_o soul_n and_o no_o ulcer_n so_o fester_v but_o this_o precious_a ointment_n will_v cleanse_v and_o heal_v it_o if_o it_o be_v right_o apply_v by_o faith_n and_o true_a repentance_n for_o repentance_n lay_v open_v the_o wound_n by_o true_a confession_n and_o faith_n appli_v the_o remedy_n to_o it_o and_o then_o repentance_n give_v we_o a_o holy_a assurance_n that_o we_o shall_v be_v cure_v this_o be_v the_o way_n and_o the_o mean_n of_o recovery_n when_o our_o soul_n be_v sick_a of_o any_o spiritual_a disease_n and_o also_o to_o preserve_v that_o spiritual_a life_n which_o be_v in_o we_o last_o when_o the_o heavenly_a grace_n that_o flow_v from_o christ_n be_v pour_v out_o upon_o our_o soul_n they_o will_v great_o refresh_v and_o comfort_v our_o spirit_n in_o all_o sadness_n of_o heart_n and_o they_o will_v so_o presume_v all_o our_o action_n and_o service_n which_o we_o perform_v unto_o god_n that_o their_o sweet_a savour_n shall_v ascend_v up_o unto_o he_o that_o he_o may_v smell_v it_o and_o gracious_o accept_v of_o we_o and_o of_o our_o offering_n 21._o offering_n gen._n 8._o 21._o when_o noah_n offer_v burn_v offering_n to_o the_o lord_n after_o the_o flood_n the_o lord_n smell_v a_o sweet_a savour_n and_o accept_v his_o sacrifice_n and_o bless_v he_o exceed_o wherefore_o if_o our_o soul_n be_v perfume_v with_o grace_n they_o will_v so_o perfume_v all_o our_o holy_a oblation_n which_o we_o offer_v up_o to_o god_n that_o he_o will_v in_o mercy_n accept_v they_o for_o his_o son_n sake_n 8._o sake_n i_o rev_v 5._o 8._o but_o the_o sacrifice_n of_o the_o wicked_a be_v a_o abomination_n to_o the_o lord_n and_o they_o stink_v in_o his_o nostril_n because_o they_o proceed_v from_o a_o corrupt_a and_o unclean_a heart_n which_o be_v not_o perfume_v with_o grace_n how_o much_o 1_o ●_o eccl._n 10._o 1_o more_o when_o he_o bring_v they_o with_o a_o wicked_a mind_n 27_o ●o_o 21._o 27_o sin_n be_v like_o dead_a fly_n in_o the_o ointment_n of_o the_o apothecary_n which_o cause_v it_o to_o stink_v for_o sin_n make_v we_o odious_a in_o the_o sight_n of_o god_n wherefore_o take_v heed_n with_o what_o heart_n thou_o come_v into_o the_o presence_n of_o god_n and_o that_o thou_o bring_v no_o oblation_n to_o he_o with_o a_o wicked_a mind_n but_o first_o purify_v thy_o heart_n from_o sin_n by_o faith_n in_o the_o blood_n of_o christ_n and_o see_v that_o thy_o soul_n be_v perfume_v with_o sanctify_a grace_n and_o then_o come_v and_o offer_v thy_o gift_n and_o god_n will_v accept_v it_o but_o if_o there_o be_v any_o sin_n in_o thy_o bosom_n unrepented_a of_o or_o any_o iniquity_n in_o thy_o heart_n which_o thou_o seek_v to_o hide_v from_o god_n than_o he_o can_v smell_v a_o sweet_a savour_n of_o thy_o prayer_n of_o thy_o praise_n and_o thanksgiving_n or_o of_o any_o duty_n which_o thou_o perform_v to_o he_o to_o make_v it_o accept_v because_o thy_o heart_n be_v not_o upright_o before_o god_n now_o we_o must_v examine_v ourselves_o what_o spiritual_a life_n we_o have_v by_o christ_n and_o we_o must_v know_v how_o he_o be_v our_o spiritual_a life_n if_o we_o will_v have_v any_o comfort_n thereby_o first_o 20_o first_o 1_o joh._n 2._o 20_o if_o we_o have_v this_o holy_a unction_n from_o christ_n which_o be_v pour_v upon_o he_o above_o measure_n that_o
it_o may_v run_v down_o to_o every_o member_n of_o his_o mystical_a body_n which_o be_v typify_v by_o 2._o by_o psal_n 133._o 2._o that_o precious_a ointment_n which_o be_v pour_v upon_o aaron_n head_n and_o run_v down_o to_o the_o skirt_n of_o his_o garment_n so_o that_o we_o have_v a_o spiritual_a light_n to_o discern_v the_o thing_n that_o belong_v to_o our_o peace_n then_o christ_n have_v wrought_v this_o life_n in_o we_o by_o his_o holy_a spirit_n for_o in_o the_o state_n of_o nature_n we_o be_v dead_a to_o any_o thing_n that_o be_v heavenly_a 14_o heavenly_a 1_o cor._n 2._o 14_o and_o we_o can_v not_o receive_v the_o thing_n of_o the_o spirit_n of_o god_n because_o they_o be_v spiritual_o discern_v second_o if_o our_o soul_n can_v feed_v upon_o heavenly_a food_n and_o if_o we_o can_v express_v all_o other_o action_n of_o a_o spiritual_a life_n as_o to_o walk_v in_o the_o path_n of_o holiness_n to_o speak_v the_o pure_a language_n of_o canaan_n and_o to_o have_v our_o conversation_n in_o heaven_n while_o we_o live_v here_o upon_o earth_n we_o may_v then_o be_v full_o persuade_v that_o there_o be_v a_o spiritual_a life_n in_o we_o for_o so_o long_o as_o sin_n reign_v in_o our_o mortal_a body_n and_o until_o there_o be_v a_o new_a creation_n wrought_v in_o we_o we_o be_v spiritual_o dead_a to_o every_o good_a work_n and_o we_o can_v express_v no_o action_n of_o a_o sanctify_a life_n three_o if_o our_o soul_n be_v cleanse_v from_o the_o guilt_n of_o sin_n in_o the_o blood_n of_o christ_n and_o if_o the_o filth_n and_o stain_n of_o our_o sin_n be_v wash_v away_o in_o the_o laver_n of_o regeneration_n by_o his_o sanctify_a grace_n and_o cover_v under_o his_o righteousness_n that_o they_o appear_v not_o to_o the_o dishonour_n of_o god_n or_o to_o the_o hurt_n of_o our_o neighbour_n and_o that_o we_o delight_v not_o in_o any_o sin_n but_o do_v study_n and_o endeavour_v to_o serve_v and_o please_v god_n with_o a_o sincere_a heart_n and_o pure_a affection_n it_o be_v a_o sure_a evidence_n that_o christ_n have_v quicken_v and_o raise_v we_o up_o from_o the_o death_n of_o sin_n to_o the_o life_n of_o grace_n last_o if_o our_o duty_n and_o service_n to_o god_n proceed_v from_o a_o clean_a and_o a_o purify_a heart_n which_o be_v sanctify_v and_o perfume_v with_o the_o grace_n and_o merit_n of_o christ_n than_o god_n will_v smell_v the_o perfume_n of_o they_o to_o accept_v of_o our_o person_n and_o of_o our_o holy_a offering_n because_o the_o spirit_n of_o christ_n be_v in_o we_o thus_o we_o may_v know_v to_o our_o great_a comfort_n if_o we_o narrow_o look_v into_o our_o condition_n what_o spiritual_a life_n we_o have_v and_o that_o we_o have_v it_o only_o from_o christ_n and_o by_o he_o wherefore_o now_o if_o thou_o desire_v to_o live_v spiritual_o by_o christ_n thou_o must_v faithful_o believe_v that_o he_o have_v take_v away_o that_o spiritual_a death_n which_o by_o nature_n be_v upon_o thou_o for_o thy_o sin_n and_o that_o he_o only_o can_v give_v thou_o this_o spiritual_a life_n for_o as_o he_o have_v vanquish_v and_o overcome_v the_o power_n of_o death_n both_o spiritual_a and_o temporal_a so_o he_o can_v give_v a_o spiritual_a life_n as_o well_o as_o a_o temporal_a to_o who_o and_o when_o he_o please_v this_o spiritual_a life_n thou_o must_v have_v from_o he_o if_o thou_o can_v make_v a_o particular_a application_n of_o he_o to_o thyself_o by_o faith_n that_o he_o be_v thy_o saviour_n and_o thy_o redeemer_n for_o he_o have_v then_o breathe_v into_o thou_o the_o spirit_n of_o grace_n which_o have_v wrought_v this_o spiritual_a life_n in_o thou_o though_o at_o the_o first_o thou_o can_v feel_v no_o power_n of_o it_o without_o this_o application_n of_o christ_n to_o thyself_o thou_o can_v draw_v no_o comfort_n from_o he_o and_o he_o will_v profit_v thou_o nothing_o it_o do_v much_o comfort_n job_n in_o his_o great_a misery_n when_o he_o do_v thus_o apply_v christ_n to_o himself_o 27._o himself_o job_n 19_o 25_o 27._o i_o know_v say_v he_o that_o my_o redeemer_n live_v who_o i_o shall_v see_v for_o myself_o if_o thou_o can_v bring_v thy_o heart_n to_o close_v thus_o with_o christ_n he_o will_v give_v light_n to_o thy_o eye_n food_n to_o thy_o soul_n balm_n for_o thy_o disease_n and_o comfortable_a refresh_n for_o thy_o languish_a spirit_n but_o if_o thou_o be_v still_o dead_a in_o thy_o sin_n and_o have_v no_o spiritual_a life_n in_o christ_n thou_o can_v then_o feel_v no_o comfort_n by_o he_o for_o what_o good_a can_v light_o do_v to_o a_o dead_a man_n what_o benefit_n can_v he_o have_v by_o the_o dainty_a food_n what_o can_v the_o best_a medicine_n profit_v he_o and_o what_o sense_n have_v he_o of_o the_o best_a perfume_n but_o if_o thou_o do_v live_v in_o christ_n and_o he_o in_o thou_o thou_o shall_v partake_v with_o he_o in_o his_o fullness_n of_o all_o spiritual_a grace_n 19_o grace_n col._n 1._o 19_o for_o it_o please_v the_o father_n that_o in_o he_o shall_v all_o fullness_n dwell_v 16_o dwell_v john_n 1._o 16_o and_o of_o his_o fullness_n have_v all_o we_o receive_v and_o grace_n for_o grace_n now_o consider_v further_o that_o christ_n be_v the_o meritorious_a cause_n of_o this_o spiritual_a life_n 14_o life_n tit._n 2._o 14_o for_o he_o give_v himself_o free_o and_o voluntary_o to_o be_v a_o oblation_n and_o a_o sacrifice_n for_o we_o to_o redeem_v we_o from_o all_o iniquity_n and_o from_o whatsoever_o we_o be_v liable_a unto_o by_o reason_n of_o sin_n to_o wit_n from_o the_o guilt_n of_o sin_n from_o the_o dominion_n of_o sin_n from_o the_o curse_n of_o the_o law_n from_o the_o bondage_n of_o satan_n from_o the_o terror_n of_o death_n and_o from_o eternal_a condemnation_n also_o by_o the_o power_n of_o his_o resurrection_n he_o have_v subdue_v and_o overcome_v death_n hell_n and_o the_o grave_n that_o we_o may_v be_v raise_v out_o of_o the_o grave_n of_o sin_n to_o live_v a_o spiritual_a life_n to_o god_n in_o christ_n christ_n have_v wrought_v our_o redemption_n by_o his_o active_a and_o passive_a obedience_n to_o the_o will_n of_o god_n whereby_o we_o be_v justify_v in_o his_o sight_n for_o he_o have_v take_v our_o life_n out_o of_o the_o hand_n of_o god_n justice_n where_o we_o have_v no_o hope_n to_o enjoy_v it_o and_o have_v put_v it_o into_o the_o hand_n of_o his_o mercy_n where_o we_o be_v sure_a through_o christ_n to_o have_v the_o comfort_n of_o it_o here_o and_o the_o happiness_n of_o it_o hereafter_o though_o we_o must_v pass_v by_o the_o gate_n of_o hell_n before_o we_o can_v enjoy_v the_o sweet_a consolation_n of_o this_o spiritual_a life_n and_o though_o we_o must_v bring_v ourselves_o so_o low_o in_o our_o humiliation_n and_o in_o mortify_v of_o our_o sin_n and_o corruption_n as_o if_o we_o be_v ready_a to_o be_v thrust_v down_o into_o hell_n yet_o god_n will_v then_o give_v we_o a_o spiritual_a life_n in_o christ_n to_o support_v we_o he_o will_v then_o raise_v we_o up_o to_o newness_n of_o life_n by_o the_o sanctify_a grace_n of_o his_o spirit_n that_o our_o spiritual_a life_n may_v appear_v and_o that_o we_o may_v be_v make_v fit_a to_o enjoy_v christ_n for_o ever_o in_o the_o kingdom_n of_o heaven_n this_o be_v the_o first_o main_a end_n of_o the_o passion_n of_o christ_n that_o we_o may_v be_v redeem_v by_o the_o merit_n of_o his_o blood_n second_o christ_n be_v the_o efficient_a cause_n of_o our_o spiritual_a life_n for_o as_o we_o have_v our_o justification_n by_o the_o merit_n of_o his_o blood_n so_o we_o have_v our_o sanctification_n by_o the_o same_o blood_n and_o these_o two_o can_v be_v separate_v but_o must_v go_v together_o for_o we_o have_v no_o sure_a evidence_n that_o we_o be_v justify_v in_o the_o sight_n of_o god_n but_o by_o the_o sanctification_n of_o our_o life_n the_o act_n of_o our_o justification_n be_v wrought_v at_o once_o as_o soon_o as_o we_o be_v ingraft_v into_o christ_n by_o faith_n but_o our_o sanctification_n must_v be_v a_o continue_a act_n so_o long_o as_o we_o live_v in_o the_o flesh_n for_o the_o best_a of_o god_n servant_n have_v so_o many_o spot_n and_o stain_n of_o sin_n in_o they_o that_o they_o have_v daily_o need_v to_o pray_v to_o be_v every_o day_n purify_v and_o cleanse_v with_o the_o blood_n of_o christ_n and_o to_o be_v daily_o renew_v with_o the_o grace_n of_o his_o spirit_n this_o be_v the_o second_o main_a end_n why_o christ_n give_v himself_o to_o be_v a_o oblation_n for_o we_o that_o he_o may_v purify_v we_o to_o be_v a_o peculiar_a people_n to_o himself_o according_a to_o this_o of_o paul_n 14_o paul_n tit._n 2._o 14_o christ_n give_v himself_o for_o we_o that_o he_o may_v redeem_v we_o from_o all_o iniquity_n and_o purify_v unto_o himself_o
upon_o his_o throne_n of_o mercy_n ready_a to_o receive_v we_o if_o our_o faith_n do_v reach_v no_o further_a than_o to_o the_o knowledge_n of_o christ_n what_o he_o be_v in_o his_o divine_a nature_n and_o what_o he_o be_v by_o incarnation_n or_o to_o his_o glorious_a excellency_n and_o dignity_n as_o he_o be_v the_o mediator_n of_o the_o new_a covenant_n or_o to_o the_o work_n of_o man_n redemption_n as_o he_o be_v the_o redeemer_n of_o the_o world_n it_o be_v but_o the_o bare_a notion_n of_o faith_n which_o be_v not_o effectual_a enough_o to_o bring_v we_o to_o eternal_a happiness_n unregenerate_a man_n may_v know_v and_o believe_v thus_o much_o of_o christ_n by_o the_o letter_n of_o the_o gospel_n and_o yet_o never_o be_v bring_v into_o the_o state_n of_o grace_n by_o christ_n because_o they_o have_v not_o the_o grace_n of_o faith_n in_o their_o heart_n to_o apply_v these_o thing_n to_o themselves_o the_o devil_n do_v know_v who_o christ_n be_v they_o know_v the_o purity_n of_o his_o nature_n and_o what_o power_n he_o have_v over_o they_o and_o yet_o they_o continue_v devil_n still_o wherefore_o we_o must_v not_o rest_v in_o the_o bare_a notion_n of_o faith_n but_o if_o we_o will_v believe_v unto_o salvation_n we_o must_v then_o 9_o then_o john_n 13._o 8_o 9_o as_o paul_n and_o silas_n say_v to_o the_o jailor_n believe_v on_o the_o lord_n jesus_n christ_n we_o must_v rest_v upon_o he_o and_o put_v our_o whole_a confidence_n in_o he_o for_o our_o salvation_n also_o we_o must_v apply_v he_o and_o all_o his_o excellent_a dignity_n to_o ourselves_o that_o we_o may_v be_v well_o persuade_v of_o our_o redemption_n by_o he_o and_o that_o we_o be_v invest_v into_o the_o covenant_n of_o grace_n by_o our_o union_n with_o he_o and_o that_o we_o shall_v hereafter_o enjoy_v the_o perfection_n of_o true_a happiness_n if_o our_o faith_n can_v reach_v thus_o high_a and_o lay_v such_o hold_n upon_o christ_n by_o their_o particular_a application_n of_o he_o then_o let_v our_o condition_n be_v what_o it_o will_v we_o shall_v be_v happy_a while_o we_o live_v more_o happy_a when_o we_o die_v and_o most_o happy_a after_o death_n for_o no_o affliction_n or_o sorrow_n of_o life_n and_o no_o violence_n or_o extremity_n of_o sickness_n in_o death_n shall_v be_v able_a to_o take_v this_o happiness_n from_o we_o and_o after_o death_n we_o shall_v be_v out_o of_o the_o reach_n of_o all_o our_o enemy_n for_o christ_n by_o who_o we_o have_v this_o happiness_n will_v not_o suffer_v we_o to_o loose_v it_o but_o by_o the_o grace_n and_o power_n of_o faith_n we_o shall_v still_o draw_v all_o spiritual_a comfort_n from_o christ_n to_o our_o soul_n to_o make_v we_o true_o happy_a in_o this_o life_n and_o everlasting_o happy_a in_o the_o life_n to_o come_v this_o be_v the_o grace_n and_o power_n of_o true_a faith_n to_o apply_v particular_o to_o ourselves_o whole_a christ_n god_n and_o man_n and_o as_o he_o be_v our_o prophet_n our_o high_a priest_n our_o king_n our_o mediator_n and_o redeemer_n and_o then_o how_o mean_a soever_o our_o condition_n be_v he_o will_v make_v we_o happy_a in_o it_o and_o will_v crown_v we_o with_o everlasting_a happiness_n hereafter_o for_o where_o this_o faith_n be_v wrought_v there_o the_o holy_a ghost_n will_v abide_v for_o ever_o and_o that_o soul_n must_v needs_o be_v happy_a that_o intertain_v he_o 13._o he_o eph._n 1._o 13._o for_o after_o that_o we_o have_v believe_v in_o christ_n we_o be_v seal_v with_o that_o holy_a spirit_n of_o primise_v unto_o the_o day_n of_o redemption_n this_o spirit_n of_o promise_n be_v the_o earnest_n of_o our_o inheritance_n which_o christ_n have_v purchase_v for_o we_o consider_v further_o that_o by_o this_o mean_v we_o be_v near_o join_v unto_o christ_n 17._o christ_n eph._n 3._o 17._o for_o christ_n dwell_v in_o our_o heart_n by_o faith_n this_o spiritual_a union_n with_o christ_n be_v more_o firm_a and_o close_o than_o the_o union_n of_o the_o member_n of_o the_o natural_a body_n be_v with_o the_o head_n or_o the_o union_n of_o the_o branch_n be_v with_o the_o vine_n for_o nothing_o can_v separate_v we_o from_o christ_n but_o he_o will_v keep_v we_o by_o his_o almighty_a power_n unto_o salvation_n if_o we_o be_v in_o this_o bless_a condition_n nothing_o can_v hurt_v the_o well-being_n of_o our_o soul_n but_o all_o thing_n shall_v work_v together_o for_o our_o good_a what_o comfort_n and_o what_o happiness_n can_v we_o want_v if_o we_o enjoy_v christ_n his_o grace_n will_v carry_v we_o on_o cheerful_o through_o all_o the_o discomfort_n that_o we_o shall_v meet_v with_o in_o this_o life_n his_o blessing_n will_v be_v upon_o all_o that_o we_o enjoy_v and_o he_o will_v give_v we_o the_o fullness_n of_o happiness_n in_o the_o life_n to_o come_v though_o we_o be_v in_o christ_n yet_o we_o shall_v meet_v with_o many_o sorrow_n trouble_n and_o vexation_n in_o this_o life_n which_o will_v cloud_v the_o sense_n of_o this_o our_o felicity_n for_o we_o have_v here_o but_o the_o beginning_n of_o that_o bless_a and_o happy_a condition_n which_o in_o the_o life_n to_o come_v shall_v be_v perfect_v and_o confirm_v to_o we_o for_o ever_o in_o christ_n wherefore_o we_o ought_v serious_o to_o meditate_v and_o study_v how_o to_o enjoy_v christ_n who_o be_v the_o true_a happiness_n of_o our_o soul_n and_o though_o we_o have_v but_o a_o taste_n of_o this_o heavenly_a consolation_n yet_o it_o will_v sweeten_v the_o bitterness_n of_o all_o misery_n and_o as_o we_o daily_o grow_v in_o grace_n so_o we_o shall_v daily_o find_v more_o comfort_n by_o our_o assurance_n of_o the_o fruition_n of_o our_o future_a felicity_n in_o heaven_n also_o the_o more_o we_o grow_v in_o grace_n the_o more_o we_o shall_v grow_v out_o of_o love_n with_o this_o world_n because_o we_o shall_v the_o better_o see_v the_o vanity_n of_o it_o and_o the_o more_o we_o shall_v grow_v in_o love_n with_o virtue_n and_o true_a piety_n which_o will_v bring_v we_o to_o this_o happiness_n and_o to_o enjoy_v it_o to_o all_o eternity_n concern_v our_o justification_n the_o true_a knowledge_n of_o this_o high_a principle_n of_o religion_n what_o it_o be_v to_o be_v justify_v in_o the_o sight_n of_o god_n and_o how_o it_o be_v wrought_v in_o we_o by_o the_o holy_a ghost_n be_v of_o great_a concernment_n to_o every_o true_a christian_a and_o it_o do_v minister_v exceed_v much_o comfort_n to_o he_o in_o the_o assurance_n of_o the_o pardon_n of_o his_o sin_n and_o in_o the_o hope_n of_o his_o salvation_n now_o we_o be_v justify_v not_o for_o any_o inherent_a righteousness_n that_o be_v in_o we_o nor_o for_o any_o foresee_a work_n we_o be_v able_a to_o do_v nor_o for_o any_o grace_n that_o be_v wrought_v in_o we_o but_o as_o god_n do_v elect_v we_o of_o his_o own_o free_a grace_n and_o love_n so_o he_o do_v also_o free_o justify_v we_o first_o 19_o first_o 2_o cor._n 5._o 19_o by_o not_o impute_v our_o sin_n and_o iniquity_n to_o we_o second_o by_o not_o inflict_v the_o condemnation_n of_o sin_n upon_o we_o three_o by_o impute_v the_o righteousness_n of_o christ_n to_o we_o by_o faith_n four_o by_o pronounce_v and_o declare_v we_o to_o be_v just_a in_o the_o court_n of_o heaven_n and_o by_o witness_v the_o same_o to_o our_o conscience_n by_o his_o holy_a spirit_n and_o last_o by_o his_o gracious_a acceptation_n of_o we_o this_o be_v our_o justification_n and_o thus_o we_o may_v be_v persuade_v of_o it_o for_o god_n have_v set_v up_o his_o seat_n of_o judgement_n in_o every_o man_n conscience_n so_o that_o when_o we_o remember_v our_o sin_n if_o our_o conscience_n do_v absolve_v we_o by_o our_o faith_n in_o the_o righteousness_n of_o christ_n and_o in_o the_o merit_n of_o his_o blood_n it_o be_v a_o sure_a evidence_n of_o our_o justification_n in_o the_o sight_n of_o god_n but_o if_o it_o do_v condemn_v we_o than_o it_o will_v bind_v we_o over_o to_o answer_v for_o ourselves_o at_o the_o last_o and_o general_a judgement_n when_o it_o will_v bring_v bitter_a accusation_n against_o we_o and_o witness_v terrible_a thing_n against_o our_o poor_a soul_n for_o conscience_n be_v the_o high_a witness_n next_o under_o god_n the_o ground_n of_o our_o justification_n be_v god_n free_a grace_n to_o we_o by_o faith_n in_o christ_n who_o have_v take_v upon_o himself_o the_o guilt_n of_o our_o sin_n whereby_o they_o be_v impute_v to_o he_o and_o his_o righteousness_n be_v impute_v to_o we_o so_o that_o now_o god_n do_v account_v we_o just_a and_o righteous_a because_o we_o have_v no_o guilt_n of_o sin_n and_o be_v clothe_v with_o the_o righteousness_n of_o christ_n and_o therefore_o he_o will_v absolve_v we_o from_o all_o our_o sin_n and_o from_o the_o punishment_n that_o be_v due_a to_o we_o for_o they_o and_o he_o will_v
iniquity_n of_o our_o sin_n unto_o christ_n our_o saviour_n and_o of_o his_o free_a grace_n to_o account_v we_o just_a by_o the_o imputation_n of_o his_o righteousness_n to_o we_o through_o faith_n so_o likewise_o hereby_o we_o have_v the_o adoption_n of_o son_n and_o all_o the_o privilege_n that_o do_v belong_v unto_o son_n these_o be_v such_o benefit_n and_o such_o comfort_n as_o none_o can_v conceive_v but_o such_o as_o do_v enjoy_v they_o and_o none_o can_v enjoy_v they_o but_o by_o christ_n and_o there_o be_v no_o way_n to_o have_v they_o by_o christ_n but_o only_o by_o a_o true_a and_o a_o lively_a faith_n in_o he_o second_o by_o faith_n we_o be_v invest_v into_o the_o covenant_n of_o grace_n and_o all_o the_o gracious_a promise_n that_o be_v contain_v in_o it_o do_v belong_v unto_o we_o also_o by_o faith_n we_o have_v great_a comfort_n and_o hope_n in_o all_o other_o the_o promise_n of_o god_n whether_o they_o concern_v this_o life_n or_o the_o life_n to_o come_v for_o we_o believe_v the_o truth_n of_o his_o word_n and_o his_o ready_a will_n to_o perform_v what_o he_o have_v promise_v and_o though_o his_o promise_n be_v sometime_o impossible_a to_o nature_n and_o above_o humane_a reason_n yet_o faith_n give_v we_o ability_n to_o rest_v upon_o they_o because_o we_o believe_v that_o he_o be_v faithful_a that_o have_v promise_v and_o able_a to_o perform_v his_o word_n thus_o say_v solomon_n bless_a 50._o ●_o 1_o king_n ●_o 50._o be_v the_o lord_n that_o have_v give_v rest_n unto_o his_o people_n israel_n according_a to_o all_o that_o he_o have_v promise_v there_o have_v not_o fail_v one_o word_n of_o all_o his_o good_a promise_n which_o he_o promise_v by_o the_o hand_n of_o moses_n his_o servant_n the_o promise_n of_o god_n be_v limit_v to_o the_o condition_n of_o faith_n and_o obedience_n and_o though_o they_o be_v above_o our_o capacity_n yet_o we_o may_v confide_v in_o they_o for_o he_o will_v perform_v they_o in_o his_o due_a time_n 20._o time_n rom._n 4_o 18_o 19_o 20._o god_n make_v a_o promise_n to_o abraham_n that_o his_o seed_n shall_v be_v as_o numerous_a as_o the_o star_n in_o the_o firmament_n when_o he_o be_v about_o a_o hundred_o year_n old_a and_o yet_o bet●g_v not_o weak_a in_o faith_n he_o stagger_v not_o at_o the_o promise_n of_o god_n through_o unbelief_n but_o against_o hope_n he_o believe_v in_o hope_n that_o he_o may_v become_v the_o father_n of_o many_o nation_n and_o he_o be_v full_o persuade_v that_o what_o god_n have_v promise_v he_o be_v able_a also_o to_o perform_v 11_o perform_v heb._n 11._o 11_o sarah_n through_o faith_n receive_v strength_n to_o conceive_v seed_n though_o she_o be_v barren_a and_o past_a age_n and_o she_o be_v deliver_v of_o a_o child_n because_o she_o judge_v he_o faithful_a who_o have_v promise_v if_o we_o do_v thus_o rest_v upon_o the_o promise_v god_n in_o all_o condition_n of_o life_n and_o in_o all_o the_o chance_n and_o change_n that_o can_v happen_v to_o we_o it_o will_v fit_v and_o prepare_v we_o to_o receive_v they_o content_o at_o god_n hand_n but_o the_o special_a servant_n of_o god_n may_v be_v so_o over-pressed_n with_o the_o extremity_n of_o affliction_n that_o they_o be_v ready_a to_o distrust_v the_o truth_n of_o god_n word_n and_o to_o waver_v in_o their_o assiance_n and_o confidence_n in_o he_o if_o he_o delay_v to_o perform_v his_o promise_n and_o to_o help_v they_o this_o be_v asaph_n case_n who_o thus_o complain_v 10._o complain_v psal_n 74._o 8_o 10._o be_v his_o mercy_n clean_o go_v for_o ever_o do_v his_o promise_n fail_v for_o evermore_o but_o he_o do_v present_o check_v himself_o and_o acknowledge_v that_o it_o be_v his_o infirmity_n thus_o to_o distrust_v the_o goodness_n of_o god_n thus_o say_v peter_n 9_o peter_n 2_o pet._n 3._o 9_o the_o lord_n be_v not_o slack_a concern_v his_o promise_n for_o he_o will_v remember_v to_o perform_v it_o when_o his_o time_n be_v come_v that_o it_o will_v make_v most_o for_o his_o glory_n and_o for_o our_o good_a wherefore_o 12._o wherefore_o heb._n 6._o 12._o we_o must_v wait_v patient_o upon_o god_n and_o then_o we_o shall_v inherit_v the_o promise_n 13._o promise_n eph._n 1._o 13._o for_o by_o faith_n we_o be_v seal_v with_o that_o holy_a spirit_n of_o promise_n that_o we_o may_v confident_o rest_v upon_o god_n and_o upon_o the_o truth_n of_o his_o word_n wherefore_o if_o we_o be_v well_o acquaint_v with_o the_o scripture_n we_o shall_v find_v many_o promise_n of_o grace_n to_o strengthen_v our_o faith_n when_o we_o be_v under_o any_o temptation_n to_o comfort_v our_o soul_n when_o we_o be_v in_o any_o anguish_n of_o spirit_n or_o under_o the_o pressure_n of_o any_o cross_n or_o calamity_n and_o when_o we_o have_v find_v a_o promise_n that_o will_v suit_n with_o our_o present_a condition_n then_o to_o make_v use_n of_o our_o faith_n to_o lay_v hold_n upon_o it_o to_o apply_v it_o to_o ourselves_o and_o to_o rest_v firm_o upon_o it_o though_o it_o be_v above_o hope_n for_o god_n can_v and_o will_v assure_o perform_v it_o to_o our_o great_a consolation_n if_o god_n do_v defer_v the_o performance_n of_o it_o long_o than_o we_o expect_v yet_o we_o must_v patient_o wait_v upon_o he_o for_o when_o he_o have_v wrought_v his_o own_o work_n in_o we_o for_o his_o own_o glory_n and_o our_o good_a he_o will_v not_o then_o delay_v to_o perform_v it_o a_o moment_n long_o three_o by_o faith_n we_o shall_v receive_v much_o profit_n and_o comfort_n by_o god_n holy_a ordinance_n without_o which_o our_o service_n to_o god_n can_v be_v perform_v according_a to_o his_o will_n the_o preparation_n of_o the_o heart_n to_o the_o profitable_a ●earing_n of_o the_o sacred_a word_n of_o god_n be_v by_o faith_n 9_o faith_n act._n 15._o 9_o because_o hereby_o our_o heart_n be_v purify_v and_o cleanse_v from_o all_o sin_n in_o the_o blood_n of_o christ_n that_o no_o guilt_n of_o sin_n may_v cleave_v to_o our_o soul_n and_o conscience_n to_o stop_v the_o current_n of_o grace_n to_o our_o heart_n and_o to_o hinder_v the_o free_a work_n of_o the_o spirit_n of_o god_n upon_o our_o affection_n by_o the_o ministry_n of_o his_o word_n that_o it_o can_v take_v root_n in_o we_o for_o our_o edification_n and_o instruction_n to_o convince_v we_o of_o our_o error_n to_o reprove_v we_o for_o our_o sin_n and_o to_o comfort_v we_o in_o all_o sorrow_n and_o sadness_n of_o heart_n it_o be_v faith_n that_o make_v our_o heart_n good_a ground_n fit_a to_o receive_v the_o seed_n of_o god_n word_n that_o it_o may_v take_v deep_a root_n in_o we_o to_o fructify_v and_o bring_v forth_o much_o fruit_n to_o the_o glory_n of_o god_n what_o comfort_n can_v we_o have_v by_o the_o word_n of_o god_n if_o we_o do_v not_o hear_v it_o with_o heart_n purify_v from_o our_o corruption_n by_o faith_n how_o can_v it_o profit_v we_o if_o there_o be_v not_o a_o holy_a preparation_n to_o receive_v it_o that_o the_o holy_a ghost_n may_v imprint_v it_o in_o our_o heart_n to_o be_v a_o word_n of_o power_n in_o we_o unto_o salvation_n and_o to_o be_v the_o savour_n of_o life_n unto_o eternal_a life_n and_o how_o can_v it_o be_v fruitful_a in_o we_o to_o the_o reformation_n of_o our_o life_n if_o our_o heart_n be_v not_o season_v with_o faith_n 17._o faith_n rom._n 10._o 17._o faith_n come_v by_o hear_v and_o hear_v by_o the_o word_n of_o god_n and_o then_o it_o be_v a_o special_a mean_n which_o the_o spirit_n of_o god_n use_v to_o convey_v spiritual_a knowledge_n to_o the_o understanding_n holy_a desire_n to_o the_o will_n to_o study_v and_o endeavour_v to_o a_o godly_a life_n and_o also_o true_a consolation_n to_o the_o soul_n so_o likewise_o our_o heart_n be_v prepare_v by_o faith_n to_o the_o worthy_a receive_n of_o the_o lord_n supper_n for_o as_o we_o do_v refresh_v our_o body_n with_o the_o bread_n and_o wine_n so_o our_o soul_n be_v refresh_v and_o comfort_v by_o our_o spiritual_a feed_n on_o the_o body_n and_o blood_n of_o christ_n by_o faith_n also_o faith_n will_v put_v a_o holy_a zeal_n into_o our_o prayer_n to_o make_v they_o fervent_a and_o effectual_a to_o prevail_v with_o god_n to_o send_v we_o a_o gracious_a answer_n in_o his_o good_a time_n thus_o say_v our_o saviour_n christ_n 24._o christ_n mar._n 11._o 24._o what_o thing_n soever_o you_o desire_v when_o you_o pray_v believe_v that_o you_o receive_v they_o and_o you_o shall_v have_v they_o o_o what_o comfort_n may_v we_o find_v in_o our_o prayer_n when_o we_o be_v in_o want_n sorrow_n or_o in_o any_o necessity_n if_o we_o do_v pray_v with_o zealous_a affection_n and_o do_v faithful_o believe_v that_o our_o petition_n be_v grant_v before_o we_o receive_v they_o then_o we_o will_v wait_v upon_o god_n until_o he_o be_v
please_v to_o satisfy_v our_o desire_n for_o our_o faith_n will_v give_v we_o as_o certain_a assurance_n to_o obtain_v what_o we_o pray_v for_o as_o if_o we_o do_v already_o enjoy_v it_o we_o have_v no_o hope_n of_o succour_n in_o our_o distress_n but_o by_o prayer_n and_o no_o prayer_n be_v prevail_v with_o god_n but_o that_o which_o come_v from_o a_o believe_a heart_n the_o gift_n of_o prayer_n may_v move_v the_o affection_n for_o the_o present_a but_o it_o be_v the_o grace_n of_o prayer_n that_o be_v powerful_a with_o god_n the_o gift_n of_o prayer_n be_v but_o a_o common_a gift_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n which_o may_v be_v without_o faith_n and_o consequent_o without_o any_o acceptance_n 6._o acceptance_n heb._n 11._o 6._o for_o without_o faith_n it_o be_v impossible_a to_o please_v god_n but_o faith_n do_v always_o go_v along_o with_o the_o grace_n of_o prayer_n and_o god_n will_v not_o deny_v such_o a_o prayer_n though_o it_o be_v make_v in_o weak_a expression_n for_o the_o heart_n may_v sigh_v out_o a_o faithful_a prayer_n and_o groan_v out_o our_o desire_n which_o the_o tongue_n can_v utter_v nor_o express_v now_o then_o look_v well_o to_o the_o purity_n of_o thy_o affection_n and_o to_o the_o faithfulness_n of_o thy_o heart_n when_o thou_o be_v in_o the_o presence_n of_o god_n to_o hear_v his_o word_n that_o thy_o mind_n be_v not_o then_o about_o thy_o worldly_a affair_n or_o thy_o thought_n set_v upon_o vain_a thing_n if_o thou_o desire_v to_o receive_v good_a thereby_o for_o if_o thou_o do_v hear_v it_o with_o a_o unbelieve_a heart_n or_o full_a of_o worldly_a care_n than_o thy_o heart_n be_v like_o barren_a ground_n where_o briar_n and_o thorn_n grow_v which_o can_v receive_v such_o spiritual_a seed_n to_o bring_v forth_o fruit_n unto_o salvation_n also_o in_o thy_o holy_a meditation_n on_o spiritual_a thing_n thy_o heart_n must_v be_v first_o purify_v by_o faith_n or_o else_o thy_o meditation_n will_v not_o be_v comfortable_a to_o thy_o soul_n because_o thou_o have_v not_o faith_n which_o be_v the_o instrument_n to_o draw_v true_a consolation_n from_o christ_n so_o likewise_o when_o thou_o come_v to_o the_o lord_n table_n see_v there_o be_v faith_n in_o thy_o eye_n to_o discern_v the_o lord_n body_n in_o those_o outward_a element_n that_o thou_o may_v spiritual_o feed_v on_o he_o to_o nourish_v thy_o soul_n to_o eternal_a life_n when_o thou_o make_v thy_o supplication_n to_o god_n believe_v faithful_o that_o thou_o shall_v receive_v what_o thou_o beg_v and_o then_o thy_o prayer_n will_v not_o return_v empty_a without_o a_o blessing_n in_o like_a manner_n if_o thy_o humiliation_n for_o thy_o sin_n be_v not_o a_o fruit_n of_o faith_n but_o only_o in_o outward_a show_n and_o not_o in_o the_o sincerity_n of_o thy_o heart_n with_o true_a contrition_n and_o godly_a sorrow_n for_o they_o thy_o humiliation_n be_v no_o better_a 27._o better_a 1_o kin._n 21._o 27._o than_o that_o of_o ahab_n which_o produce_v no_o reformation_n of_o life_n also_o if_o thou_o do_v confess_v thy_o sin_n when_o any_o sore_a affliction_n be_v upon_o thou_o and_o do_v not_o faithful_o purpose_n to_o forsake_v they_o and_o turn_v to_o the_o lord_n thou_o do_v dissemble_v with_o god_n in_o thy_o heart_n and_o can_v not_o believe_v that_o god_n will_v forgive_v they_o for_o thy_o confession_n be_v no_o better_a 28._o better_a exod._n 9_o 27_o 28._o than_o that_o of_o pharaoh_n and_o thou_o can_v have_v no_o comfort_n in_o such_o repentance_n because_o it_o be_v not_o a_o fruit_n of_o faith_n for_o it_o be_v only_a faith_n that_o do_v perfect_a all_o thy_o service_n to_o god_n in_o their_o righteousness_n of_o christ_n four_o we_o have_v no_o defence_n against_o the_o temptation_n and_o wicked_a suggestion_n of_o the_o devil_n and_o against_o the_o rage_n of_o our_o spiritual_a enemy_n but_o the_o shield_n of_o faith_n his_o fiery_a dart_n will_v wound_v our_o soul_n even_o to_o the_o death_n 16._o death_n eph._n 6._o 16._o if_o we_o do_v not_o quench_v they_o in_o the_o blood_n of_o christ_n by_o faith_n his_o temptation_n will_v pierce_v we_o to_o the_o heart_n if_o we_o do_v not_o beat_v they_o back_o with_o this_o impenetrable_a shield_n also_o he_o lay_v his_o snare_n every_o where_o so_o cunning_o in_o our_o way_n that_o we_o can_v hardly_o take_v a_o step_n but_o we_o shall_v step_v into_o a_o snare_n 12._o snare_n psal_n 26._o 11_o 12._o if_o we_o do_v not_o walk_v in_o our_o integriy_n by_o faith_n that_o our_o foot_n may_v stand_v in_o a_o even_a place_n there_o be_v no_o place_n secure_v and_o no_o condition_n of_o life_n be_v free_a from_o the_o snare_n of_o the_o devil_n he_o lay_v they_o in_o our_o call_n upon_o our_o table_n in_o our_o chamber_n and_o closert_n and_o under_o our_o foot_n so_o that_o every_o step_n we_o take_v out_o of_o the_o way_n of_o godliness_n be_v a_o occasion_n to_o bring_v we_o into_o his_o snare_n and_o we_o have_v no_o mean_n to_o escape_v they_o but_o to_o walk_v in_o the_o light_n of_o the_o spirit_n of_o god_n which_o we_o can_v have_v but_o by_o faith_n in_o christ_n if_o we_o walk_v thus_o by_o the_o direction_n of_o his_o spirit_n then_o as_o the_o wise_a man_n say_v 26._o say_v prov._n 28._o 18_o 26._o we_o walk_v upright_o and_o we_o shall_v be_v save_v we_o walk_v wise_o and_o we_o shall_v be_v deliver_v but_o if_o we_o have_v not_o this_o spiritual_a light_n to_o guide_v we_o we_o walk_v in_o darkness_n 10._o darkness_n job_n 18._o 8_o 9_o 10._o we_o be_v cast_v into_o a_o net_n by_o our_o own_o foot_n and_o we_o walk_v upon_o a_o snare_n the_o grin_n shall_v take_v we_o by_o the_o heel_n and_o the_o robber_n shall_v prevail_v against_o we_o the_o snare_n be_v lay_v for_o we_o in_o the_o ground_n and_o a_o trap_n for_o we_o in_o the_o way_n now_o then_o 11._o then_o isa_n 50._o 11._o if_o we_o walk_v in_o the_o light_n of_o our_o own_o fire_n and_o in_o the_o spark_n that_o we_o have_v kindle_v this_o we_o shall_v have_v of_o god_n hand_n we_o shall_v lie_v down_o in_o sorrow_n thus_o do_v spiritual_a danger_n continual_o attend_v we_o which_o of_o ourselves_o we_o can_v escape_v but_o if_o we_o trust_v in_o the_o name_n of_o the_o lord_n and_o rest_v ourselves_o upon_o god_n by_o faith_n 3_o faith_n psal_n 91._o 3_o he_o will_v deliver_v we_o from_o the_o snare_n of_o the_o fowler_n he_o will_v direct_v we_o in_o all_o our_o way_n and_o will_v guide_v our_o foot_n into_o the_o way_n of_o peace_n 23_o peace_n jer_n 10._o 23_o for_o the_o way_n of_o man_n be_v not_o in_o himself_o as_o say_v the_o prophet_n it_o be_v not_o in_o man_n that_o walk_v to_o direct_v his_o step_n if_o we_o be_v take_v in_o any_o of_o these_o snare_n that_o the_o devil_n lay_v for_o we_o we_o have_v no_o mean_n of_o recovery_n but_o by_o faith_n and_o true_a repentance_n for_o faith_n in_o christ_n will_v break_v the_o snare_n and_o repentance_n will_v draw_v we_o out_o of_o the_o pit_n which_o do_v threaten_v our_o destruction_n consider_v again_o that_o the_o devil_n labour_v to_o ensnare_v we_o with_o the_o allure_a bait_n of_o pleasure_n and_o profit_n thereby_o to_o draw_v away_o our_o heart_n and_o affection_n from_o god_n this_o be_v a_o cunning_a way_n to_o deceive_v we_o for_o we_o suspect_v no_o danger_n and_o no_o evil_a in_o those_o thing_n unto_o which_o we_o be_v natural_o incline_v so_o that_o we_o may_v easy_o be_v deceive_v with_o these_o guild_a bait_n for_o without_o a_o spiritual_a light_n we_o can_v see_v the_o hook_n that_o be_v in_o they_o which_o will_v pull_v we_o into_o the_o pit_n of_o perdition_n 14._o perdition_n 2_o cor._n 11._o 14._o thus_o the_o devil_n can_v transform_v himself_o into_o a_o angel_n of_o light_n 24._o light_n mat._n 24._o 24._o to_o deceive_v if_o it_o be_v possible_a the_o very_a elect_a the_o devil_n have_v so_o many_o way_n to_o entrap_v we_o that_o we_o can_v pass_v through_o this_o dangerous_a ocean_n without_o shipwreck_n except_o christ_n be_v our_o pilot_n by_o faith_n to_o steer_v our_o heart_n and_o affection_n and_o all_o the_o faculty_n of_o our_o soul_n with_o his_o spirit_n and_o then_o we_o shall_v escape_v all_o these_o rock_n and_o quicksand_n which_o do_v continual_o threaten_v the_o ruin_n and_o destruction_n of_o our_o poor_a soul_n we_o can_v mount_v above_o this_o black_a cloud_n of_o deadly_a snare_n and_o danger_n without_o the_o wing_n of_o faith_n and_o we_o can_v break_v the_o cord_n of_o sin_n without_o the_o strength_n of_o faith_n in_o the_o death_n of_o christ_n neither_o can_v we_o get_v out_o of_o the_o dominion_n of_o sin_n without_o the_o power_n of_o the_o same_o faith_n in_o christ_n such_o be_v the_o goodness_n of_o our_o
the_o comfort_n of_o the_o soul_n lay_v down_o by_o way_n of_o meditation_n upon_o some_o head_n of_o christian_a religion_n very_o profitable_a for_o every_o true_a christian_a compose_v and_o write_v by_o john_n anthony_n of_o london_n doctor_n of_o physic_n psal_n 19_o ver_fw-la 14._o let_v the_o word_n of_o my_o mouth_n and_o the_o meditation_n of_o my_o heart_n be_v always_o acceptable_a in_o thy_o sight_n o_o lord_n my_o strength_n and_o my_o redeemer_n london_n print_v for_o g._n dawson_n and_o be_v to_o be_v sell_v by_o john_n montague_n at_o the_o sign_n of_o the_o white-dragon_n in_o ducklane_n 1654._o i_o have_v peruse_v these_o divine_a meditation_n entitle_v the_o comfort_n of_o the_o soul_n and_o do_v find_v they_o to_o be_v so_o orthodox_n and_o solid_a pious_a and_o profitable_a that_o i_o do_v approve_v they_o well_o worthy_a to_o be_v print_v and_o publish_v john_n downame_n to_o the_o right_n honourable_a dame_n elizabeth_n dygby_n baronesse_n of_o geshal_n in_o the_o kingdom_n of_o ireland_n grace_n mercy_n and_o peace_n from_o god_n the_o father_n and_o from_o our_o lord_n jesus_n christ_n have_v nothing_o of_o i_o own_o that_o be_v worthy_a your_o acceptance_n to_o express_v my_o cordial_a respect_n and_o thankfulness_n for_o those_o many_o favour_n which_o i_o have_v receive_v from_o you_o i_o have_v take_v some_o spiritual_a receipt_n out_o of_o god_n sacred_a dispensatory_a which_o i_o be_o bold_a to_o present_v or_o dedicate_v to_o your_o honour_n because_o they_o be_v special_a cordial_n for_o the_o spirit_n and_o precious_a antidote_n against_o the_o evil_a of_o sad_a time_n wherein_o also_o you_o will_v find_v some_o balm_n of_o gilead_n for_o the_o cure_n of_o all_o spiritual_a disease_n if_o it_o be_v apply_v close_o to_o the_o part_n that_o be_v ill_o affect_v with_o the_o hand_n of_o faith_n if_o these_o thing_n do_v relish_v well_o with_o your_o spiritual_a palate_n than_o i_o be_o confident_a you_o will_v take_v sometime_o to_o ruminate_v hereupon_o for_o i_o know_v it_o have_v be_v your_o constant_a course_n to_o meditate_v something_o daily_o of_o divine_a and_o heavenly_a thing_n which_o do_v strong_o induce_v i_o to_o present_v these_o unripe_a fruit_n of_o my_o labour_n to_o you_o which_o i_o gather_v in_o my_o old_a age_n for_o my_o own_o use_n according_a to_o my_o first_o intention_n though_o i_o have_v thus_o labour_v out_o of_o my_o call_v as_o i_o be_o a_o physician_n yet_o i_o be_o not_o out_o of_o my_o profession_n as_o i_o be_o a_o christian_n now_o see_v this_o work_n be_v come_v to_o public_a view_n i_o do_v humble_o desire_v your_o favourable_a construction_n of_o the_o frailty_n that_o be_v in_o it_o and_o that_o you_o will_v be_v please_v to_o vindicate_v it_o from_o carp_a spirit_n for_o i_o do_v not_o write_v it_o to_o please_v their_o curiosity_n but_o to_o refresh_v and_o comfort_v those_o that_o do_v any_o way_n stand_v in_o need_n of_o spiritual_a consolation_n if_o any_o thing_n herein_o can_v give_v you_o any_o reasonable_a satisfaction_n let_v god_n have_v the_o honour_n and_o glory_n of_o his_o own_o work_n and_o i_o shall_v great_o rejoice_v therein_o and_o shall_v still_o remain_v your_o much_o oblige_a servant_n john_n anthony_n to_o the_o reader_n courteous_a reader_n if_o thou_o do_v live_v under_o the_o cross_n and_o be_v sensible_a of_o these_o sad_a time_n or_o if_o god_n visitation_n be_v upon_o thou_o which_o make_v thou_o to_o sigh_v and_o groan_v under_o the_o burden_n and_o pressure_n of_o thy_o sorrow_n so_o that_o thy_o soul_n desire_v comfort_n and_o thy_o spirit_n want_v spiritual_a refresh_n and_o heavenly_a consolation_n then_o i_o have_v write_v this_o treatise_n for_o thou_o which_o i_o present_v to_o thy_o view_n wherein_o thou_o shall_v find_v the_o true_a way_n how_o to_o demean_v thyself_o under_o god_n visitation_n how_o to_o bear_v thy_o cross_n with_o a_o content_a patience_n how_o to_o make_v the_o burden_n of_o thy_o sorrow_n more_o easy_a or_o how_o to_o be_v deliver_v out_o of_o they_o if_o god_n see_v it_o to_o be_v most_o for_o his_o glory_n and_o best_a for_o thy_o good_a also_o how_o to_o refresh_v thy_o spirit_n and_o comfort_v thy_o soul_n in_o what_o kind_n soever_o it_o be_v afflict_v here_o also_o thou_o shall_v find_v that_o many_o of_o god_n dear_a servant_n have_v suffer_v as_o great_a affliction_n as_o thou_o can_v and_o yet_o god_n do_v send_v they_o comfort_v and_o deliverance_n but_o special_o what_o christ_n thy_o saviour_n have_v suffer_v for_o thou_o and_o what_o benefit_n and_o comfort_n thou_o may_v have_v by_o it_o if_o thou_o can_v draw_v it_o to_o thyself_o and_o make_v a_o particular_a application_n of_o it_o to_o thy_o own_o sorrowful_a condition_n without_o which_o it_o will_v yield_v thou_o but_o small_a consolation_n in_o thy_o misery_n if_o thou_o do_v meet_v with_o any_o thing_n here_o that_o will_v fit_v thy_o present_a condition_n either_o for_o edification_n or_o for_o comfort_n thou_o must_v ruminate_v well_o upon_o it_o to_o suck_v out_o the_o spiritual_a jui●e_n to_o imprint_v it_o in_o thy_o mind_n and_o to_o bring_v it_o close_o home_o to_o thy_o heart_n that_o it_o may_v comfort_v thy_o soul_n and_o cure_v thy_o wound_a spirit_n david_n find_v great_a comfort_n when_o he_o do_v meditate_v on_o the_o word_n of_o god_n my_o soul_n say_v he_o shall_v be_v satisfy_v as_o with_o marrow_n and_o fatness_n and_o my_o mouth_n shall_v praise_v thou_o with_o joyful_a 6_o psal_n 63._o 5_o 6_o lip_n when_o i_o remember_v thou_o upon_o my_o bed_n and_o meditate_v on_o thou_o in_o the_o night_n watch_v and_o it_o must_v needs_o be_v so_o for_o this_o be_v a_o duty_n which_o god_n require_v and_o he_o take_v special_a notice_n of_o those_o that_o do_v practice_n it_o to_o pour_v down_o his_o blessing_n upon_o they_o as_o he_o do_v upon_o isaac_n who_o go_v out_o daily_o into_o the_o field_n to_o meditate_v 64._o gen._n 24._o 63_o 64._o upon_o the_o wonderful_a work_n of_o god_n and_o then_o at_o that_o very_a time_n god_n send_v he_o a_o virtuous_a wife_n if_o the_o spirit_n of_o god_n go_v along_o with_o thou_o in_o thy_o holy_a meditation_n they_o can_v but_o be_v comfortable_a to_o thy_o soul_n thou_o will_v then_o conceive_v aright_o of_o the_o secret_a and_o hide_a thing_n of_o god_n and_o thou_o will_v see_v the_o infinite_a wisdom_n and_o power_n of_o god_n in_o all_o the_o creature_n his_o goodness_n and_o bounty_n to_o thou_o in_o they_o and_o a_o glimpse_n of_o the_o majesty_n and_o glory_n of_o the_o great_a creator_n god_n almighty_n his_o holy_a spirit_n will_v also_o open_v thy_o heart_n to_o let_v in_o whatsoever_o spiritual_a good_a thou_o reape_v by_o thy_o pious_a meditation_n for_o if_o thou_o look_v upon_o the_o creature_n and_o do_v not_o meditate_v something_o of_o god_n in_o it_o thou_o do_v look_v upon_o it_o in_o vain_a and_o if_o thou_o read_v or_o hear_v his_o word_n preach_v and_o do_v not_o settle_v it_o upon_o thy_o affection_n by_o ruminate_v upon_o it_o thou_o can_v not_o edify_v thy_o heart_n nor_o comfort_v thy_o soul_n thereby_o so_o likewise_o if_o thou_o do_v read_v any_o thing_n in_o this_o treatise_n that_o be_v comfortable_a to_o poor_a deject_a spirit_n it_o will_v not_o comfort_v thou_o if_o it_o be_v not_o well_o digest_v in_o thy_o heart_n and_o apply_v to_o thy_o own_o soul_n if_o thou_o be_v not_o acquaint_v with_o this_o holy_a duty_n i_o have_v give_v thou_o some_o direction_n how_o to_o perform_v it_o and_o if_o thou_o do_v first_o practice_n it_o upon_o thyself_o to_o meditate_v upon_o thy_o own_o condition_n what_o thou_o be_v by_o nature_n and_o what_o by_o grace_n and_o consider_v serious_o in_o thy_o thought_n what_o way_n thou_o walk_v what_o step_v thou_o tread_v and_o to_o what_o end_n thy_o way_n do_v tend_v thou_o will_v not_o only_o come_v to_o the_o knowledge_n of_o thyself_o but_o thou_o will_v also_o learn_v how_o to_o meditate_v profitable_o and_o comfortable_o upon_o god_n thy_o creator_n upon_o jesus_n christ_n thy_o redeemer_n and_o upon_o the_o holy_a ghost_n thy_o sanctifier_n and_o comforter_n i_o conclude_v with_o this_o say_n of_o a_o ancient_a father_n nothing_o be_v find_v more_o sweet_a in_o this_o life_n nothing_o be_v conceive_v more_o comfortable_a nothing_o do_v so_o separate_v the_o affection_n from_o the_o love_n of_o this_o world_n nothing_o do_v so_o fortify_v the_o mind_n against_o temptation_n nothing_o do_v so_o stir_v up_o man_n and_o further_o he_o to_o every_o good_a work_n and_o duty_n as_o the_o grace_n and_o benefit_n of_o divine_a meditation_n and_o heavenly_a contemplation_n thou_o in_o the_o lord_n christ_n john_n anthony_n a_o table_n of_o these_o several_a head_n contain_v in_o this_o book_n meditation_n be_v a_o duty_n
be_v so_o well_o dispose_v for_o such_o a_o heavenly_a duty_n or_o else_o the_o devil_n will_v be_v ready_a to_o suggest_v unto_o he_o evil_a thought_n or_o to_o bring_v into_o his_o remembrance_n some_o of_o his_o former_a sin_n to_o disquiet_v the_o peace_n of_o his_o conscience_n to_o trouble_v the_o tranquillity_n of_o his_o mind_n and_o so_o to_o interrupt_v his_o thought_n that_o his_o meditation_n may_v not_o be_v for_o the_o honour_n of_o god_n nor_o yet_o fruitful_a and_o profitable_a to_o himself_o and_o therefore_o he_o must_v crave_v the_o assistance_n of_o the_o spirit_n of_o god_n by_o prayer_n rule_n of_o direction_n for_o our_o holy_a meditation_n wherefore_o now_o that_o our_o meditation_n may_v be_v holy_a and_o acceptable_a to_o god_n and_o that_o we_o may_v find_v sweetness_n and_o comfort_n in_o they_o we_o must_v careful_o observe_v these_o few_o direction_n follow_v the_o first_o be_v to_o fix_v our_o meditation_n upon_o holy_a thing_n and_o not_o upon_o that_o which_o be_v vain_a and_o unprofitable_a for_o they_o do_v most_o conduce_v to_o the_o glory_n of_o god_n and_o to_o the_o comfort_n of_o our_o soul_n this_o be_v paul_n counsel_n 2_o counsel_n col._n 3._o 1_o 2_o to_o set_v our_o affection_n on_o thing_n above_o not_o on_o thing_n on_o the_o earth_n whereby_o we_o shall_v give_v a_o clear_a evidence_n that_o we_o be_v rise_v with_o christ_n from_o the_o death_n of_o sin_n to_o the_o life_n of_o grace_n as_o our_o affection_n be_v carry_v so_o be_v our_o meditation_n if_o they_o be_v carry_v to_o worldly_a vanity_n our_o mind_n will_v be_v so_o encumber_a that_o we_o can_v free_o meditate_v upon_o those_o thing_n that_o concern_v the_o kingdom_n of_o heaven_n neither_o will_v our_o meditation_n be_v for_o god_n glory_n or_o for_o our_o eternal_a good_a but_o if_o our_o affection_n be_v carry_v towards_o heavenly_a thing_n than_o our_o meditation_n will_v be_v spiritual_a and_o heavenly_a and_o our_o action_n will_v be_v tend_v to_o the_o honour_n of_o god_n 3._o god_n 1_o chron._n 29._o 3._o david_n set_v his_o affection_n to_o the_o house_n of_o his_o god_n and_o therefore_o he_o prepare_v abundant_o of_o his_o own_o proper_a good_a of_o gold_n and_o silver_n which_o he_o give_v to_o the_o build_n of_o it_o wherefore_o it_o concern_v we_o very_o much_o to_o keep_v our_o heart_n close_o unto_o god_n that_o our_o mind_n may_v be_v raise_v up_o to_o he_o in_o our_o heavenly_a contemplation_n and_o that_o he_o may_v be_v glorify_v in_o all_o our_o action_n the_o second_o direction_n be_v that_o our_o meditation_n must_v be_v of_o the_o heart_n as_o well_o as_o of_o the_o brain_n otherwise_o this_o duty_n be_v not_o so_o perform_v that_o god_n will_v accept_v it_o it_o be_v the_o heart_n which_o god_n respect_v in_o all_o our_o service_n to_o he_o without_o which_o our_o best_a duty_n be_v not_o regard_v 19_o regard_v luk._n 2._o 19_o the_o bless_a virgin_n keep_v all_o the_o say_n of_o the_o shepherd_n and_o other_o concern_v christ_n and_o ponder_v they_o in_o her_o heart_n oh_o how_o acceptable_a be_v that_o sacrifice_n which_o be_v offer_v up_o to_o god_n with_o a_o pure_a and_o perfect_a heart_n how_o effectual_a be_v that_o prayer_n which_o be_v present_v unto_o he_o with_o a_o true_a and_o faithful_a heart_n how_o please_a be_v those_o alm_n to_o god_n that_o be_v give_v to_o the_o poor_a with_o a_o willing_a heart_n and_o how_o comfortable_a be_v those_o meditation_n which_o proceed_v from_o a_o upright_a heart_n the_o brain_n may_v work_v and_o the_o cogitation_n of_o the_o mind_n may_v be_v set_v upon_o holy_a object_n and_o all_o to_o little_a purpose_n if_o the_o affection_n of_o the_o heart_n be_v want_v three_o the_o end_n of_o our_o meditation_n must_v crown_v the_o work_n with_o gracious_a acceptance_n and_o this_o must_v be_v the_o glory_n of_o god_n we_o do_v great_o honour_v god_n in_o our_o meditation_n when_o we_o ruminate_v upon_o his_o incomprehensible_a essence_n how_o infinite_a he_o be_v in_o all_o his_o divine_a attribute_n and_o how_o wonderful_a in_o all_o his_o work_n also_o when_o we_o meditate_v upon_o his_o law_n and_o upon_o his_o gracious_a promise_n to_o we_o in_o christ_n if_o hereby_o we_o be_v bring_v to_o reverence_n and_o adore_v his_o sacred_a majesty_n to_o love_v he_o for_o his_o goodness_n and_o to_o yield_v due_a obedience_n unto_o his_o command_n and_o if_o we_o can_v rest_v upon_o his_o promise_n and_o discern_v his_o wisdom_n and_o glory_n by_o his_o work_n this_o must_v be_v the_o main_a end_n of_o our_o meditation_n and_o if_o we_o do_v serious_o meditate_v upon_o the_o holy_a thing_n of_o god_n to_o a_o holy_a end_n than_o god_n will_v accept_v they_o and_o we_o shall_v be_v edify_v by_o they_o but_o if_o we_o propound_v any_o other_o end_n to_o ourselves_o whether_o it_o be_v for_o discourse_n or_o vainglory_n or_o the_o like_a we_o seek_v not_o the_o honour_n of_o god_n herein_o but_o we_o delude_v ourselves_o and_o defraud_v our_o soul_n of_o that_o heavenly_a comfort_n which_o otherwise_o they_o may_v have_v four_o our_o heart_n and_o conscience_n must_v be_v purify_v and_o cleanse_v from_o dead_a work_n by_o faith_n and_o true_a repentance_n that_o a_o holy_a zeal_n may_v be_v kindle_v in_o our_o affection_n and_o that_o our_o soul_n may_v feel_v the_o comfort_n of_o a_o spiritual_a warmth_n by_o our_o holy_a meditation_n for_o if_o there_o be_v any_o guilt_n of_o sin_n that_o cleave_v fast_o to_o our_o conscience_n because_o we_o have_v no_o assurance_n by_o repentance_n that_o it_o be_v wash_v away_o in_o the_o blood_n of_o christ_n by_o faith_n it_o will_v cool_v the_o zeal_n of_o our_o affection_n and_o stop_v the_o current_n of_o god_n assist_v grace_n so_o that_o our_o meditation_n can_v make_v no_o holy_a impression_n in_o our_o heart_n no_o print_n of_o piety_n in_o our_o life_n and_o conversation_n neither_o can_v they_o send_v forth_o any_o beam_n of_o true_a consolation_n to_o our_o soul_n wherefore_o if_o our_o heart_n be_v not_o sanctify_v and_o season_v with_o grace_n our_o meditation_n can_v be_v to_o the_o glory_n of_o god_n nor_o to_o our_o own_o spiritual_a good_a neither_o can_v we_o say_v as_o the_o psalmist_n do_v 34._o do_v psal_n 104_o 34._o my_o meditation_n of_o god_n shall_v be_v sweet_a i_o will_v be_v glad_a in_o the_o lord_n this_o will_v move_v our_o heart_n and_o affection_n and_o will_v put_v a_o spiritual_a life_n into_o our_o meditation_n when_o our_o heart_n be_v cleanse_v from_o the_o guilt_n of_o sin_n so_o that_o we_o can_v free_o meditate_v upon_o the_o bounty_n and_o goodness_n of_o god_n in_o all_o his_o deal_n with_o we_o this_o we_o may_v do_v if_o faith_n go_v along_o in_o all_o our_o holy_a meditation_n five_o we_o must_v have_v some_o spiritual_a understanding_n in_o those_o thing_n whereon_o we_o desire_v to_o meditate_v that_o the_o holy_a ghost_n may_v guide_v we_o in_o our_o meditation_n and_o then_o we_o shall_v glorify_v god_n and_o comfort_v our_o soul_n thereby_o otherwise_o the_o thought_n of_o our_o heart_n will_v wander_v and_o go_v far_o astray_o from_o the_o matter_n whereupon_o they_o shall_v be_v fix_v and_o we_o may_v easy_o lose_v ourselves_o in_o the_o dark_a if_o the_o spirit_n of_o god_n do_v not_o give_v we_o some_o spiritual_a light_n to_o guide_v and_o direct_v we_o therein_o and_o we_o can_v receive_v no_o benefit_n by_o this_o holy_a service_n if_o it_o be_v not_o perform_v with_o a_o understand_a heart_n the_o more_o knowledge_n we_o have_v of_o what_o we_o intend_v to_o meditate_v the_o more_o will_v our_o heart_n be_v enlarge_v for_o it_o and_o the_o deep_a impression_n will_v our_o meditation_n make_v in_o our_o affection_n and_o the_o great_a will_v be_v the_o comfort_n of_o our_o soul_n this_o be_v the_o say_n of_o the_o psalmist_n 3._o psalmist_n psal_n 49._o 3._o the_o meditation_n of_o my_o heart_n shall_v be_v of_o understanding_n thus_o say_v paul_n 15_o paul_n 1_o cor._n 14_o 15_o i_o will_v pray_v with_o the_o spirit_n and_o i_o will_v pray_v with_o the_o understanding_n also_o i_o will_v sing_v with_o th●_n spirit_n and_o i_o will_v sing_v with_o the_o understanding_n also_o so_o likewise_o we_o must_v meditate_v with_o the_o spirit_n and_o with_o the_o understanding_n also_o how_o can_v we_o learn_v the_o commandment_n of_o god_n and_o how_o can_v we_o keep_v his_o law_n if_o the_o lord_n do_v not_o give_v we_o understanding_n in_o they_o by_o his_o spirit_n this_o heavenly_a wisdom_n be_v the_o gift_n of_o god_n which_o we_o must_v with_o all_o care_n and_o diligence_n labour_v for_o according_a to_o this_o of_o solomon_n 7._o solomon_n prov._n 4._o 7._o wisdom_n be_v the_o principal_a thing_n therefore_o get_v wisdom_n and_o with_o all_o
thy_o get_n get_v understanding_n this_o be_v a_o special_a mean_n to_o come_v to_o the_o true_a way_n of_o holy_a and_o devout_a meditation_n six_o we_o must_v daily_o practise_v this_o religious_a duty_n and_o if_o we_o learn_v to_o meditate_v upon_o ourselves_o what_o our_o state_n and_o condition_n be_v whether_o it_o be_v of_o nature_n or_o of_o grace_n it_o will_v bring_v we_o to_o the_o meditation_n of_o spiritual_a thing_n though_o it_o be_v a_o very_a hard_a matter_n for_o a_o true_a child_n of_o god_n to_o meditate_v upon_o heavenly_a thing_n for_o his_o own_o benefit_n and_o comfort_n yet_o by_o use_n and_o exercise_n we_o may_v attain_v unto_o it_o and_o the_o sweetness_n that_o we_o shall_v find_v in_o it_o will_v by_o degree_n bring_v we_o to_o delight_v in_o this_o pious_a duty_n ●0_n duty_n phil._n 3._o ●0_n for_o by_o this_o mean_v we_o shall_v have_v our_o conversation_n in_o heaven_n though_o we_o live_v upon_o earth_n and_o we_o shall_v enjoy_v heaven_n and_o heavenly_a happiness_n in_o some_o part_n while_o we_o live_v in_o this_o world_n for_o if_o we_o be_v frequent_a in_o our_o meditation_n on_o the_o kingdom_n of_o heaven_n 12_o heaven_n 2_o cor._n 1._o 12_o the_o grace_n of_o god_n will_v make_v our_o conversation_n in_o this_o world_n to_o be_v in_o simplicity_n and_o godly_a sincerity_n the_o seven_o direction_n be_v to_o choose_v such_o time_n and_o such_o place_n as_o be_v most_o fit_v and_o most_o convenienient_a for_o this_o holy_a duty_n that_o we_o be_v not_o interrupt_v by_o any_o occurrence_n of_o worldly_a occasion_n but_o that_o our_o mind_n and_o our_o heart_n may_v agree_v and_o go_v together_o in_o our_o meditation_n the_o fit_a time_n for_o this_o religious_a service_n be_v when_o god_n be_v please_v to_o give_v a_o inclination_n of_o will_n and_o to_o move_v our_o heart_n thereunto_o by_o his_o holy_a spirit_n which_o time_n we_o ought_v not_o to_o let_v slip_n nor_o to_o lose_v this_o opportunity_n which_o he_o tender_v to_o we_o because_o it_o be_v the_o time_n for_o grace_n of_o his_o own_o choose_n and_o the_o time_n which_o he_o will_v accept_v if_o we_o take_v this_o time_n and_o set_v it_o apart_o to_o employ_v ourselves_o in_o this_o holy_a service_n he_o will_v then_o enlarge_v our_o heart_n for_o it_o he_o will_v direct_v we_o in_o it_o and_o he_o will_v gracious_o assist_v we_o with_o his_o spirit_n to_o conceive_v aright_o of_o those_o thing_n whereon_o we_o do_v intend_v to_o meditate_v as_o we_o must_v be_v free_a at_o that_o time_n from_o all_o incumberance_n by_o our_o affair_n so_o we_o must_v retire_v to_o such_o a_o place_n where_o we_o may_v be_v solitary_a and_o private_a that_o our_o heart_n may_v whole_o intend_v our_o meditation_n a_o solitary_a field_n be_v a_o fit_a place_n to_o ruminate_v upon_o the_o work_n of_o god_n 6._o god_n mat._n 6._o 6._o our_o closet_n be_v most_o convenient_a to_o meditate_v on_o the_o law_n of_o god_n if_o we_o choose_v such_o time_n and_o place_n we_o may_v free_o delight_v ourselves_o with_o heavenly_a and_o spiritual_a contemplation_n last_o we_o must_v prepare_v our_o heart_n for_o this_o pious_a duty_n by_o faithful_a prayer_n that_o god_n will_v be_v please_v to_o aid_v and_o assist_v we_o herein_o with_o his_o bless_a spirit_n to_o raise_v up_o our_o affection_n to_o enlighten_v our_o understanding_n and_o to_o purge_v and_o cleanse_v our_o heart_n from_o all_o sinful_a thought_n worldly_a care_n and_o from_o every_o evil_a concupiscence_n that_o we_o may_v full_o devote_v ourselves_o to_o the_o meditation_n of_o heavenly_a thing_n that_o this_o holy_a service_n may_v be_v perform_v to_o the_o glory_n of_o god_n to_o the_o increase_n of_o our_o spiritual_a knowledge_n to_o the_o strengthen_n of_o our_o faith_n and_o confidence_n in_o god_n &_o to_o carry_v we_o on_o cheerful_o through_o all_o the_o troublesome_a chance_n and_o change_n that_o be_v incident_a to_o this_o life_n for_o our_o holy_a meditation_n will_v lift_v up_o our_o heart_n and_o affection_n above_o all_o worldly_a care_n and_o above_o all_o the_o cross_n and_o sorrow_n that_o we_o shall_v meet_v with_o here_o upon_o earth_n holy_a meditation_n be_v the_o prerogative_n only_o of_o a_o true_a christian_a among_o many_o prerogative_n that_o a_o true_a believe_a christian_n have_v above_o all_o other_o man_n this_o be_v not_o the_o least_o that_o he_o can_v raise_v up_o the_o affection_n of_o his_o heart_n to_o heavenly_a contemplation_n by_o the_o power_n of_o the_o spirit_n of_o grace_n that_o be_v in_o he_o whereas_o unregenerate_a man_n can_v attain_v to_o this_o high_a degree_n of_o true_a christianity_n by_o all_o the_o mean_v that_o art_n or_o nature_n can_v afford_v they_o for_o their_o meditation_n reach_v but_o to_o the_o notion_n of_o the_o brain_n and_o be_v practise_v only_o by_o the_o outward_a man_n which_o can_v yield_v they_o no_o spiritual_a consolation_n because_o they_o have_v not_o the_o power_n of_o grace_n to_o move_v the_o affection_n of_o the_o heart_n to_o heavenly_a thing_n which_o only_o can_v minister_v sweetness_n &_o true_a consolation_n to_o a_o afflict_a soul_n and_o to_o a_o trouble_a conscience_n to_o give_v they_o good_a hope_n and_o assurance_n of_o the_o grace_n and_o favour_n of_o god_n and_o of_o the_o pardon_n and_o forgiveness_n of_o their_o sin_n carnal_a man_n set_v their_o mind_n and_o affection_n upon_o carnal_a delight_n voluptuous_a man_n do_v daily_o study_v how_o to_o satisfy_v their_o soul_n with_o unprofitable_a pleasure_n and_o worldly_a mind_a man_n set_v their_o heart_n upon_o covetousness_n and_o upon_o the_o pomp_n and_o vanity_n of_o this_o present_a world_n these_o and_o the_o like_a kind_n of_o man_n be_v so_o press_v down_o with_o the_o burden_n of_o sin_n and_o they_o be_v so_o encumber_v with_o worldly_a care_n and_o sinful_a delight_n that_o they_o have_v no_o power_n to_o mount_v up_o towards_o heaven_n in_o their_o affection_n and_o no_o heart_n fit_a for_o divine_a contemplation_n because_o they_o have_v no_o interest_n in_o christ_n and_o therefore_o they_o can_v have_v no_o spiritual_a light_n to_o discern_v aright_o of_o heavenly_a thing_n but_o a_o true_a believe_a christian_n have_v the_o light_n of_o god_n spirit_n to_o give_v he_o spiritual_a understanding_n he_o have_v strength_n of_o grace_n to_o withstand_v all_o spiritual_a let_n and_o hindrance_n and_o to_o raise_v up_o his_o affection_n above_o all_o earthly_a thing_n &_o with_o the_o wing_n of_o faith_n he_o can_v mount_v up_o above_o all_o the_o block_n and_o impediment_n that_o the_o devil_n or_o wicked_a man_n can_v cast_v in_o his_o way_n to_o depress_v his_o spirit_n and_o to_o keep_v down_o the_o cogitation_n of_o his_o heart_n from_o pious_a and_o devout_a meditation_n it_o can_v be_v deny_v but_o that_o the_o dear_a of_o god_n servant_n can_v sometime_o perform_v this_o religious_a duty_n as_o they_o shall_v because_o they_o do_v often_o find_v the_o flesh_n to_o war_n against_o the_o spirit_n 23._o spirit_n rom._n 7._o 21_o 23._o as_o paul_n do_v and_o that_o they_o be_v so_o yoke_v with_o their_o unregenerate_a part_n that_o when_o they_o will_v do_v good_a either_o for_o the_o glory_n of_o god_n or_o for_o the_o comfort_n of_o their_o own_o soul_n evil_a be_v present_a with_o they_o which_o do_v disturb_v the_o peace_n of_o their_o conscience_n the_o quiet_a of_o their_o mind_n and_o the_o freedom_n of_o their_o spirit_n and_o do_v also_o stop_v the_o sweet_a influence_n of_o comfort_n that_o shall_v come_v to_o their_o soul_n but_o especial_o they_o be_v hinder_v in_o their_o meditation_n which_o be_v a_o duty_n mere_o spiritual_a and_o can_v be_v perform_v but_o by_o the_o spirit_n yet_o through_o christ_n they_o get_v the_o victory_n and_o they_o will_v break_v through_o all_o opposition_n because_o 22._o because_o rom._n 7._o 22._o they_o delight_v in_o the_o law_n of_o god_n and_o in_o heavenly_a contemplation_n after_o the_o inward_a man_n and_o their_o mind_n will_v be_v set_v at_o liberty_n to_o serve_v he_o 25._o he_o rom._n 7._o 25._o though_o with_o the_o flesh_n they_o do_v sometime_o serve_v the_o law_n of_o sin_n if_o we_o have_v give_v up_o our_o name_n unto_o christ_n and_o be_v list_v in_o his_o roll_n to_o fight_v under_o his_o banner_n we_o must_v look_v for_o continual_a conflict_n and_o combat_n with_o our_o spiritual_a enemy_n which_o daily_o seek_v to_o ruin_v our_o soul_n by_o hinder_v we_o in_o our_o religious_a duty_n but_o we_o be_v sure_a to_o have_v comfort_n in_o christ_n and_o power_n from_o he_o to_o prevail_v against_o they_o and_o to_o get_v the_o conquest_n over_o they_o all_o if_o we_o can_v raise_v up_o our_o heart_n to_o contemplate_v his_o omnipotent_a power_n his_o infinite_a wisdom_n and_o his_o wonderful_a care_n of_o we_o sometime_o
sentence_n of_o condemnation_n upon_o they_o within_o they_o be_v conscience_n gnaw_v like_o the_o worm_n that_o die_v not_o because_o it_o be_v full_a of_o the_o guilt_n of_o sin_n without_o they_o all_o damn_a soul_n be_v howl_v and_o yell_v and_o on_o every_o side_n the_o whole_a world_n be_v burn_v what_o shall_v a_o wretched_a sinner_n now_o do_v that_o carry_v the_o guilt_n of_o his_o sin_n with_o he_o to_o this_o great_a day_n of_o judgement_n how_o can_v his_o heart_n bear_v these_o fearful_a perplexity_n what_o way_n will_v he_o take_v to_o escape_v this_o dreadful_a judgement_n to_o go_v back_o it_o be_v impossible_a to_o go_v forward_o be_v intolerable_a death_n will_v slay_v from_o he_o the_o grave_n can_v hold_v he_o the_o hill_n can_v cover_v he_o but_o there_o he_o must_v stand_v as_o a_o miserable_a forlorn_a and_o desperate_a wretch_n until_o he_o receive_v this_o doleful_a and_o irrecoverable_a sentence_n go_v you_o curse_v into_o everlastingfire_n the_o thought_n of_o these_o thing_n can_v be_v but_o most_o terrible_a now_o it_o concern_v every_o one_o to_o set_v his_o heart_n in_o a_o holy_a frame_n of_o fear_n and_o reverence_n and_o to_o humble_v his_o soul_n great_o before_o god_n when_o he_o intend_v to_o ruminate_v upon_o the_o glorious_a majesty_n of_o this_o great_a judge_n or_o upon_o this_o great_a and_o terrible_a day_n when_o a_o most_o severe_a account_n shall_v be_v require_v of_o every_o one_o of_o whatsoever_o they_o have_v do_v in_o this_o life_n whether_o it_o be_v good_a or_o evil_a also_o when_o they_o meditate_v on_o the_o fearful_a sentence_n which_o shall_v then_o be_v pronounce_v against_o all_o offender_n and_o execute_v upon_o they_o to_o all_o eternity_n without_o any_o hope_n of_o ease_n or_o remedy_n this_o be_v not_o to_o deter_v or_o affright_v we_o from_o a_o holy_a &_o pious_a meditation_n of_o these_o thing_n though_o they_o be_v every_o sad_a and_o doleful_a to_o natural_a man_n neither_o be_v it_o to_o drive_v we_o into_o despair_n as_o if_o there_o be_v no_o hope_n to_o stand_v before_o this_o judge_n with_o comfort_n at_o that_o day_n or_o to_o avoid_v that_o dreadful_a sentence_n of_o condemnation_n but_o it_o be_v to_o stir_v we_o up_o to_o use_v all_o care_n and_o diligence_n to_o make_v our_o peace_n with_o god_n in_o time_n and_o to_o get_v a_o modest_a and_o a_o sober_a assurance_n of_o the_o pardon_n of_o our_o sin_n by_o repentance_n and_o that_o by_o a_o true_a and_o lively_a faith_n we_o may_v be_v unite_v unto_o christ_n our_o bless_a saviour_n and_o redeemer_n who_o shall_v be_v then_o our_o judge_n this_o consideration_n must_v needs_o comfort_v we_o much_o if_o we_o have_v any_o clear_a evidence_n that_o we_o belong_v unto_o christ_n to_o this_o end_n 13._o end_n mark_v 13._o christ_n foretell_v his_o disciple_n the_o fearful_a manner_n of_o his_o come_n to_o judgement_n that_o they_o shall_v watch_v and_o pray_v that_o so_o it_o may_v not_o come_v sudden_o upon_o they_o to_o find_v they_o sleep_v in_o security_n or_o unprepared_a for_o it_o and_o what_o he_o say_v unto_o they_o he_o say_v unto_o all_o that_o we_o shall_v also_o watch_v and_o pray_v to_o escape_v the_o great_a danger_n of_o that_o terrible_a day_n and_o to_o stand_v with_o confidence_n before_o the_o throne_n of_o the_o son_n of_o man_n at_o that_o time_n when_o 12._o when_o 2_o pet._n 3._o 10_o 11_o 12._o peter_n have_v describe_v with_o what_o terror_n the_o lord_n will_v come_v to_o judgement_n he_o exhort_v we_o to_o a_o holy_a conversation_n and_o to_o godliness_n look_v for_o and_o haste_v unto_o the_o come_n of_o the_o day_n of_o god_n and_o therefore_o to_o be_v diligent_a that_o we_o may_v be_v find_v of_o he_o in_o peace_n without_o spot_n and_o blameless_a thus_o we_o may_v meet_v the_o day_n of_o judgement_n with_o comfort_n if_o we_o can_v earnest_o long_a after_o it_o and_o can_v hearty_o desire_v to_o meet_v our_o lord_n christ_n when_o he_o come_v in_o the_o cloud_n unto_o judgement_n which_o we_o can_v do_v until_o we_o find_v by_o due_a examination_n that_o we_o be_v in_o the_o state_n of_o grace_n and_o that_o by_o faith_n we_o be_v invest_v into_o the_o new_a covenant_n and_o have_v live_v unto_o god_n and_o not_o unto_o ourselves_o wherefore_o thus_o say_v the_o son_n of_o sirach_n 20._o sirach_n eccl._n 18._o 20._o before_o judgement_n examine_v thyself_o and_o in_o the_o day_n of_o visitation_n thou_o shall_v find_v mercy_n and_o as_o paul_n say_v 31._o say_v 1_o cor._n 11._o 31._o if_o we_o will_v judge_v ourselves_o we_o shall_v not_o be_v judge_v this_o try_v and_o judge_v of_o ourselves_o must_v be_v do_v in_o this_o life_n for_o after_o death_n there_o be_v no_o faith_n no_o repentance_n and_o no_o reformation_n of_o life_n if_o we_o die_v in_o our_o sin_n they_o will_v follow_v we_o unto_o judgement_n and_o accuse_v we_o before_o the_o great_a judge_n of_o heaven_n and_o earth_n and_o they_o will_v cry_v in_o the_o ear_n of_o god_n for_o the_o sentence_n of_o condemnation_n to_o be_v pass_v against_o we_o which_o also_o will_v present_o be_v put_v in_o execution_n to_o the_o utter_a destruction_n of_o our_o soul_n and_o body_n in_o everlasting_a burn_n how_o to_o meditate_v comfortable_o on_o god_n if_o we_o desire_v to_o make_v our_o meditation_n on_o god_n to_o be_v comfortable_a to_o our_o soul_n we_o must_v not_o look_v only_o upon_o his_o greatness_n but_o also_o upon_o his_o goodness_n for_o our_o shallow_a meditation_n can_v reach_v so_o far_o as_o to_o draw_v any_o true_a comfort_n to_o ourselves_o from_o the_o consideration_n of_o of_o his_o greatness_n and_o power_n unless_o we_o do_v also_o look_v upon_o his_o goodness_n to_o we_o in_o christ_n which_o do_v open_v a_o fountain_n of_o true_a consolation_n to_o we_o not_o only_o in_o our_o meditation_n of_o he_o but_o also_o in_o our_o suffering_n for_o he_o so_o likewise_o if_o we_o look_v only_o upon_o the_o justice_n of_o god_n without_o any_o relation_n to_o his_o mercy_n in_o christ_n we_o shall_v find_v little_a comfort_n in_o our_o meditation_n of_o he_o for_o we_o can_v but_o quake_v and_o tremble_v at_o the_o severity_n of_o his_o justice_n because_o we_o have_v break_v all_o his_o commandment_n and_o have_v transgress_v his_o law_n and_o therefore_o we_o lie_v under_o the_o curse_n and_o penalty_n of_o it_o also_o if_o we_o look_v upon_o ourselves_o altogether_o as_o we_o be_v by_o nature_n pollute_v and_o stain_v with_o the_o guilt_n of_o sin_n both_o original_a and_o actual_a without_o any_o relation_n to_o the_o blood_n of_o christ_n by_o faith_n it_o will_v make_v we_o ashamed_a to_o come_v into_o the_o presence_n of_o god_n and_o afraid_a to_o think_v upon_o he_o because_o he_o be_v a_o sin-revenging_a god_n and_o will_v not_o suffer_v sin_n to_o go_v unpunished_a but_o thus_o we_o shall_v have_v comfort_n in_o our_o meditation_n of_o god_n if_o we_o look_v upon_o he_o in_o christ_n by_o faith_n for_o than_o we_o shall_v see_v that_o christ_n have_v wrought_v our_o reconciliation_n with_o he_o by_o his_o death_n that_o he_o have_v make_v a_o atonement_n for_o we_o that_o he_o have_v satisfy_v his_o justice_n and_o the_o penalty_n of_o the_o law_n by_o the_o merit_n of_o his_o blood_n and_o that_o he_o have_v take_v the_o guilt_n of_o our_o sin_n upon_o himself_o and_o have_v nail_v it_o to_o his_o own_o cross_n 26._o cross_n rom._n 3._o 24_o 25_o 26._o and_o therefore_o we_o be_v justify_v free_o by_o his_o grace_n through_o the_o redemption_n that_o be_v in_o jesus_n christ_n who_o god_n have_v set_v forth_o to_o be_v a_o propitiation_n through_o faith_n in_o his_o blood_n to_o declare_v his_o righteousness_n that_o he_o may_v be_v just_a and_o the_o justifier_n of_o he_o which_o believe_v in_o jesus_n wherefore_o as_o john_n say_v 2._o say_v 1_o john_n 2._o 1_o 2._o if_o any_o man_n sin_n we_o have_v a_o advocate_n with_o the_o father_n jesus_n christ_n the_o righteous_a and_o he_o be_v the_o prepitiation_n for_o our_o sin_n and_o not_o for_o we_o only_o but_o also_o for_o the_o sin_n of_o the_o whole_a world_n the_o same_o john_n do_v express_v the_o wonderful_a love_n of_o god_n to_o we_o in_o these_o word_n 10._o word_n 1_o joh._n 4._o 10._o herein_o be_v love_n not_o that_o we_o love_v god_n but_o that_o he_o love_v we_o and_o send_v his_o son_n to_o be_v the_o propitiation_n for_o our_o sin_n now_o we_o may_v receive_v plenty_n of_o spiritual_a comfort_n when_o we_o meditate_v on_o god_n either_o in_o his_o greatness_n or_o in_o his_o goodness_n in_o his_o justice_n or_o in_o his_o mercy_n for_o by_o this_o atonement_n which_o christ_n have_v make_v for_o we_o god_n do_v not_o now_o look_v upon_o we_o as_o his_o enemy_n or_o
as_o rebel_n to_o he_o but_o he_o take_v we_o for_o his_o own_o people_n and_o as_o his_o servant_n 33._o servant_n jer._n 31._o 33._o according_a to_o his_o promise_n in_o the_o new_a covenant_n and_o also_o as_o his_o child_n by_o adoption_n in_o christ_n which_o make_v the_o meditation_n of_o our_o heart_n sweet_a and_o comfortable_a to_o our_o soul_n it_o be_v a_o great_a honour_n to_o be_v servant_n to_o a_o earthly_a prince_n but_o it_o be_v a_o far_o high_a title_n of_o honour_n to_o be_v servant_n to_o the_o king_n of_o heaven_n the_o holy_a patriarch_n and_o prophet_n all_o the_o apostle_n and_o saint_n of_o god_n do_v account_v it_o their_o high_a honour_n to_o be_v the_o servant_n of_o god_n and_o they_o do_v much_o glory_n in_o this_o honourable_a title_n thus_o say_v that_o kingly_a prophet_n david_n 16._o david_n psal_n 116._o 16._o o_o lord_n true_o i_o be_o thy_o servant_n and_o the_o son_n of_o thy_o handmaid_n thou_o have_v loose_v my_o bond_n david_n use_v this_o as_o a_o strong_a motive_n to_o god_n to_o hear_v his_o prayer_n and_o to_o grant_v his_o request_n 16._o request_n psal_n 86._o 2_o 4_o 16._o o_o thou_o my_o god_n save_v thy_o servant_n that_o trust_v in_o thou_o rejoice_v the_o soul_n of_o thy_o servant_n f●r_v unto_o thou_o o_o lord_n do_v i_o lift_v up_o my_o soul_n o_o turn_n unto_o i_o and_o have_v mercy_n upon_o i_o give_v thy_o strength_n unto_o thy_o servant_n and_o save_v the_o son_n of_o thy_o handmaid_n god_n give_v this_o title_n of_o honour_n to_o his_o choice_a servant_n as_o to_o abraham_n to_o jacob_n to_o moses_n to_o david_n job_n zor●bab●l_n and_o to_o christ_n himself_o as_o he_o be_v man_n for_o thus_o he_o say_v by_o his_o prophet_n 8._o prophet_n zech._n 3._o 8._o behold_v i_o will_v bring_v forth_o my_o servant_n the_o branch_n this_o honour_n have_v all_o they_o that_o true_o believe_v in_o christ_n because_o he_o have_v reconcile_v they_o to_o god_n his_o father_n and_o have_v make_v they_o his_o servant_n by_o grace_n wherefore_o now_o if_o we_o have_v any_o clear_a evidence_n to_o our_o conscience_n that_o we_o be_v the_o servant_n of_o god_n by_o virtue_n of_o this_o atonement_n if_o we_o do_v serve_v and_o obey_v he_o with_o faithful_a heart_n in_o sincerity_n and_o in_o truth_n we_o may_v then_o cheerful_o fix_v our_o meditation_n upon_o god_n which_o will_v be_v acceptable_a in_o his_o sight_n and_o comfortable_a to_o our_o own_o soul_n for_o by_o this_o sweet_a relation_n that_o we_o have_v unto_o god_n through_o faith_n in_o christ_n our_o duty_n and_o service_n to_o he_o will_v be_v accept_v though_o they_o be_v imperfect_o perform_v by_o we_o if_o we_o show_v our_o best_a care_n to_o please_v he_o from_o a_o upright_a heart_n as_o his_o faithful_a servant_n ought_v to_o do_v also_o we_o may_v apply_v ourselves_o by_o holy_a supplication_n to_o our_o heavenly_a lord_n as_o be_v his_o servant_n to_o protect_v we_o from_o our_o enemy_n to_o provide_v for_o we_o in_o our_o necessity_n to_o succour_v we_o in_o our_o tribulation_n and_o to_o countenance_v we_o as_o his_o servant_n in_o all_o our_o temptation_n that_o our_o faith_n may_v not_o fail_v we_o and_o that_o our_o spirit_n may_v not_o sink_v under_o the_o burden_n of_o they_o whatsoever_o we_o want_v we_o may_v have_v it_o of_o god_n and_o whatsoever_o we_o fear_v may_v come_v upon_o we_o he_o will_v prevent_v it_o or_o fit_v we_o for_o it_o or_o else_o he_o will_v sanctify_v it_o for_o our_o good_a that_o we_o may_v find_v comfort_n in_o it_o wherefore_o we_o need_v not_o be_v afraid_a to_o contemplate_v his_o greatness_n for_o his_o goodness_n will_v sweeten_v that_o fear_n we_o need_v not_o fear_v death_n in_o a_o servile_a way_n for_o it_o have_v no_o sting_n to_o hurt_v we_o and_o we_o need_v not_o be_v terrify_v at_o the_o majesty_n of_o the_o great_a judge_n of_o quick_a and_o dead_a nor_o at_o the_o rigour_n and_o severity_n of_o his_o justice_n at_o the_o day_n of_o judgement_n for_o christ_n jesus_n shall_v be_v then_o our_o judge_n who_o be_v now_o our_o saviour_n and_o redeemer_n we_o can_v then_o but_o show_v our_o duty_n to_o god_n and_o our_o love_n to_o christ_n by_o our_o willing_a and_o ready_a obedience_n to_o the_o command_n of_o god_n and_o by_o our_o thankful_a remembrance_n of_o our_o redemption_n wrought_v by_o christ_n by_o ruminate_v on_o his_o word_n and_o by_o contemplate_v his_o wonderful_a work_n our_o thought_n will_v be_v continual_o upon_o he_o our_o delight_n will_v be_v to_o meditate_v on_o he_o and_o the_o affection_n of_o our_o heart_n will_v be_v always_o towards_o he_o consider_v further_a what_o christ_n have_v do_v for_o we_o that_o we_o may_v the_o more_o comfortable_o meditate_v on_o god_n he_o have_v not_o only_o redeem_v we_o out_o of_o the_o servitude_n of_o sin_n and_o satan_n and_o make_v we_o the_o servant_n of_o god_n by_o grace_n but_o also_o 12_o also_o john_n 1._o 12_o he_o have_v give_v power_n to_o as_o many_o as_o believe_v on_o his_o name_n to_o become_v the_o son_n of_o god_n which_o privilege_n and_o honour_n we_o have_v only_o by_o faith_n 6._o faith_n gal._n 4._o 5_o 6._o who_o have_v redeem_v we_o that_o be_v under_o the_o law_n that_o we_o may_v receive_v the_o adoption_n of_o son_n and_o because_o we_o be_v son_n god_n have_v send_v forth_o the_o spirit_n of_o his_o son_n into_o our_o heart_n cry_v abba_n ftther_o how_o comfortable_a then_o will_v our_o meditation_n be_v to_o our_o soul_n when_o we_o ruminate_v upon_o god_n as_o he_o be_v our_o father_n what_o can_v deject_v our_o spirit_n or_o make_v we_o afraid_a if_o we_o have_v a_o sure_a confidence_n that_o god_n be_v our_o father_n can_v we_o be_v bring_v to_o a_o low_a degree_n of_o misery_n than_o 19_o than_o luk._n 15._o 18_o 19_o the_o poor_a prodigal_a in_o the_o gospel_n be_v and_o yet_o when_o he_o remember_v his_o father_n he_o be_v comfort_v and_o refresh_v can_v any_o poor_a soul_n be_v deep_a plunge_v in_o sin_n or_o lead_v a_o more_o vicious_a life_n than_o this_o prodigal_a do_v and_o yet_o his_o father_n do_v not_o cast_v he_o off_o but_o upon_o his_o true_a submission_n he_o receive_v he_o again_o as_o his_o son_n why_o then_o shall_v we_o despair_v of_o mercy_n though_o our_o sin_n be_v many_o and_o very_o great_a why_o shall_v we_o fear_v the_o terror_n of_o death_n if_o we_o be_v well_o persuade_v of_o our_o adoption_n for_o 7._o for_o gal._n 4._o 7._o we_o be_v heir_n of_o god_n through_o christ_n and_o we_o go_v to_o possess_v that_o inheritance_n which_o belong_v to_o we_o as_o son_n and_o why_o shall_v the_o thought_n of_o the_o day_n of_o judgement_n be_v terrible_a to_o we_o see_v christ_n our_o redeemer_n will_v make_v up_o our_o account_n for_o we_o and_o will_v perfect_v with_o his_o own_o righteousness_n whatsoever_o be_v want_v on_o our_o part_n do_v we_o think_v that_o christ_n will_v redeem_v we_o out_o of_o the_o bondage_n of_o satan_n and_o will_v free_v we_o from_o the_o strictness_n of_o the_o law_n the_o dominion_n of_o sin_n &_o from_o the_o sting_n of_o death_n and_o at_o last_o will_v leave_v we_o to_o ourselves_o to_o answer_v the_o rigour_n of_o god_n justice_n for_o whatsoever_o we_o have_v do_v here_o in_o the_o flesh_n sure_o not_o for_o then_o the_o work_n of_o our_o redemption_n have_v not_o be_v perfect_o finish_v but_o christ_n will_v be_v then_o our_o hide_v place_n he_o will_v cover_v all_o our_o sin_n under_o the_o robe_n of_o his_o own_o righteousness_n and_o will_v shelter_v we_o from_o the_o fierceness_n of_o god_n wrath_n and_o from_o the_o severity_n of_o god_n justice_n we_o have_v now_o much_o matter_n for_o divine_a and_o heavenly_a meditation_n to_o comfort_n and_o refresh_v our_o languish_a soul_n when_o they_o be_v any_o way_n perplex_v with_o sorrow_n fear_n or_o doubt_n if_o we_o ruminate_v upon_o our_o happy_a condition_n by_o be_v in_o grace_n and_o favour_n with_o god_n for_o we_o have_v the_o honour_n and_o dignity_n to_o be_v the_o servant_n of_o the_o great_a king_n of_o heaven_n and_o earth_n by_o the_o right_n of_o purchase_n and_o so_o be_v none_o but_o such_o only_a who_o christ_n have_v buy_v with_o his_o own_o blood_n also_o if_o we_o meditate_v upon_o our_o adoption_n it_o will_v be_v very_o comfortable_a to_o we_o and_o exceed_v sweet_a to_o our_o spiritual_a taste_n for_o christ_n have_v give_v we_o hereby_o all_o the_o privilege_n of_o son_n both_o in_o what_o we_o be_v free_v from_o and_o in_o what_o we_o have_v right_a unto_o for_o we_o be_v free_v from_o all_o evil_a of_o sin_n and_o from_o all_o evil_a of_o punishment_n sin_n have_v no_o power_n to_o condemn_v we_o though_o it_o
affection_n with_o holy_a desire_n to_o embrace_v he_o 7_o he_o psal_n 24._o 7_o and_o to_o set_v open_a the_o gate_n and_o door_n of_o our_o soul_n that_o this_o king_n of_o glory_n may_v come_v in_o and_o dwell_v with_o we_o for_o ever_o if_o we_o do_v sincere_o from_o the_o heart_n desire_v such_o a_o glorious_a king_n and_o such_o a_o bountiful_a inhabitant_n to_o make_v his_o perpetual_a abode_n with_o we_o than_o we_o must_v press_v hard_a upon_o he_o and_o importune_v he_o earnest_o with_o our_o frequent_a and_o fervent_a prayer_n to_o abide_v and_o dwell_v with_o we_o 3._o we_o gen._n 19_o 2_o 3._o the_o two_o angel_n that_o come_v to_o sodom_n refuse_v to_o tarry_v all_o night_n with_o lot_n upon_o his_o first_o entreaty_n but_o when_o he_o press_v great_o upon_o they_o they_o turn_v in_o unto_o he_o and_o enter_v into_o his_o house_n and_o he_o make_v they_o a_o feast_n and_o they_o do_v eat_v and_o then_o they_o preserve_v he_o from_o the_o burn_a but_o behold_v 20_o behold_v revel_v 3._o 20_o christ_n stand_v at_o the_o door_n of_o our_o heart_n and_o knock_n if_o we_o hear_v his_o voice_n and_o open_v the_o door_n he_o will_v come_v in_o to_o we_o and_o will_v sup_v with_o we_o we_o shall_v sup_v with_o he_o o_o the_o happiness_n of_o that_o soul_n that_o do_v hear_v the_o voice_n of_o christ_n when_o he_o call_v and_o do_v open_v his_o heart_n unto_o he_o when_o he_o knock_v either_o by_o the_o ministry_n of_o his_o word_n by_o the_o motion_n of_o his_o spirit_n by_o affliction_n trouble_n cross_n or_o by_o any_o other_o mean_n whatsoever_o but_o if_o we_o will_v entertain_v christ_n we_o must_v have_v no_o corrival_n with_o he_o for_o god_n and_o mammon_n christ_n and_o belial_n can_v dwell_v together_o thus_o say_v christ_n 13_o christ_n luk._n 26_o 13_o you_o can_v serve_v god_n and_o mammon_n for_o no_o man_n can_v serve_v two_o master_n also_o thus_o say_v paul_n 15_o paul_n 2_o cor._n 6._o 14_o 15_o what_o communion_n have_v light_a with_o darkness_n and_o what_o concord_n have_v christ_n with_o belial_n 37._o belial_n mat._n 10_o 37._o if_o we_o love_v father_n or_o mother_n son_n or_o daughtor_n more_o than_o christ_n we_o be_v not_o worthy_a of_o he_o if_o the_o affection_n of_o our_o heart_n be_v carry_v after_o the_o riches_n preferment_n and_o pleasure_n of_o this_o world_n or_o after_o any_o darling_n sin_n then_o christ_n will_v not_o dwell_v there_o and_o we_o lose_v the_o comfortable_a and_o bless_a presence_n of_o the_o eternal_a son_n of_o god_n and_o the_o fullness_n of_o all_o his_o excellency_n and_o rich_a endowment_n for_o that_o which_o be_v nothing_o else_o but_o vanity_n and_o vexation_n of_o spirit_n wherefore_o now_o we_o may_v meditate_v comfortable_o on_o god_n through_o jesus_n christ_n our_o saviour_n for_o the_o terriblenesse_n of_o his_o majesty_n be_v cloud_v with_o the_o vail_n of_o his_o goodness_n the_o severity_n of_o his_o justice_n be_v sweeten_v with_o his_o mercy_n and_o tender_a compassion_n christ_n have_v take_v our_o soul_n out_o of_o the_o hand_n of_o god_n justice_n and_o have_v put_v they_o into_o the_o hand_n of_o his_o mercy_n where_o they_o shall_v be_v keep_v for_o true_a blessedness_n to_o all_o eternity_n if_o his_o greatness_n do_v affright_v we_o his_o goodness_n will_v allure_v we_o if_o his_o justice_n do_v drive_v we_o from_o he_o his_o mercy_n and_o love_n will_v draw_v we_o to_o he_o for_o by_o christ_n we_o have_v a_o near_a relation_n to_o god_n himself_o either_o as_o his_o servant_n by_o grace_n or_o as_o his_o child_n by_o adoption_n in_o both_o which_o respect_v our_o meditation_n of_o he_o will_v be_v exceed_o delightful_a to_o we_o so_o likewise_o if_o we_o fix_v our_o thought_n upon_o christ_n though_o his_o excellency_n and_o dignity_n be_v far_o above_o the_o reach_n of_o our_o humane_a capacity_n yet_o by_o faith_n we_o do_v apprehend_v he_o to_o be_v our_o redeemer_n and_o our_o advocate_n now_o at_o the_o right_a hand_n of_o god_n his_o father_n in_o the_o high_a heaven_n and_o therefore_o our_o meditation_n of_o he_o can_v but_o ravish_v our_o soul_n with_o heavenly_a joy_n and_o spiritual_a consolation_n in_o the_o assurance_n of_o our_o redemption_n and_o of_o our_o atonement_n with_o god_n and_o also_o in_o the_o hope_n of_o our_o eternal_a salvation_n and_o to_o be_v heir_n of_o the_o kingdom_n of_o heaven_n which_o he_o have_v purchase_v for_o we_o with_o his_o own_o blood_n how_o to_o meditate_v on_o the_o holy_a ghost_n the_o holy_a geost_fw-la be_v the_o same_o spiritual_a essence_n and_o be_v with_o the_o father_n and_o with_o the_o son_n coequal_a and_o coeternall_a with_o they_o both_o but_o as_o the_o deity_n be_v distinguish_v into_o three_o person_n the_o holy_a ghost_n proceed_v from_o the_o father_n and_o from_o the_o son_n and_o he_o be_v the_o three_o person_n in_o the_o sacred_a trinity_n christ_n do_v prove_v that_o the_o holy_a ghost_n proceed_v from_o the_o father_n in_o these_o word_n 26_o word_n john_n 15_o 26_o but_o when_o the_o comforter_n be_v come_v who_o i_o will_v send_v unto_o you_o from_o the_o father_n he_o shall_v testify_v of_o i_o that_o he_o proceed_v from_o the_o son_n be_v manifest_a by_o this_o of_o paul_n 6_o paul_n gal._n 4._o 6_o and_o because_o you_o be_v son_n god_n have_v send_v forth_o the_o spirit_n of_o his_o son_n into_o your_o heart_n cry_v abba_n father_n john_n also_o the_o belove_a disciple_n of_o christ_n make_v it_o plain_a that_o the_o holy_a ghost_n be_v the_o three_o person_n in_o the_o holy_a trinity_n by_o these_o word_n 7_o word_n 2_o joh_n 5._o 7_o there_o be_v three_o that_o bear_v record_n in_o heaven_n the_o father_n the_o word_n and_o the_o holy_a ghost_n and_o these_o three_o a●e_n one._n the_o prophet_n call_v he_o 2_o he_o isa_n 11._o 2_o the_o spirit_n of_o wisdom_n and_o understanding_n the_o spirit_n of_o counsel_n and_o strength_n the_o spirit_n of_o knowledge_n and_o of_o the_o fear_n of_o the_o lord_n 14_o lord_n heb._n 9_o 14_o he_o be_v the_o eternal_a spirit_n of_o god_n from_o who_o nothing_o can_v be_v hide_v according_a to_o this_o of_o david_n 7_o david_n psal_n 139_o 7_o whither_o shall_v i_o go_v from_o thy_o sptrit_a or_o whither_o shall_v i_o flee_v from_o thy_o presence_n christ_n call_v he_o the_o spirit_n of_o truth_n 7._o truth_n joh_n 14._o 16_o 7._o and_o i_o will_v pray_v the_o father_n and_o he_o shall_v give_v you_o another_o comforter_n that_o he_o may_v abide_v with_o you_o forever_o even_o the_o spirit_n of_o truth_n who_o the_o world_n can_v receive_v john_n call_v he_o 11_o he_o rev._n 11._o 11_o the_o spirit_n of_o life_n because_o by_o the_o power_n of_o his_o grace_n the_o do_v quicken_v our_o heart_n and_o revive_v we_o when_o we_o be_v dead_a in_o our_o trespass_n and_o sin_n paul_n do_v also_o call_v he_o 16_o he_o rom._n 8._o 15_o 16_o the_o spirit_n of_o adoption_n to_o witness_v to_o our_o spirit_n that_o we_o be_v the_o child_n of_o god_n if_o we_o fix_v our_o meditation_n on_o the_o holy_a ghost_n as_o he_o be_v in_o his_o divine_a essence_n and_o be_v or_o as_o he_o be_v one_o of_o the_o three_o person_n in_o the_o sacred_a trinity_n we_o shall_v be_v confound_v in_o these_o deep_a mystery_n of_o the_o trinity_n in_o unity_n and_o unity_n in_o trinity_n but_o if_o we_o meditate_v upon_o he_o according_a to_o his_o proper_a office_n as_o he_o be_v a_o comforter_n or_o according_a to_o his_o several_a operation_n in_o our_o heart_n we_o shall_v then_o find_v much_o comfortable_a matter_n for_o our_o heart_n to_o meditate_v upon_o which_o will_v minister_v heavenly_a and_o spiritual_a consolation_n to_o our_o poor_a soul_n first_o therefore_o we_o must_v consider_v that_o the_o proper_a office_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n be_v to_o be_v a_o comforter_n to_o we_o in_o all_o our_o affliction_n and_o suffering_n for_o we_o be_v daily_o expose_v to_o many_o tribulation_n and_o calamity_n either_o for_o the_o profession_n of_o the_o name_n of_o christ_n for_o the_o trial_n of_o our_o grace_n or_o for_o our_o correction_n when_o we_o lie_v in_o sin_n without_o repentance_n which_o will_v easy_o swallow_v we_o up_o if_o we_o have_v not_o some_o true_a comforter_n to_o support_v and_o comfort_v we_o in_o they_o 1_o they_o 1_o pet._n 2._o 1●_n 1_o there_o be_v also_o a_o host_n of_o sinful_a lust_n in_o we_o that_o war_n against_o our_o soul_n which_o do_v daily_o assault_v we_o with_o strong_a temptation_n and_o we_o be_v round_o beset_v with_o peril_n danger_n and_o spiritual_a enemy_n which_o continual_o threaten_v our_o downfall_n and_o ruin_n and_o do_v seek_v to_o hinder_v our_o salvation_n but_o above_o all_o we_o be_v sometime_o wound_v in_o our_o
to_o the_o people_n of_o god_n in_o their_o march_n through_o that_o hot_a country_n we_o be_v by_o nature_n under_o the_o spiritual_a bondage_n of_o sin_n and_o satan_n which_o be_v far_o worse_a than_o the_o egyptian_a bondage_n be_v to_o the_o israelite_n and_o we_o have_v no_o mean_n to_o be_v bring_v out_o of_o it_o but_o by_o a_o almighty_a power_n and_o if_o god_n do_v deliver_v we_o yet_o we_o be_v so_o ignorant_a of_o the_o way_n to_o the_o heavenly_a canaan_n that_o we_o can_v set_v one_o step_n towards_o it_o except_o the_o holy_a ghost_n do_v put_v a_o spiritual_a light_n into_o our_o understanding_n to_o teach_v and_o instruct_v we_o in_o the_o right_a way_n to_o heavenly_a happiness_n and_o because_o we_o shall_v meet_v with_o many_o spiritual_a enemy_n so_o long_o as_o we_o march_v through_o the_o wilderness_n of_o this_o world_n the_o holy_a ghost_n will_v so_o protect_v and_o defend_v we_o that_o they_o shall_v neither_o hurt_v our_o soul_n by_o their_o power_n nor_o keep_v we_o out_o of_o canaan_n by_o their_o subtlety_n or_o malice_n he_o will_v guide_v and_o direct_v we_o into_o all_o holy_a duty_n he_o will_v give_v we_o holy_a desire_n and_o true_a endeavour_n to_o do_v the_o will_n of_o god_n and_o to_o walk_v humble_o before_o he_o in_o this_o present_a world_n also_o the_o holy_a ghost_n do_v protect_v we_o from_o the_o heat_n of_o god_n wrath_n by_o work_a faith_n in_o we_o to_o lay_v hold_n upon_o the_o merit_n of_o christ_n death_n for_o the_o pardon_n of_o our_o sin_n and_o by_o confer_v grace_n for_o the_o sanctification_n of_o our_o life_n so_o likewise_o he_o do_v refresh_v and_o comfort_v our_o faint_a spirit_n with_o the_o sweet_a dew_n of_o heavenly_a consolation_n and_o he_o do_v mollify_v and_o soften_v our_o obdurate_a and_o stony_a heart_n with_o those_o influence_n of_o grace_n that_o descend_v from_o he_o that_o we_o may_v 23._o may_v joel_n 2._o 28_o gal._n 5._o 22_o 23._o be_v fruitful_a in_o all_o good_a work_n this_o holy_a spirit_n do_v also_o quench_v the_o fire_n of_o sin_n which_o otherwise_o will_v inflame_v the_o whole_a man_n with_o sinful_a lust_n and_o last_o the_o holy_a ghost_n do_v purge_v and_o cleanse_v the_o soul_n from_o the_o filth_n of_o sin_n as_o water_n wash_v away_o the_o filth_n of_o the_o body_n this_o do_v god_n promise_v by_o his_o prophet_n 25._o prophet_n zech._n 36_o 25._o i_o will_v pour_v clean_a water_n upon_o you_o and_o you_o shall_v be_v clean_o from_o all_o your_o filthiness_n and_o from_o all_o your_o idol_n will_v i_o cleanse_v you_o wherefore_o we_o ought_v serious_o to_o ruminate_v upon_o these_o operation_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n for_o we_o can_v find_v the_o right_a way_n to_o the_o heavenly_a canaan_n by_o all_o that_o nature_n or_o humane_a learning_n can_v afford_v we_o we_o can_v over_o power_n our_o spiritual_a enemy_n by_o our_o own_o strength_n we_o have_v no_o holy_a desire_n and_o no_o ability_n in_o ourselves_o to_o any_o thing_n that_o be_v good_a nothing_o that_o be_v in_o our_o power_n can_v keep_v we_o from_o the_o wrath_n of_o god_n and_o we_o have_v nothing_o that_o can_v refresh_v and_o and_o comfort_v our_o afflict_a spirit_n but_o here_o we_o shall_v find_v that_o the_o holy_a ghost_n will_v be_v our_o guide_n to_o this_o heavenly_a country_n he_o will_v be_v our_o protector_n against_o all_o adversary_n power_n and_o he_o will_v be_v a_o true_a comforter_n to_o we_o in_o all_o our_o sorrow_n and_o upon_o all_o occasion_n in_o all_o condition_n of_o life_n he_o will_v bring_v we_o unto_o christ_n and_o will_v firm_o unite_v we_o unto_o he_o by_o faith_n 2._o faith_n 1_o cor._n 10._o 1_o 2._o for_o as_o the_o ancient_a father_n be_v all_o under_o the_o cloud_n and_o all_o pass_v through_o the_o sea_n and_o be_v all_o baptize_v unto_o moses_n in_o the_o cloud_n and_o in_o the_o sea_n so_o we_o be_v baptize_v unto_o christ_n by_o the_o holy_a ghost_n that_o our_o sin_n may_v be_v wash_v away_o in_o his_o blood_n and_o that_o we_o may_v be_v sanctify_v by_o this_o spirit_n of_o grace_n to_o live_v in_o true_a holiness_n and_o righteousness_n all_o our_o day_n if_o we_o can_v thus_o meditate_v on_o the_o holy_a ghost_n it_o will_v be_v exceed_o profitable_a and_o comfortable_a to_o our_o soul_n three_o the_o holy_a ghost_n be_v resemble_v to_o the_o pillar_n of_o fire_n that_o conduct_v the_o israelite_n by_o night_n out_o of_o egypt_n towards_o the_o land_n of_o canaan_n now_o we_o must_v consider_v that_o such_o as_o be_v the_o property_n of_o fire_n such_o be_v some_o of_o the_o operation_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n in_o our_o heart_n fire_n be_v the_o most_o pure_a element_n and_o purify_v all_o other_o element_n it_o do_v natural_o mount_v upward_o it_o be_v bright_a and_o shine_a and_o give_v light_a to_o all_o dark_a place_n it_o do_v also_o warm_a and_o comfort_v every_o part_n of_o our_o body_n and_o it_o be_v the_o most_o active_a of_o all_o the_o other_o element_n it_o purify_v the_o gold_n and_o burn_v away_o the_o dross_n thus_o it_o be_v with_o the_o holy_a ghost_n for_o he_o be_v essential_o pure_a in_o himself_o and_o purify_v every_o soul_n from_o dead_a work_n into_o which_o he_o come_v he_o will_v not_o suffer_v any_o unclean_a lust_n or_o evil_a concupiscence_n to_o have_v dominion_n where_o he_o dwell_v and_o he_o will_v raise_v up_o the_o cogitation_n of_o the_o mind_n and_o the_o affection_n of_o the_o heart_n to_o mount_v upward_o in_o heavenly_a contemplation_n also_o whereas_o by_o nature_n 11._o nature_n 1_o cor._n 2._o 10_o 11._o we_o can_v receive_v the_o thing_n of_o the_o spirit_n of_o god_n for_o they_o be_v foolishness_n unto_o we_o neither_o can_v we_o know_v they_o because_o they_o be_v spiritual_o discern_v god_n have_v reveal_v they_o to_o we_o by_o his_o spirit_n for_o the_o holy_a ghost_n will_v put_v a_o spiritual_a light_n into_o our_o heart_n to_o discern_v the_o deep_a thing_n of_o god_n he_o will_v also_o inflame_v our_o affection_n with_o a_o holy_a zeal_n to_o the_o glory_n of_o god_n and_o will_v make_v our_o love_n fervent_a to_o the_o truth_n so_o likewise_o the_o holy_a ghost_n will_v melt_v our_o hard_a and_o stony_a heart_n and_o make_v they_o tender_a and_o gracious_a flexible_a and_o yield_a to_o every_o holy_a duty_n and_o whereas_o our_o heart_n be_v natural_o bind_v up_o in_o unbelief_n and_o heavy_a and_o sluggish_a to_o any_o thing_n that_o be_v good_a 32._o good_a psal_n 119._o 32._o the_o holy_a ghost_n will_v so_o enlarge_v they_o that_o with_o all_o cheerfulness_n of_o spirit_n and_o willingness_n of_o mind_n we_o shall_v run_v the_o way_n of_o god_n commandment_n wherefore_o now_o if_o we_o have_v find_v any_o of_o these_o operation_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n in_o our_o heart_n we_o shall_v be_v in_o some_o measure_n purify_v and_o refine_v from_o our_o sin_n and_o pollution_n we_o shall_v have_v some_o of_o the_o dross_n of_o our_o corrupt_a nature_n consume_v and_o the_o heavenly_a grace_n of_o the_o spirit_n of_o god_n will_v shine_v forth_o in_o the_o integrity_n of_o our_o life_n and_o conversation_n also_o we_o shall_v have_v some_o spiritual_a light_n to_o guide_v our_o darken_a understanding_n in_o the_o knowledge_n of_o god_n and_o of_o his_o way_n some_o fervency_n in_o our_o prayer_n some_o love_n to_o the_o truth_n and_o some_o holy_a zeal_n to_o the_o true_a worship_n and_o service_n of_o god_n we_o shall_v delight_v in_o his_o law_n we_o shall_v study_v to_o do_v good_a work_n and_o it_o will_v be_v the_o desire_n of_o our_o heart_n and_o the_o comfort_n of_o our_o soul_n to_o meditate_v day_n and_o night_n in_o the_o commandment_n of_o god_n if_o these_o operation_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n which_o be_v resemble_v to_o these_o two_o pillar_n can_v easy_o work_v upon_o we_o if_o these_o can_v raise_v up_o our_o affection_n to_o heavenly_a contemplation_n and_o to_o be_v forward_o and_o ready_a to_o every_o good_a duty_n in_o the_o service_n of_o god_n then_o sure_o we_o be_v exceed_o dull_a and_o stupid_a and_o we_o have_v great_a need_n to_o pray_v earnest_o that_o the_o holy_a ghost_n will_v be_v please_v to_o come_v with_o his_o unresistible_a power_n and_o break_v our_o hard_a &_o stony_a heart_n and_o mollify_v this_o extreme_a obduracy_n that_o be_v in_o they_o with_o his_o supply_a grace_n that_o so_o we_o may_v more_o easy_o take_v the_o impression_n of_o his_o sanctify_a grace_n in_o we_o consider_v further_o that_o these_o two_o pillar_n which_o do_v lead_v the_o israelite_n out_o of_o egypt_n be_v a_o visible_a sign_n of_o the_o presence_n of_o god_n with_o they_o to_o conduct_v they_o in_o the_o way_n to_o canaan_n to_o protect_v and_o defend_v they_o from_o all_o their_o
enemy_n and_o to_o deliver_v they_o out_o of_o all_o danger_n and_o they_o be_v in_o the_o form_n of_o pillar_n to_o be_v a_o clear_a evidence_n to_o they_o that_o the_o lord_n will_v not_o leave_v they_o nor_o forsake_v they_o but_o will_v constant_o abide_v with_o they_o until_o he_o have_v bring_v they_o past_o all_o danger_n and_o have_v deliver_v they_o out_o of_o all_o their_o trouble_n and_o until_o he_o have_v give_v they_o rest_n from_o all_o their_o enemy_n 12._o enemy_n act._n 12._o thus_o the_o angel_n of_o the_o lord_n deliver_v peter_n out_o of_o prison_n and_o will_v not_o leave_v he_o until_o he_o have_v bring_v he_o past_o the_o first_o and_o second_o ward_n and_o through_o the_o iron_n gate_n into_o the_o city_n where_o he_o may_v secure_v himself_o from_o herod_n who_o seek_v his_o life_n these_o pillar_n be_v also_o a_o witness_n to_o they_o of_o the_o covenant_n and_o promise_n which_o god_n make_v to_o their_o father_n that_o he_o will_v give_v they_o the_o land_n of_o canaan_n for_o their_o inheritance_n and_o that_o the_o people_n shall_v always_o remember_v to_o the_o glory_n of_o god_n their_o miraculous_a deliverance_n out_o of_o egypt_n and_o the_o wonderful_a goodness_n of_o god_n to_o they_o all_o the_o time_n they_o travel_v through_o the_o vast_a wilderness_n for_o they_o have_v still_o a_o pillar_n to_o conduct_v they_o and_o god_n will_v have_v a_o memorial_n keep_v of_o all_o his_o wonderful_a work_n thus_o 24_o thus_o josh_n 24_o the_o lord_n command_v joshua_n to_o take_v twelve_o stone_n out_o of_o jordan_n and_o to_o leave_v they_o in_o the_o place_n where_o they_o shall_v lodge_v that_o night_n to_o be_v a_o perpetual_a memorial_n that_o the_o water_n of_o jerdan_n be_v out_o off_o before_o the_o ark_n of_o the_o covenant_n of_o the_o lord_n when_o it_o pass_v over_o jordan_n in_o nehemiahs_n time_n 19_o time_n neh._n 9_o 12_o 19_o the_o levite_n in_o their_o confession_n of_o god_n goodness_n do_v remember_v how_o god_n bring_v his_o people_n out_o of_o egypt_n &_o lead_v they_o by_o those_o two_o pillar_n &_o though_o they_o do_v high_o provoke_v god_n by_o their_o melt_a calf_n yet_o he_o forsake_v they_o not_o in_o the_o wilderness_n the_o pillar_n of_o the_o cloud_n depart_v not_o from_o they_o by_o day_n neither_o the_o pillar_n of_o fire_n by_o night_n 26._o night_n gen._n 19_o 26._o lot_n wife_n become_v a_o pillar_n of_o salt_n because_o against_o god_n commandment_n she_o look_v back_o towards_o sodom_n 32_o sodom_n luk._n 17._o 32_o which_o great_a judgement_n christ_n will_v have_v to_o be_v perpetual_o remember_v 52._o remember_v gen._n 31._o 45_o 52._o jacob_n set_v up_o a_o stone_n for_o a_o pillar_n as_o a_o memorial_n of_o his_o integrity_n to_o laban_n and_o for_o a_o witness_n of_o the_o covenant_n that_o be_v between_o they_o also_o 20_o also_o gen._n 35._o 20_o he_o set_v a_o pillar_n upon_o rachel_n grave_n for_o a_o perpetual_a memorial_n of_o she_o 8._o she_o 2_o sam._n 18._o 8._o absalon_n rear_v up_o for_o himself_o a_o pillar_n in_o the_o king_n dale_n for_o the_o perpetuity_n of_o his_o name_n for_o he_o say_v i_o have_v no_o son_n to_o keep_v my_o name_n in_o remembrance_n and_o therefore_o he_o call_v the_o pillar_n after_o his_o own_o name_n if_o we_o do_v well_o ruminate_v upon_o these_o thing_n and_o imprint_v they_o in_o our_o heart_n it_o will_v make_v much_o for_o our_o spiritual_a consolation_n for_o where_o the_o holy_a ghost_n do_v settle_v his_o abode_n it_o be_v to_o abide_v there_o for_o ever_o and_o if_o we_o enjoy_v his_o bless_a presence_n it_o be_v the_o great_a comfort_n of_o our_o soul_n he_o will_v be_v as_o a_o strong_a pillar_n for_o we_o to_o rest_v upon_o when_o we_o be_v assault_v with_o strong_a temptation_n or_o beset_v with_o peril_n and_o danger_n or_o any_o way_n visit_v with_o sorrow_n and_o affliction_n he_o be_v also_o such_o a_o pillar_n of_o true_a comfort_n as_o will_v not_o leave_v we_o in_o any_o sad_a condition_n or_o misery_n but_o will_v still_o continue_v with_o we_o until_o he_o have_v bring_v we_o out_o of_o all_o our_o trouble_n danger_n and_o distress_n this_o similitude_n of_o a_o pillar_n do_v so_o strengthen_v our_o faith_n and_o hope_n in_o god_n that_o nothing_o shall_v be_v able_a to_o overthrow_v the_o foundation_n of_o it_o this_o be_v also_o great_a consolation_n to_o we_o that_o we_o have_v the_o spirit_n of_o truth_n to_o bear_v witness_n to_o our_o spirit_n that_o we_o be_v in_o the_o love_n and_o favour_n of_o god_n though_o the_o outward_a man_n be_v miserable_o afflict_v perplex_a and_o torment_v this_o consideration_n will_v appease_v the_o clamour_n of_o our_o sin_n and_o the_o accusation_n of_o our_o conscience_n and_o though_o we_o be_v in_o our_o own_o apprehension_n as_o quite_o forsake_v of_o god_n yet_o we_o shall_v hereby_o be_v preserve_v from_o sink_v under_o so_o great_a a_o pressure_n of_o temptation_n and_o though_o the_o devil_n do_v aggravate_v our_o sin_n to_o make_v we_o cast_v off_o all_o hope_n of_o pardon_n yet_o this_o bless_a spirit_n will_v make_v we_o look_v up_o to_o christ_n by_o faith_n as_o he_o be_v upon_o the_o cross_n and_o we_o shall_v see_v the_o guilt_n of_o all_o our_o sin_n nail_v to_o the_o same_o cross_n and_o the_o righteousness_n of_o christ_n to_o be_v impute_v to_o we_o which_o will_v frustrate_v the_o malicious_a design_n of_o the_o devil_n against_o the_o salvation_n of_o our_o soul_n here_o also_o we_o may_v find_v profitable_a matter_n for_o our_o instruction_n and_o edification_n for_o it_o do_v teach_v we_o to_o rest_v firm_o upon_o the_o aid_n and_o assistance_n of_o this_o bless_a spirit_n in_o all_o condition_n of_o life_n and_o in_o all_o the_o calamity_n and_o tribulation_n that_o we_o shall_v meet_v with_o in_o this_o present_a world_n it_o do_v also_o bind_v we_o to_o a_o thankful_a remembrance_n of_o all_o the_o benefit_n which_o we_o have_v receive_v from_o he_o of_o all_o the_o heavenly_a endowment_n which_o he_o have_v bestow_v upon_o we_o and_o of_o all_o the_o spiritual_a grace_n which_o he_o have_v wrought_v in_o we_o that_o we_o may_v employ_v they_o to_o the_o glory_n of_o god_n and_o to_o the_o good_a of_o our_o own_o soul_n and_o therefore_o we_o ought_v not_o to_o grieve_v the_o holy_a ghost_n nor_o quench_v his_o gracious_a motion_n but_o to_o yield_v all_o willing_a and_o ready_a obedience_n to_o his_o good_a will_n and_o pleasure_n this_o do_v also_o teach_v we_o to_o rest_v upon_o the_o promise_n of_o god_n both_o for_o provision_n for_o succour_v in_o time_n of_o need_n and_o for_o the_o salvation_n of_o our_o soul_n for_o he_o that_o have_v promise_v be_v faithful_a and_o true_a and_o if_o we_o wait_v his_o appoint_a time_n he_o will_v assure_o perform_v it_o last_o we_o must_v mark_v and_o observe_v what_o special_a operation_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n we_o have_v find_v in_o our_o heart_n either_o for_o the_o illumination_n of_o our_o understanding_n in_o heavenly_a thing_n or_o work_v our_o perverse_a will_n to_o the_o will_n of_o god_n or_o sanctify_v of_o our_o affection_n to_o newness_n of_o life_n that_o we_o may_v glorify_v god_n by_o our_o thankfulness_n for_o they_o four_o the_o holy_a ghost_n be_v resemble_v to_o a_o seal_n for_o 14._o for_o eph._n 13_o 14._o we_o be_v seal_v with_o this_o holy_a spirit_n of_o promise_n which_o be_v the_o earnest_n of_o our_o inheritance_n until_o the_o redemption_n of_o the_o purchase_a possession_n unto_o the_o praise_n of_o his_o glory_n also_o paul_n say_v 12_o say_v 2_o cor._n 1._o 12_o that_o god_n have_v seal_v we_o and_o give_v the_o earnest_n of_o the_o spirit_n in_o our_o heart_n also_o again_o he_o say_v 13._o say_v eph._n 4._o 13._o grieve_v not_o the_o holy_a sptrit_a of_o god_n whereby_o you_o be_v seal_v unto_o the_o day_n of_o redemption_n whatsoever_o god_n have_v decree_v for_o our_o preservation_n and_o salvation_n be_v seal_v with_o this_o spirit_n of_o truth_n and_o can_v be_v reverse_v but_o be_v more_o firm_a 8._o firm_a esth_n 8._o 8._o than_o the_o law_n of_o the_o mede_n and_o persian_n 19_o persian_n 2_o tim._n 2._o 19_o for_o the_o foundation_n of_o god_n stand_v sure_a have_v this_o seal_n the_o lord_n know_v they_o that_o be_v he_o in_o time_n of_o common_a calamity_n god_n will_v set_v 〈◊〉_d seal_n of_o preservation_n upon_o his_o own_o servant_n that_o th●●_n shall_v not_o be_v hurt_v 19_o hurt_v the_o angel_n that_o ascend_v f_o 〈…〉_o east_n have_v the_o seal_n of_o the_o live_a god_n cry_v with_o a_o loud_a voice_n to_o the_o four_o angel_n to_o who_o it_o be_v give_v to_o hurt_v the_o earth_n and_o the_o sea_n say_v hurt_v not_o the_o earth_n neither_o the_o sea_n nor_o the_o
son_n commit_v iniquity_n i_o will_v chastise_v he_o with_o the_o rod_n of_o man_n and_o with_o the_o stripe_n of_o the_o child_n of_o man_n but_o my_o mercy_n shall_v not_o depart_v away_o from_o he_o but_o god_n punish_v the_o sin_n of_o the_o wicked_a in_o anger_n and_o with_o much_o severity_n for_o their_o destruction_n his_o own_o child_n be_v reform_v by_o their_o correction_n but_o the_o wicked_a be_v more_o harden_v in_o their_o sin_n by_o their_o punishment_n this_o of_o the_o prophet_n be_v verify_v in_o they_o 3._o they_o jer._n 5._o 3._o o_o lord_n thou_o have_v strike_v they_o but_o they_o have_v not_o grieve_v thou_o have_v consume_v they_o but_o they_o have_v refuse_v to_o receive_v correction_n they_o have_v make_v their_o face_n hard_a than_o a_o rock_n they_o have_v refuse_v to_o return_v god_n do_v also_o bestow_v his_o mercy_n and_o blessing_n upon_o they_o both_o he_o do_v common_o give_v more_o of_o his_o temporal_a blessing_n to_o the_o wicked_a than_o he_o do_v to_o the_o godly_a to_o leave_v they_o without_o excuse_n and_o to_o give_v they_o mean_n and_o ability_n to_o glorify_v god_n but_o they_o abuse_v they_o to_o sin_n and_o uncleanness_n to_o excess_n and_o riot_n 13_o riot_n eccl._n 5._o 13_o this_o be_v that_o evil_n which_o the_o preacher_n do_v see_v under_o the_o sun_n namely_o riches_n keep_v for_o the_o owner_n thereof_o to_o their_o hurt_n but_o god_n have_v special_a gift_n and_o blessing_n which_o he_o bestow_v only_o upon_o the_o godly_a and_o these_o be_v the_o save_n and_o sanctify_a grace_n of_o his_o spirit_n which_o be_v peculiar_a only_o to_o they_o and_o reserve_v for_o they_o wherefore_o now_o if_o we_o serious_o ruminate_v upon_o the_o work_v of_o god_n we_o shall_v find_v much_o matter_n for_o our_o instruction_n and_o for_o our_o spiritual_a consolation_n the_o knowledge_n of_o the_o creature_n be_v a_o ready_a way_n to_o bring_v we_o to_o the_o knowledge_n of_o the_o creator_n and_o the_o due_a observation_n of_o the_o work_n of_o god_n will_v bring_v we_o to_o the_o love_n of_o he_o to_o the_o fear_n and_o dread_n of_o he_o and_o to_o the_o obedience_n of_o his_o command_n we_o have_v daily_a experience_n of_o the_o work_n of_o god_n providence_n and_o of_o his_o goodness_n to_o we_o in_o christ_n which_o shall_v strengthen_v our_o faith_n hope_n and_o confidence_n in_o he_o though_o he_o do_v sometime_o bring_v we_o into_o great_a strait_n and_o lay_v great_a trial_n upon_o we_o and_o it_o shall_v keep_v we_o from_o murmur_v and_o repine_v though_o he_o do_v long_o delay_v to_o send_v we_o help_v and_o comfort_n in_o time_n of_o need_n also_o it_o shall_v keep_v we_o from_o cark_n care_n and_o from_o immoderate_a seek_v of_o earthly_a thing_n because_o god_n will_v provide_v for_o we_o and_o will_v not_o suffer_v we_o to_o lack_v any_o thing_n that_o be_v good_a we_o shall_v therefore_o wait_v upon_o he_o and_o wait_v patient_o for_o his_o salvation_n in_o all_o our_o want_n and_o necessity_n in_o all_o our_o trouble_n and_o tribulation_n and_o in_o all_o strait_n and_o distress_n which_o the_o malice_n of_o the_o devil_n or_o wicked_a man_n can_v bring_v upon_o we_o for_o god_n can_v and_o will_v by_o his_o wise_a providence_n turn_v that_o to_o our_o good_a which_o they_o intend_v and_o purpose_n for_o our_o hurt_n how_o shall_v we_o then_o delight_v to_o meditate_v on_o god_n in_o all_o his_o work_n see_v 17._o see_v psal_n 145._o 17._o the_o lord_n be_v righteous_a in_o all_o his_o way_n and_o holy_a in_o all_o his_o work_n what_o comfort_n can_v we_o want_v in_o the_o sad_a time_n see_v god_n watch_v over_o we_o by_o his_o divine_a providence_n for_o our_o good_a what_o need_v we_o fear_v the_o malice_n or_o power_n of_o our_o spiritual_a enemy_n see_v we_o have_v god_n protection_n to_o keep_v and_o defend_v we_o from_o they_o if_o we_o ●ay_v up_o these_o thing_n in_o our_o heart_n our_o soul_n will_v have_v the_o comfort_n of_o they_o in_o all_o the_o sadness_n and_o sorrow_n that_o we_o shall_v meet_v with_o in_o this_o life_n concern_v the_o creation_n of_o man._n now_o we_o come_v to_o the_o principal_a piece_n of_o god_n workmanship_n which_o he_o wrought_v here_o upon_o earth_n and_o that_o be_v the_o creation_n of_o man_n in_o which_o great_a work_n the_o three_o person_n in_o the_o sacred_a trinity_n do_v agree_v with_o one_o consent_n and_o give_v he_o such_o a_o body_n as_o shall_v be_v capable_a of_o immortality_n and_o such_o a_o soul_n as_o shall_v receive_v the_o impression_n of_o the_o image_n of_o god_n for_o thus_o say_v the_o lord_n 26_o lord_n gen._n 1._o 26_o let_v we_o make_v man_n in_o our_o image_n after_o our_o likeness_n man_n must_v needs_o then_o be_v create_v in_o innocency_n in_o righteousness_n and_o true_a holiness_n without_o spot_n and_o blemish_n or_o any_o imperfection_n either_o in_o his_o soul_n or_o body_n there_o be_v no_o perverseness_n in_o his_o will_n no_o folly_n in_o his_o understanding_n &_o no_o corruption_n in_o his_o heart_n for_o god_n give_v he_o ability_n and_o a_o willing_a mind_n to_o obey_v he_o and_o a_o wise_a and_o a_o understand_a heart_n able_a right_o to_o know_v god_n his_o creator_n and_o to_o worship_n and_o serve_v he_o as_o he_o ought_v to_o be_v serve_v also_o he_o do_v know_v the_o nature_n of_o all_o the_o beast_n in_o the_o field_n of_o all_o the_o fowl_n in_o the_o air_n and_o the_o virtue_n of_o all_o herb_n and_o plant_n and_o god_n make_v he_o present_o fit_a for_o that_o rule_n and_o sovereignty_n which_o he_o give_v he_o over_o the_o creature_n god_n do_v also_o set_v his_o love_n upon_o he_o and_o crown_v he_o with_o glory_n and_o honour_n according_a to_o the_o word_n of_o the_o prophet_n david_n 6._o david_n psal_n 8._o 4_o 5_o 6._o what_o be_v man_n that_o thou_o be_v mindful_a of_o he_o or_o the_o son_n of_o man_n that_o thou_o visite_a he_o for_o thou_o have_v make_v he_o a_o little_a low_o than_o the_o angel_n and_o have_v crown_v he_o with_o glory_n and_o honour_n thou_o ma●est_v he_o to_o have_v dominion_n over_o the_o work_n of_o thy_o hand_n thou_o have_v put_v all_o thing_n under_o his_o foot_n for_o he_o be_v create_v in_o his_o full_a perfection_n fit_a to_o rule_v and_o govern_v the_o creature_n who_o god_n have_v make_v for_o his_o use_n and_o service_n as_o god_n do_v show_v his_o wonderful_a wisdom_n and_o power_n in_o the_o creation_n of_o man_n because_o he_o make_v he_o such_o a_o excellent_a creature_n of_o the_o dust_n of_o the_o earth_n so_o he_o now_o show_v no_o less_o power_n and_o wisdom_n in_o fashion_v he_o in_o the_o womb_n for_o thus_o say_v holy_a david_n 15._o david_n psal_n 1_o 39_o 1●_n 15._o i_o will_v praise_v thou_o for_o i_o be_o fearful_o and_o wonderful_o make_v marvellous_a be_v thy_o work_n and_o that_o my_o soul_n know_v right_a well_o my_o substance_n be_v not_o hide_v from_o thou_o when_o i_o be_v make_v in_o secret_a and_o curious_o wrought_v in_o the_o low_a part_n of_o the_o earth_n the_o preacher_n also_o say_v 5_o say_v eccl._n 11._o 5_o that_o we_o know_v not_o how_o the_o bone_n do_v grow_v in_o the_o womb_n of_o she_o that_o be_v with_o child_n there_o be_v more_o wonder_n in_o man_n than_o there_o be_v part_n and_o member_n of_o his_o body_n and_o every_o one_o of_o they_o call_v for_o due_a consideration_n the_o eye_n be_v but_o a_o little_a member_n and_o yet_o the_o best_a oculist_n can_v find_v out_o all_o the_o wonder_n that_o be_v contain_v in_o it_o who_o can_v discover_v the_o wind_n and_o turn_n of_o the_o brain_n how_o it_o work_v upon_o whatsoever_o it_o apprehend_v it_o be_v trouble_v with_o vision_n and_o dream_n in_o the_o night_n it_o be_v at_o no_o quiet_a all_o the_o day_n man_n have_v no_o command_n over_o his_o own_o thought_n but_o they_o fly_v swift_o from_o the_o east_n to_o the_o west_n and_o they_o bring_v back_o to_o remembrance_n thing_n that_o be_v long_o pass_v and_o go_v so_o likewise_o there_o be_v such_o secret_a corner_n in_o the_o heart_n that_o no_o man_n be_v able_a to_o discover_v what_o be_v hide_v there_o god_n only_o that_o form_v it_o know_v the_o breadth_n and_o deepth_n of_o it_o his_o all-seeing_a eye_n can_v search_v into_o it_o and_o nothing_o that_o lurk_v there_o can_v be_v hide_v from_o he_o who_o can_v declare_v the_o wisdom_n of_o god_n in_o the_o creation_n of_o man_n in_o the_o faculty_n and_o endowment_n of_o his_o soul_n in_o the_o structure_n of_o his_o body_n and_o how_o he_o be_v fashion_v in_o the_o womb_n we_o may_v admire_v at_o these_o thing_n but_o we_o can_v comprehend_v they_o now_o let_v we_o bring_v down_o our_o thought_n
and_o cogitation_n to_o ruminate_v upon_o ourselves_o &_o to_o consider_v what_o our_o condition_n be_v in_o our_o first_o creation_n sure_o we_o be_v in_o adam_n loin_n when_o he_o be_v in_o his_o happy_a condition_n and_o we_o do_v partake_v with_o he_o in_o the_o perfection_n of_o his_o holiness_n he_o have_v the_o law_n of_o god_n imprint_v in_o his_o heart_n so_o have_v we_o he_o be_v able_a to_o keep_v it_o so_o be_v we_o the_o image_n of_o god_n be_v stamp_v upon_o his_o soul_n so_o it_o be_v upon_o we_o all_o which_o do_v afford_v we_o plenty_n of_o matter_n for_o our_o holy_a meditation_n how_o to_o glorify_v our_o good_a god_n &_o great_a creator_n with_o all_o our_o strength_n and_o with_o all_o our_o might_n both_o of_o soul_n and_o body_n and_o how_o to_o express_v our_o thankfulness_n to_o he_o by_o our_o continual_a care_n to_o obey_v his_o will_n and_o to_o walk_v before_o he_o in_o holiness_n and_o righteousness_n all_o our_o day_n wherefore_o now_o belove_v in_o christ_n let_v i_o thus_o expostulate_v with_o thou_o have_v god_n make_v thou_o a_o man●_n whereas_o he_o may_v have_v make_v thou_o a_o brute_n beast_n or_o a_o worm_n 21._o worm_n isa_n 64._o 8_o rom._n 9_o 21._o for_o thou_o be_v in_o his_o hand_n as_o the_o clay_n in_o the_o hand_n of_o the_o potter_n to_o be_v make_v a_o vessel_n unto_o honour_n or_o unto_o dishonour_n as_o his_o pleasure_n have_v god_n give_v thou_o a_o reasonable_a and_o immortal_a soul_n whereas_o he_o may_v have_v give_v thou_o the_o soul_n of_o a_o beast_n which_o be_v mortal_a and_o perish_v with_o the_o the_o body_n have_v he_o fill_v thy_o soul_n with_o knowledge_n and_o with_o all_o heavenly_a gift_n and_o grace_n whereas_o he_o may_v have_v make_v it_o empty_a and_o void_a of_o understanding_n and_o uncapable_a of_o instruction_n then_o let_v god_n be_v thy_o god_n and_o honour_n thou_o he_o let_v he_o be_v thy_o lord_n and_o serve_v and_o reverence_v he_o in_o sincerity_n of_o heart_n and_o in_o truth_n have_v god_n give_v thou_o dominion_n over_o all_o the_o creature_n here_o below_o to_o rule_v and_o govern_v they_o at_o thy_o will_n and_o pleasure_n why_o then_o can_v thou_o not_o govern_v thyself_o to_o keep_v upright_o and_o straight_o in_o the_o way_n of_o god_n why_o do_v thou_o not_o rule_v thy_o own_o passion_n but_o suffer_v they_o to_o break_v out_o into_o rage_n and_o fury_n upon_o every_o slight_a occasion_n why_o be_v thou_o carry_v with_o a_o full_a stream_n and_o with_o a_o unbridled_a liberty_n to_o carnal_a lust_n and_o sensuality_n do_v every_o creature_n serve_v and_o obey_v thou_o and_o will_v not_o thou_o serve_v thy_o god_n who_o make_v they_o serviceable_a ●nd_n obedient_a to_o thou_o do_v not_o they_o teach_v thou_o by_o their_o obedience_n to_o thy_o will_n that_o thou_o shall_v do_v the_o will_n and_o command_n of_o thy_o god_n 35._o god_n jer._n 35._o the_o lord_n will_v have_v his_o people_n to_o learn_v obedience_n of_o the_o rechabite_v the_o wise_a man_n send_v the_o sluggard_n to_o the_o ant_n to_o learn_v wisdom_n of_o she_o 8._o she_o prov._n 6._o 6_o 7_o 8._o go_v to_o the_o ant_n thou_o sluggard_n consider_v her_o way_n and_o be_v wise_a which_o have_v no_o g●ide_n overseer_n or_o ruler_n provide_v her_o meat_n in_o the_o summer_n and_o gather_v her_o food_n in_o the_o harvest_n thou_o do_v look_v for_o obedience_n of_o thy_o hire_a servant_n and_o will_v thou_o perform_v none_o unto_o god_n to_o who_o thou_o be_v bind_v in_o a_o far_o strong_a bond_n can_v thou_o work_v thy_o head_n and_o thy_o heart_n about_o thy_o worldly_a affair_n and_o can_v find_v no_o thought_n for_o heaven_n no_o time_n and_o no_o matter_n to_o meditate_v upon_o for_o the_o glory_n of_o god_n and_o for_o the_o comfort_n of_o thy_o soul_n oh_o let_v such_o gross_a stupidity_n be_v far_o from_o thou_o learn_v of_o the_o very_a creature_n to_o obey_v god_n with_o more_o willingness_n of_o mind_n and_o to_o be_v more_o zealous_a for_o his_o glory_n thou_o be_v create_v in_o perfect_a holiness_n and_o righteousness_n study_v therefore_o and_o labour_v for_o purity_n of_o life_n and_o conversation_n and_o do_v not_o stain_v and_o defile_v that_o which_o god_n will_v have_v to_o be_v keep_v holy_a and_o unblameable_a in_o his_o sight_n let_v the_o thought_n of_o thy_o mind_n and_o the_o meditation_n of_o thy_o heart_n be_v thus_o employ_v about_o thy_o creation_n and_o about_o the_o wonderful_a goodness_n of_o god_n to_o thou_o that_o thy_o affection_n may_v be_v stir_v up_o with_o a_o holy_a zeal_n to_o the_o constant_a practice_n of_o pious_a and_o religious_a duty_n for_o the_o honour_n of_o god_n if_o we_o thus_o look_v upon_o ourselves_o we_o can_v want_v matter_n to_o magnify_v the_o wisdom_n &_o goodness_n of_o god_n neither_o can_v we_o be_v so_o fruitless_a &_o unprofitable_a in_o his_o service_n as_o natural_o we_o be_v for_o the_o grace_n of_o god_n that_o be_v in_o we_o will_v constrain_v we_o to_o better_a obedience_n to_o what_o end_n and_o purpose_n man_n be_v create_v if_o we_o see_v a_o fair_a and_o stately_a building_n we_o will_v commend_v the_o builder_n and_o present_o conclude_v that_o he_o build_v it_o for_o his_o own_o habitation_n or_o for_o some_o honourable_a use_n and_o service_n if_o we_o look_v upon_o ourselves_o we_o shall_v see_v a_o admirable_a fabric_n of_o body_n which_o be_v rich_o beautify_v and_o adorn_v both_o within_o and_o without_o and_o we_o can_v but_o magnify_v our_o omnipotent_a creator_n and_o present_o conclude_v that_o sure_o god_n do_v make_v we_o such_o excellent_a creature_n and_o do_v enrich_v we_o with_o such_o spiritual_a gift_n and_o grace_n for_o some_o special_a end_n and_o purpose_n we_o be_v not_o make_v by_o ourselves_o we_o have_v no_o be_v nor_o beginning_n from_o ourselves_o there_o be_v nothing_o in_o we_o to_o move_v towards_o our_o creation_n &_o therefore_o we_o be_v not_o create_v for_o our-selve_n to_o follow_v our_o own_o pleasure_n to_o serve_v our_o own_o lust_n or_o to_o walk_v according_a to_o our_o own_o invention_n it_o be_v a_o vain_a thing_n to_o imagine_v that_o we_o be_v bind_v to_o nothing_o or_o shall_v be_v accountable_a for_o nothing_o that_o we_o do_v in_o this_o life_n but_o that_o 12_o that_o job_n 11._o 12_o we_o be_v bear_v like_o a_o wild_a ass_n colt_n in_o the_o wilderness_n that_o have_v no_o master_n to_o tame_v he_o let_v such_o great_a folly_n and_o impiety_n be_v far_o from_o we_o for_o we_o be_v not_o bear_v to_o live_v as_o we_o 4._o we_o psal_n 12._o 4._o listen_v as_o if_o none_o shall_v control_v we_o and_o as_o if_o there_o be_v no_o lord_n over_o we_o but_o 9_o but_o eccl._n 11._o 9_o god_n shall_v bring_v we_o unto_o judgement_n for_o all_o thing_n whatsoever_o we_o do_v 36_o do_v mat_n 22._o 36_o and_o we_o shall_v give_v account_n in_o the_o day_n of_o judgement_n of_o every_o idle_a word_n that_o we_o shall_v speak_v how_o careful_a then_o ought_v we_o to_o be_v so_o to_o live_v as_o not_o to_o dishonour_v god_n in_o any_o thing_n and_o how_o watchful_a shall_v we_o be_v over_o all_o our_o way_n because_o we_o must_v give_v such_o a_o strict_a account_n unto_o god_n at_o the_o last_o day_n if_o then_o we_o demand_v of_o ourselves_o between_o god_n and_o our_o own_o conscience_n wherefore_o and_o to_o what_o end_n we_o be_v make_v and_o send_v hither_o into_o this_o world_n what_o to_o do_v and_o wherein_o to_o bestow_v our_o time_n then_o our_o heart_n will_v tell_v we_o that_o it_o be_v for_o no_o other_o cause_n or_o end_n but_o to_o serve_v god_n with_o pure_a affection_n in_o righteousness_n and_o true_a holiness_n all_o the_o day_n of_o our_o life_n and_o after_o that_o service_n to_o enjoy_v eternal_a blessedness_n in_o the_o life_n to_o come_v also_o to_o use_v those_o creature_n which_o god_n have_v give_v we_o that_o he_o may_v be_v honour_v and_o glorify_v thereby_o wherefore_o in_o whatsoever_o we_o bestow_v our_o time_n if_o it_o be_v not_o conduce_v and_o profitable_a to_o this_o end_n and_o purpose_n it_o be_v vanity_n and_o lose_a labour_n it_o will_v give_v we_o no_o ease_n or_o relief_n in_o our_o sorrow_n and_o it_o will_v bring_v no_o comfort_n to_o our_o soul_n likewise_o if_o we_o be_v immoderate_a in_o our_o desire_n after_o earthly_a thing_n though_o they_o be_v in_o themselves_o lawful_a and_o good_a and_o if_o we_o covet_v more_o riches_n honour_n and_o worldly_a preferment_n or_o any_o thing_n else_o than_o shall_v be_v best_a to_o enable_v we_o in_o the_o true_a religious_a service_n of_o god_n and_o to_o further_a the_o salvation_n of_o our_o soul_n we_o be_v then_o out_o of_o the_o right_a way_n and_o we_o run_v from_o the_o
prophet_n 2._o prophet_n isa_n 59_o 2._o but_o your_o iniquity_n have_v separate_v between_o you_o and_o your_o god_n and_o your_o sin_n have_v make_v he_o hide_v his_o face_n from_o you_o that_o he_o will_v not_o hear_v for_o god_n will_v not_o regard_v we_o until_o the_o pardon_n of_o our_o sin_n be_v seal_v to_o we_o by_o faith_n in_o the_o blood_n of_o christ_n and_o we_o can_v have_v no_o comfort_n in_o god_n nor_o hope_v of_o his_o grace_n and_o favour_n until_o we_o have_v some_o assurance_n of_o the_o remission_n of_o our_o sin_n by_o true_a repentance_n and_o turn_v unto_o god_n for_o thus_o say_v the_o prophet_n 7_o prophet_n isa_n 56._o 3_o 4_o 5_o 7_o though_o we_o have_v be_v stranger_n to_o the_o people_n of_o god_n and_o as_o fruitless_a as_o a_o dry_a tree_n yet_o if_o we_o now_o k●●p_v his_o sabbath_n and_o choose_v the_o thing_n that_o please_v he_o and_o take_v hold_v of_o his_o covenant_n he_o will_v give_v we_o a_o place_n in_o his_o house_n and_o a_o everlasting_a name_n that_o shall_v not_o be_v cut_v off_o he_o will_v bring_v we_o to_o his_o holy_a mountain_n and_o make_v we_o joyful_a in_o his_o house_n of_o prayer_n and_o all_o our_o offering_n shall_v be_v accept_v though_o christ_n by_o his_o death_n and_o resurrection_n have_v perfect_o wrought_v our_o redemption_n from_o all_o our_o spiritual_a enemy_n yet_o we_o have_v not_o the_o full_a virtue_n and_o power_n of_o it_o in_o this_o life_n for_o we_o be_v often_o foil_v with_o the_o temptation_n and_o suggestion_n of_o the_o devil_n our_o sin_n do_v prevail_v against_o we_o our_o sinful_a lust_n and_o unruly_a passion_n do_v often_o overpower_v we_o 23._o we_o rom._n 7._o 19_o 20_o 23._o and_o the_o corruption_n of_o our_o unregenerate_a part_n do_v war_n against_o the_o law_n of_o our_o mind_n and_o bring_v we_o captive_a to_o the_o law_n of_o sin_n so_o that_o the_o good_a which_o we_o will_v we_o do_v not_o but_o the_o evil_n which_o we_o will_v not_o that_o we_o do_v it_o be_v then_o no_o more_o we_o that_o do_v it_o but_o sin_n that_o dwell_v in_o we_o wherefore_o we_o can_v feel_v the_o power_n of_o our_o redemption_n but_o in_o part_n so_o long_o as_o we_o live_v in_o the_o flesh_n but_o it_o will_v be_v full_o perfect_v when_o our_o corruptible_a shall_v put_v on_o incorruption_n and_o our_o mortal_a shall_v put_v on_o immortality_n and_o that_o can_v be_v until_o the_o general_a resurrection_n at_o the_o last_o day_n when_o all_o the_o enemy_n of_o our_o salvation_n shall_v be_v subdue_v for_o death_n will_v seize_v upon_o our_o body_n and_o will_v keep_v they_o in_o the_o prison_n of_o the_o grave_n until_o christ_n shall_v come_v with_o power_n and_o break_v open_a the_o prison_n door_n by_o the_o power_n of_o his_o resurrection_n and_o raise_v they_o up_o to_o immortality_n and_o to_o eternal_a glory_n and_o then_o our_o redemption_n will_v be_v make_v perfect_a to_o we_o and_o this_o 54_o this_o john_n 6._o 54_o christ_n have_v promise_v and_o he_o do_v plain_o manifest_v it_o to_o we_o for_o when_o he_o have_v show_v his_o disciple_n some_o sign_n and_o token_n of_o his_o second_o come_v which_o be_v forerunner_n of_o the_o general_a resurrection_n he_o say_v 28._o say_v luke_n 21_o ●_o 28._o that_o when_o they_o see_v those_o thing_n begin_v to_o come_v to_o pass_v than_o they_o shall_v look_v up_o and_o lift_v up_o their_o head_n for_o their_o redemption_n draw_v nigh_o whereof_o we_o be_v as_o full_o persuade_v by_o faith_n in_o this_o life_n as_o if_o we_o do_v already_o enjoy_v it_o wherefore_o let_v nothing_o weaken_v our_o faith_n in_o our_o redemption_n for_o we_o may_v confident_o rest_v upon_o it_o though_o we_o have_v it_o but_o in_o part_n in_o this_o life_n for_o christ_n will_v perfect_v it_o to_o we_o at_o the_o last_o day_n when_o he_o will_v raise_v up_o our_o body_n out_o of_o the_o dust_n by_o his_o almighty_a power_n which_o be_v the_o last_o part_n of_o our_o redemption_n here_o be_v matter_n of_o great_a comfort_n if_o our_o heart_n do_v pious_o ruminate_v upon_o the_o transcendent_a love_n of_o god_n to_o we_o in_o our_o redemption_n 16_o redemption_n john_n 3._o 16_o for_o god_n so_o love_v the_o world_n that_o he_o give_v his_o only_a beget_v son_n that_o whosoever_o believe_v in_o he_o shall_v not_o perish_v but_o have_v everlasting_a life_n redemption_n be_v free_o offer_v to_o all_o yet_o none_o can_v have_v the_o assurance_n of_o it_o but_o such_o as_o believe_v in_o christ_n and_o belong_v unto_o he_o through_o the_o election_n of_o grace_n these_o and_o none_o but_o these_o shall_v have_v the_o benefit_n of_o it_o for_o they_o be_v within_o the_o new_a covenant_n 15_o covenant_n heb._n 9_o 15_o which_o christ_n have_v procure_v for_o they_o by_o his_o death_n these_o only_o shall_v receive_v the_o promise_n of_o a_o eternal_a inheritance_n and_o shall_v be_v advance_v to_o a_o high_a degree_n of_o felicity_n and_o blessedness_n than_o they_o have_v in_o adam_n before_o his_o fall_n adam_n have_v but_o a_o dim_a light_n of_o his_o redemption_n yet_o it_o be_v sufficient_a to_o ground_v his_o faith_n upon_o it_o and_o the_o promise_n of_o grace_n be_v very_o mystical_o deliver_v to_o he_o but_o the_o patriarch_n and_o prophet_n have_v a_o clear_a evidence_n of_o it_o god_n have_v give_v we_o a_o full_a demonstration_n of_o our_o redemption_n because_o christ_n be_v come_v in_o the_o flesh_n and_o have_v finish_v the_o whole_a work_n of_o our_o salvation_n by_o tread_v down_o all_o principality_n and_o power_n under_o his_o foot_n and_o by_o subdue_a to_o we_o all_o the_o enemy_n of_o our_o salvation_n and_o because_o death_n be_v our_o last_o enemy_n which_o will_v undoubted_o seize_v upon_o our_o body_n we_o do_v assure_o believe_v that_o by_o the_o power_n of_o christ_n resurrection_n who_o be_v our_o head_n our_o body_n shall_v be_v raise_v up_o out_o of_o the_o dust_n at_o the_o last_o day_n for_o christ_n have_v redeem_v our_o body_n from_o death_n as_o well_o as_o our_o soul_n from_o the_o devil_n that_o both_o in_o soul_n and_o in_o body_n we_o may_v live_v and_o reign_v with_o christ_n for_o evermore_o wherefore_o if_o god_n have_v be_v so_o rich_a in_o goodness_n to_o we_o and_o if_o his_o grace_n and_o love_n have_v be_v so_o free_a as_o to_o redeem_v our_o soul_n from_o hell_n and_o our_o body_n from_o the_o grave_n even_o when_o we_o be_v his_o enemy_n and_o when_o he_o see_v nothing_o in_o we_o but_o misery_n then_o let_v we_o with_o the_o prophet_n david_n say_v thus_o with_o ourselves_o 14_o ourselves_o psal_n 116_o 12_o 13_o 14_o what_o shall_v we_o r●nder_v unto_o the_o lord_n for_o all_o his_o benefit_n towards_o we_o how_o shall_v we_o pay_v our_o vow_n which_o we_o have_v make_v to_o he_o in_o our_o baptism_n or_o at_o any_o other_o time_n we_o will_v take_v the_o cup_n of_o salvation_n and_o call_v upon_o the_o name_n of_o the_o lord_n we_o will_v be_v his_o servant_n and_o will_v offer_v to_o he_o the_o sacrifice_n of_o praise_n and_o thanksgiving_n thus_o let_v our_o thought_n and_o the_o meditation_n of_o our_o heart_n be_v always_o upon_o the_o love_n of_o god_n to_o we_o and_o not_o upon_o the_o vanity_n of_o this_o world_n let_v they_o be_v set_v upon_o the_o joy_n and_o happiness_n of_o heaven_n and_o not_o upon_o earthly_a transitory_a pleasure_n and_o delight_n let_v we_o study_v how_o to_o live_v a_o sanctify_a life_n unto_o god_n and_o a_o blameless_a life_n to_o our_o neighbour_n and_o not_o how_o to_o fulfil_v our_o own_o sinful_a desire_n and_o the_o evil_a concupiscence_n of_o our_o flesh_n otherwise_o we_o have_v receive_v the_o grace_n of_o god_n in_o vain_a and_o we_o can_v have_v no_o good_a assurance_n of_o our_o redemption_n by_o christ_n for_o god_n bestow_v his_o grace_n upon_o we_o and_o have_v give_v we_o the_o light_n of_o his_o spirit_n that_o we_o shall_v walk_v as_o in_o the_o light_n and_o not_o in_o darkness_n that_o our_o conversation_n shall_v be_v holy_a and_o pure_a and_o not_o corrupt_v and_o defile_v with_o uncleanness_n but_o that_o we_o shall_v perform_v holy_a obedience_n unto_o god_n and_o serve_v he_o with_o pure_a affection_n now_o let_v our_o heart_n and_o soul_n devout_o meditate_v upon_o the_o great_a work_n of_o our_o redemption_n for_o it_o be_v far_o great_a than_o the_o creation_n of_o the_o whole_a world_n god_n do_v but_o say_v the_o word_n let_v such_o a_o thing_n be_v make_v and_o it_o be_v make_v he_o do_v not_o disrobe_v himself_o of_o any_o part_n of_o his_o glory_n in_o the_o creation_n of_o any_o creature_n but_o rather_o his_o glory_n wisdom_n and_o power_n be_v magnify_v in_o the_o make_n of_o the_o least_o of_o they_o
incline_v the_o will_n or_o else_o we_o can_v receive_v it_o all_o heavenly_a gift_n and_o spiritual_a grace_n come_v from_o god_n which_o the_o father_n be_v sometime_o say_v to_o give_v according_a to_o this_o of_o james_n 17_o james_n jam._n 1._o 17_o every_o good_a gift_n and_o every_o perfect_a gift_n be_v from_o above_o and_o come_v down_o from_o the_o father_n of_o light_n sometime_o also_o the_o son_n be_v say_v to_o give_v they_o for_o thus_o say_v the_o apostle_n 8._o apostle_n eph._n 4._o 8._o when_o he_o ascend_v up_o on_o high_a he_o lead_v captivity_n captive_a and_o give_v gift_n unto_o man_n that_o be_v he_o give_v not_o only_a place_n of_o dignity_n and_o of_o authority_n to_o some_o in_o his_o church_n but_o also_o he_o give_v they_o all_o spiritual_a endowment_n of_o grace_n meet_v for_o their_o several_a place_n and_o function_n but_o these_o heavenly_a grace_n be_v proper_o wrought_v in_o our_o heart_n by_o the_o holy_a ghost_n how_o and_o when_o he_o please_v we_o must_v therefore_o crave_v his_o help_n we_o must_v wait_v his_o time_n and_o attend_v upon_o the_o mean_n until_o he_o shall_v be_v please_v to_o work_v grace_n in_o we_o and_o we_o must_v resolve_v without_o delay_n or_o excuse_n 7._o excuse_n heb._n 3._o 7._o to_o accept_v of_o grace_n even_o that_o very_a day_n when_o god_n do_v offer_v it_o and_o not_o to_o grieve_v his_o good_a spirit_n by_o refuse_v the_o sweet_a tender_a of_o grace_n or_o by_o lose_v any_o opportunity_n wherein_o god_n may_v be_v glorify_v by_o this_o heavenly_a work_n of_o grace_n in_o we_o wherefore_o 5._o ps_n 8._o 4_o 5._o be_v not_o thou_o like_o the_o deaf_a adder_n that_o stop_v her_o ear_n which_o will_v not_o hearken_v to_o the_o voice_n of_o charmer_n charm_v never_o so_o wise_o but_o when_o any_o mean_n of_o grace_n be_v offer_v or_o when_o thou_o feel_v a_o good_a motion_n in_o thy_o heart_n be_v ready_a to_o embrace_v it_o for_o that_o be_v god_n call_v and_o then_o christ_n knock_v at_o the_o door_n of_o thy_o heart_n 20._o heart_n rev._n 3._o 20._o as_o he_o do_v at_o the_o door_n of_o the_o laodicean_n if_o thou_o do_v present_o open_a unto_o he_o he_o will_v come_v in_o to_o thou_o and_o will_v sup_v with_o thou_o and_o thou_o shall_v sup_v with_o he_o but_o if_o thou_o deferre_v it_o until_o the_o morrow_n thou_o know_v not_o whether_o he_o will_v knock_v again_o or_o not_o o_o what_o a_o bountiful_a and_o gracious_a guest_n do_v thou_o lose_v if_o thou_o will_v not_o open_v thy_o heart_n when_o the_o spirit_n of_o christ_n knock_v there_o either_o by_o the_o preach_n of_o his_o word_n by_o holy_a inspiration_n by_o his_o blessing_n by_o affliction_n or_o by_o any_o other_o mean_n whatsoever_o if_o thou_o belong_v unto_o he_o thou_o will_v know_v his_o knock_n thou_o will_v know_v his_o voice_n thou_o will_v make_v haste_n and_o prepare_v the_o best_a room_n in_o thy_o affection_n to_o give_v he_o entertainment_n and_o thou_o will_v clear_v away_o all_o the_o filth_n of_o thy_o sin_n by_o faith_n and_o true_a repentance_n that_o he_o may_v come_v into_o a_o clean_a heart_n that_o nothing_o may_v displease_v or_o discontent_n he_o for_o he_o come_v not_o to_o lodge_v with_o thou_o a_o night_n or_o two_o as_o a_o stranger_n or_o to_o sojourn_v with_o thou_o a_o month_n or_o a_o year_n and_o then_o to_o leave_v thou_o 17._o thou_o eph._n 3._o 17._o but_o he_o will_v dwell_v in_o thy_o heart_n by_o faith_n 23_o faith_n joh._n 14._o 23_o and_o will_v abide_v with_o thou_o for_o ever_o by_o his_o holy_a spirit_n when_o he_o be_v come_v he_o will_v furnish_v his_o room_n with_o his_o own_o furniture_n he_o will_v perfume_v they_o with_o his_o own_o merit_n so_o that_o whatsoever_o issue_n from_o thence_o shall_v be_v a_o sweet_a savour_n well_o please_v and_o acceptable_a to_o god_n he_o will_v also_o beautify_v and_o adorn_v all_o the_o faculty_n of_o thy_o soul_n with_o spiritual_a and_o heavenly_a grace_n he_o will_v heal_v and_o cure_v all_o thy_o spiritual_a disease_n he_o will_v be_v a_o prophet_n to_o thou_o to_o teach_v and_o instruct_v thou_o in_o the_o way_n of_o godliness_n he_o will_v be_v thy_o highpriest_n to_o make_v intercession_n for_o thou_o and_o to_o present_v thy_o prayer_n and_o oblation_n unto_o god_n his_o father_n also_o he_o will_v be_v thy_o king_n to_o rule_v in_o thy_o heart_n with_o his_o sceptre_n of_o righteousness_n and_o to_o subdue_v all_o the_o enemy_n of_o thy_o salvation_n christ_n will_v feast_v thou_o at_o his_o own_o table_n with_o bread_n of_o life_n water_n of_o life_n and_o with_o heavenly_a manna_n which_o be_v precious_a dainty_n and_o spiritual_a food_n for_o thy_o soul_n to_o feed_v upon_o and_o thy_o heart_n will_v rejoice_v and_o be_v glad_a in_o he_o thou_o shall_v also_o enjoy_v 23._o enjoy_v gal._n 5._o 22_o 23._o the_o fruit_n of_o his_o spirit_n which_o be_v love_n joy_n peace_n long-suffering_a gentleness_n goodness_n faith_n meekness_n temperance_n and_o all_o that_o belong_v unto_o thou_o shall_v partake_v of_o the_o riches_n of_o his_o goodness_n and_o of_o his_o blessing_n 7._o blessing_n ps_n 24._o 7._o let_v thy_o gate_n therefore_o stand_v open_a that_o the_o king_n of_o glory_n may_v enter_v in_o and_o be_v thou_o as_o ready_a to_o receive_v he_o with_o all_o joy_n and_o gladness_n of_o heart_n 9_o heart_n luc._n 19_o 6._o 9_o as_o zachaeus_n be_v to_o receive_v christ_n when_o he_o be_v in_o the_o flesh_n who_o bring_v salvation_n to_o his_o house_n be_v not_o thou_o like_o the_o spouse_n in_o the_o canticle_n 2d_o canticle_n cant._n 5._o 2d_o who_o will_v not_o rise_v out_o of_o her_o bed_n of_o security_n to_o open_v the_o door_n of_o her_o heart_n to_o her_o belove_a but_o suffer_v he_o to_o stand_v knock_v and_o call_v until_o his_o lock_n be_v wet_a with_o the_o drop_n of_o the_o night_n now_o if_o thou_o have_v any_o care_n of_o thy_o soul_n health_n study_n and_o meditate_v how_o to_o observe_v the_o time_n and_o mean_n of_o grace_n and_o how_o to_o improve_v they_o to_o the_o glory_n of_o god_n and_o to_o thy_o own_o spiritual_a gain_n can_v thou_o observe_v the_o time_n and_o season_n of_o the_o year_n for_o the_o fruit_n of_o the_o earth_n and_o have_v thou_o no_o care_n to_o take_v the_o opportunity_n that_o god_n give_v thou_o for_o grace_n learn_v of_o the_o mariner_n who_o will_v hoist_v up_o sail_n when_o the_o wind_n serve_v for_o he_o and_o when_o god_n offer_v thou_o grace_n do_v thou_o raise_v up_o thy_o heart_n and_o affection_n to_o receive_v it_o if_o thou_o refuse_v his_o gracious_a goodness_n to_o thou_o herein_o it_o be_v no_o wonder_n if_o thou_o be_v barren_a of_o true_a virtue_n and_o piety_n if_o thy_o soul_n be_v without_o spiritual_a comfort_n in_o thy_o sorrow_n and_o affliction_n and_o it_o be_v no_o marvel_n if_o thou_o be_v fruitless_a in_o all_o good_a work_n if_o thou_o will_v make_v the_o true_a gain_n of_o thy_o time_n thou_o must_v diligent_o attend_v to_o the_o holy_a ordinance_n of_o god_n thou_o must_v thankful_o receive_v his_o mercy_n and_o blessing_n thou_o must_v bear_v the_o cross_n of_o christ_n with_o patience_n and_o with_o meekness_n submit_v thyself_o with_o all_o humbleness_n of_o spirit_n to_o the_o will_n and_o pleasure_n of_o god_n also_o thou_o must_v repent_v of_o holy_a duty_n omit_v as_o well_o as_o of_o sin_n commit_v and_o howsoever_o god_n shall_v deal_v with_o thou_o at_o that_o very_a time_n make_v a_o holy_a use_n of_o it_o for_o the_o glory_n of_o god_n and_o for_o the_o comfort_n of_o thy_o soul_n if_o the_o devil_n have_v delude_v thou_o with_o false_a pretence_n or_o have_v lull_v thou_o asleep_a in_o his_o bed_n of_o security_n so_o that_o thou_o have_v slight_v the_o mean_n of_o grace_n and_o have_v vain_o spend_v thy_o precious_a time_n without_o any_o spiritual_a or_o heavenly_a gain_n thou_o must_v labour_v with_o all_o christian_a diligence_n to_o recover_v it_o again_o which_o thou_o may_v do_v by_o the_o gracious_a help_n and_o assistance_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n herein_o for_o thou_o have_v no_o ability_n in_o thyself_o to_o get_v out_o of_o these_o dangerous_a snare_n of_o the_o devil_n or_o to_o redeem_v the_o time_n that_o thou_o have_v lose_v to_o conclude_v if_o thou_o do_v desire_v to_o make_v the_o true_a gain_n of_o the_o time_n of_o grace_n thou_o must_v strive_v to_o remove_v out_o of_o thy_o heart_n whatsoever_o do_v displease_v or_o dishonour_n god_n and_o whatsoever_o may_v hinder_v the_o operation_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n and_o the_o current_n of_o grace_n to_o thy_o heart_n for_o if_o thy_o mind_n be_v carry_v after_o the_o love_n of_o the_o world_n after_o vain_a pleasure_n or_o sinful_a delight_n and_o if_o thou_o do_v
from_o the_o lord_n own_o mouth_n that_o it_o be_v the_o property_n of_o a_o good_a shepherd_n 4_o shepherd_n ezec._n 34._o 3_o 4_o to_o feed_v the_o flock_n to_o strengthen_v the_o disease_a to_o heal_v the_o sick_a to_o bind_v up_o that_o which_o be_v break_v to_o bring_v again_o that_o which_o be_v drive_v away_o to_o seek_v that_o which_o be_v lose_v and_o to_o protect_v his_o flock_n from_o the_o danger_n of_o the_o wolf_n isaiah_n do_v prophesy_v thus_o of_o christ_n 11_o christ_n isa_n 40._o 11_o he_o shall_v feed_v his_o flock_n like_o a_o shepherd_n he_o shall_v grather_o the_o lamb_n with_o his_o arm_n and_o carry_v they_o in_o his_o bosom_n and_o shall_v gentle_o lead_v those_o that_o be_v with_o young_a this_o tender_a care_n christ_n have_v over_o every_o lamb_n and_o every_o sheep_n that_o belong_v to_o his_o fold_n if_o we_o be_v then_o his_o sheep_n 4._o sheep_n joh._n 10._o 3_o 4._o we_o know_v his_o voice_n we_o will_v hear_v it_o we_o will_v follow_v he_o and_o obey_v his_o voice_n thus_o say_v david_n 23._o david_n i●sal_n 23._o the_o lord_n be_v my_o shepherd_n i_o shall_v not_o want_v if_o the_o lord_n be_v our_o shepherd_n then_o sure_o our_o shepherd_n be_v the_o lord_n jehovah_n under_o who_o shadow_n we_o shall_v be_v preserve_v and_o from_o who_o we_o shall_v receive_v all_o sweet_a consolation_n and_o refresh_n thus_o say_v the_o lord_n by_o his_o prophet_n 23_o prophet_n eze._n 34._o 23_o and_o i_o will_v set_v up_o one_o shepherd_n over_o they_o and_o he_o shall_v feed_v they_o even_o my_o servant_n david_n which_o be_v christ_n the_o lord_n four_o christ_n be_v resemble_v 2._o resemble_v rev._n 2_o 2._o 2._o to_o the_o tree_n of_o life_n which_o do_v bear_v twelve_o manner_n of_o fruit_n and_o yield_v her_o fruit_n every_o month_n and_o the_o leaf_n of_o the_o tree_n be_v for_o the_o heal_n of_o the_o nation_n now_o then_o 3._o then_o cant._n 2._o 3._o if_o we_o sit_v down_o under_o the_o shadow_n of_o this_o tree_n we_o shall_v find_v great_a pleasure_n and_o delight_n we_o shall_v be_v preserve_v from_o the_o heat_n of_o god_n wrath_n we_o shall_v be_v refresh_v thereby_o in_o the_o scorch_a heat_n of_o affliction_n and_o fiery_a trial_n and_o under_o this_o shadow_n the_o burn_a heat_n of_o our_o sinful_a lust_n will_v be_v cool_v and_o assuage_v if_o we_o feed_v upon_o the_o fruit_n of_o this_o tree_n by_o faith_n which_o be_v the_o body_n of_o christ_n crucify_v upon_o the_o cross_n and_o his_o blood_n pour_v out_o it_o will_v be_v sweet_a and_o pleasant_a to_o our_o spiritual_a taste_n 5●_n taste_n john_n 6._o 5●_n for_o it_o will_v ●e_v the_o bread_n of_o life_n to_o make_v we_o live_v for_o ever_o 14._o ever_o joh._n 4._o 14._o and_o his_o blood_n will_v be_v a_o fountain_n of_o live_a water_n which_o will_v spring_v up_o in_o we_o unto_o everlasting_a life_n the_o leaf_n of_o this_o tree_n be_v his_o gracious_a promise_n which_o will_v heal_v and_o cure_v all_o the_o spiritual_a disease_n and_o wound_n that_o our_o sin_n have_v make_v in_o our_o soul_n if_o we_o do_v apply_v they_o to_o every_o particular_a wound_n by_o faith_n last_o christ_n be_v resemble_v to_o a_o bridegroom_n and_o then_o the_o whole_a church_n of_o god_n and_o every_o true_a believer_n be_v his_o spouse_n and_o his_o bride_n that_o be_v that_o which_o john_n the_o baptist_n say_v 29_o say_v john_n 3._o 29_o he_o that_o have_v the_o bride_n be_v the_o bridegroom_n which_o he_o then_o speak_v of_o christ_n now_o there_o be_v a_o wonderful_a joy_n and_o rejoice_n between_o the_o bridegroom_n and_o the_o bride_n and_o the_o prophet_n express_v god_n rejoice_v over_o his_o people_n by_o this_o mutual_a joy_n that_o be_v between_o they_o 5_o they_o isa_n 62._o 5_o as_o the_o bridegroom_n rejoice_v over_o the_o bride_n so_o shall_v thy_o god_n rejoice_v over_o thou_o who_o can_v describe_v the_o perfect_a love_n of_o jesus_n christ_n to_o his_o spouse_n who_o can_v declare_v the_o love_a affection_n of_o the_o bridegroom_n towards_o his_o bride_n what_o excellent_a benefit_n do_v he_o bestow_v upon_o she_o of_o his_o own_o bounty_n and_o grace_n without_o any_o of_o her_o deserve_n though_o she_o have_v many_o spot_n &_o blemish_n yet_o he_o will_v not_o forsake_v she_o but_o will_v sanctify_v she_o and_o make_v her_o holy_a chaste_a and_o pure_a fit_a to_o be_v his_o spouse_n be_v adorn_v with_o his_o own_o ornament_n of_o grace_n this_o do_v evident_o appear_v in_o that_o excellent_a song_n of_o solomon_n where_o the_o admirable_a love_n of_o christ_n to_o his_o spouse_n be_v express_v and_o also_o the_o entire_a affection_n of_o the_o church_n unto_o he_o this_o be_v christ_n our_o gracious_a redeemer_n and_o these_o be_v some_o of_o the_o heavenly_a comfort_n that_o we_o shall_v enjoy_v by_o he_o if_o we_o can_v embrace_v he_o by_o faith_n as_o our_o bless_a saviour_n and_o bridegroom_n of_o our_o soul_n we_o may_v now_o draw_v much_o comfortable_a matter_n from_o these_o several_a resemblance_n of_o christ_n for_o the_o strengthen_n of_o our_o weak_a faith_n and_o for_o the_o support_v of_o our_o droop_a spirit_n also_o they_o will_v afford_v we_o excellent_a matter_n for_o our_o instruction_n to_o teach_v we_o how_o to_o demean_v ourselves_o towards_o he_o and_o where_o to_o find_v true_a comfort_n in_o time_n of_o need_n if_o we_o be_v branch_n of_o this_o vine_n we_o shall_v draw_v grace_n and_o virtue_n from_o he_o to_o make_v we_o fruitful_a in_o all_o good_a work_n to_o walk_v upright_o before_o god_n and_o to_o live_v comfortable_a in_o what_o estate_n or_o condition_n soever_o we_o be_v if_o christ_n be_v our_o head_n we_o will_v be_v direct_v by_o he_o in_o all_o our_o way_n we_o will_v seek_v unto_o he_o for_o protection_n against_o all_o our_o enemy_n for_o preservation_n from_o all_o casualty_n and_o danger_n and_o for_o deliverance_n out_o of_o all_o our_o trouble_n also_o that_o we_o may_v receive_v from_o he_o some_o influence_n of_o spiritual_a grace_n without_o which_o we_o can_v move_v one_o step_n towards_o heaven_n if_o christ_n be_v our_o shepherd_n than_o we_o must_v be_v harmless_a and_o meek_a as_o his_o lamb_n our_o ear_n must_v be_v open_a to_o his_o voice_n we_o must_v follow_v he_o and_o none_o but_o he_o 3_o he_o psa_fw-la 2._o 2._o 3_o for_o he_o will_v make_v we_o to_o lie_v down_o in_o green_a pasture_n he_o will_v lead_v we_o forth_o beside_o the_o water_n of_o comfort_n and_o will_v bring_v we_o forth_o in_o the_o path_n of_o righteousness_n and_o will_v also_o plentiful_o provide_v for_o we_o though_o his_o rod_n of_o correction_n or_o his_o staff_n be_v upon_o we_o yet_o they_o shall_v be_v for_o our_o great_a benefit_n and_o consolation_n so_o likewise_o if_o we_o can_v shroud_v ourselves_o by_o faith_n under_o the_o shadow_n of_o this_o tree_n of_o life_n it_o will_v great_o refresh_v our_o soul_n and_o we_o may_v find_v cure_n for_o all_o our_o spiritual_a disease_n by_o apply_v the_o promise_n of_o the_o gospel_n and_o the_o merit_n of_o christ_n suffering_n to_o ourselves_o by_o faith_n but_o above_o all_o if_o we_o can_v feed_v upon_o the_o bless_a fruit_n of_o this_o tree_n by_o faith_n in_o the_o hear_n of_o the_o word_n preach_v in_o the_o worthy_a receive_n of_o the_o lord_n supper_n and_o in_o our_o devout_a and_o zealous_a meditation_n on_o christ_n crucify_v for_o we_o it_o will_v nourish_v we_o up_o to_o eternal_a life_n last_o if_o we_o be_v betroth_v unto_o christ_n by_o faith_n he_o will_v then_o rejoice_v over_o we_o to_o do_v we_o good_a he_o will_v make_v we_o pure_a and_o holy_a and_o will_v hide_v all_o our_o deformity_n of_o sin_n under_o the_o robe_n of_o his_o own_o righteousness_n out_o of_o god_n sight_n and_o will_v adorn_v we_o with_o his_o own_o spiritual_a and_o heavenly_a grace_n that_o we_o may_v be_v lovely_a in_o his_o sight_n and_o fit_a to_o be_v wed_v unto_o he_o for_o ever_o hereafter_o in_o the_o kingdom_n of_o heaven_n we_o be_v also_o bind_v by_o virtue_n of_o this_o our_o union_n to_o love_n christ_n with_o pure_a affection_n to_o honour_v he_o above_o all_o and_o to_o keep_v ourselves_o from_o spiritual_a fornication_n tha●_n the_o may_v delight_v in_o we_o to_o do_v we_o good_a and_o never_o to_o leave_v and_o forsake_v we_o the_o consideration_n of_o these_o thing_n be_v well_o worthy_a our_o serious_a and_o devout_a meditation_n because_o hereby_o we_o shall_v the_o better_a know_v christ_n our_o redeemer_n and_o we_o shall_v draw_v near_o into_o communion_n with_o he_o who_o be_v the_o fountain_n of_o all_o true_a consolation_n and_o the_o only_a meritorious_a cause_n of_o our_o salvation_n by_o that_o redemption_n which_o he_o have_v wrought_v for_o we_o this_o knowledge_n of_o
christ_n be_v above_o all_o humane_a wisdom_n and_o therefore_o 2._o therefore_o 1_o cor._n 2._o 1_o 2._o paul_n come_v not_o to_o the_o corinthian_n with_o excellency_n of_o speech_n or_o of_o wisdom_n to_o declare_v unto_o they_o the_o testimony_n of_o god_n for_o he_o determine_v not_o to_o know_v any_o thing_n among_o they_o save_v jesus_n christ_n and_o he_o crucify_v wherefore_o if_o we_o can_v gain_v this_o heavenly_a knowledge_n by_o our_o study_n and_o meditation_n of_o christ_n we_o have_v enough_o to_o make_v our_o soul_n gracious_a here_o and_o eternal_o bless_v hereafter_o of_o christ_n prophetical_a office_n now_o we_o come_v to_o the_o several_a office_n of_o christ_n from_o whence_o we_o may_v draw_v some_o profitable_a matter_n for_o our_o instruction_n and_o for_o our_o comfort_n and_o in_o the_o first_o place_n god_n ordain_v he_o to_o be_v a_o prophet_n according_a as_o the_o lord_n say_v unto_o moses_n 18._o moses_n deut._n 18._o 18._o i_o will_v raise_v they_o up_o a_o prophet_n from_o among_o their_o brethren_n like_v unto_o thou_o and_o will_v put_v my_o word_n in_o his_o mouth_n and_o he_o shall_v speak_v unto_o they_o all_o that_o i_o shall_v command_v he_o this_o be_v that_o great_a prophet_n of_o the_o lord_n christ_n jesus_n who_o have_v not_o his_o prophetical_a gift_n by_o divine_a revelation_n as_o all_o the_o prophet_n have_v but_o it_o be_v inherent_a in_o he_o and_o he_o have_v it_o from_o his_o own_o divine_a nature_n and_o by_o his_o own_o power_n and_o therefore_o he_o need_v not_o that_o any_o thing_n shall_v be_v reveal_v unto_o he_o christ_n give_v some_o manifestation_n of_o this_o his_o office_n by_o way_n of_o pprophecy_n 21._o pprophecy_n luc._n 21._o for_o he_o foretell_v the_o destruction_n of_o the_o temple_n 44._o temple_n luke_n 19_o 43_o 44._o the_o great_a desolation_n that_o shall_v short_o come_v upon_o jerusalem_n 25_o jerusalem_n lu._n 21._o 25_o and_o also_o the_o sign_n which_o shall_v be_v before_o the_o day_n of_o judgement_n likewise_o he_o foretell_v 19_o foretell_v mat._n 20._o 18_o 19_o what_o shall_v be_v do_v to_o himself_o in_o his_o passion_n 34_o passion_n mat._n 26._o 34_o and_o how_o shameful_o peter_n shall_v deny_v he_o and_o not_o a_o word_n that_o proceed_v out_o of_o his_o mouth_n can_v fall_v to_o the_o ground_n but_o must_v be_v fulfil_v in_o due_a time_n because_o 5_o because_o joh._n 14._o 5_o he_o that_o be_v the_o truth_n do_v speak_v it_o he_o 25._o he_o joh._n 2._o 24_o 25._o do_v know_v the_o secret_n of_o every_o man_n heart_n he_o know_v who_o believe_v in_o he_o and_o who_o do_v not_o and_o also_o what_o mischief_n his_o enemy_n intend_v against_o he_o for_o nothing_o can_v be_v hide_v from_o he_o christ_n have_v give_v some_o glimpse_n of_o his_o prophetical_a gift_n to_o his_o minister_n to_o foresee_v the_o judgement_n of_o god_n that_o will_v fall_v upon_o a_o nation_n or_o people_n if_o they_o be_v above_o measure_n sinful_a and_o will_v not_o be_v reclaim_v nor_o bring_v to_o repentance_n but_o christ_n by_o his_o own_o preach_n have_v now_o put_v a_o end_n to_o the_o gift_n of_o prophecy_n ordinary_o if_o it_o be_v so_o that_o every_o word_n which_o christ_n have_v speak_v must_v be_v fulfil_v how_o ought_v we_o to_o fear_n and_o tremble_v at_o his_o threaten_n how_o careful_a shall_v we_o be_v to_o make_v our_o peace_n with_o he_o by_o sound_a repentance_n and_o turn_n unto_o god_n before_o he_o put_v in_o execution_n what_o he_o have_v threaten_v also_o how_o comfortable_a be_v his_o promise_n which_o in_o their_o time_n shall_v be_v perform_v if_o we_o rest_v upon_o they_o by_o faith_n how_o can_v any_o affliction_n or_o sorrow_n tire_v if_o we_o rest_v upon_o a_o promise_n of_o succour_n from_o christ_n and_o how_o can_v we_o despair_v of_o our_o salvation_n if_o we_o do_v believe_v that_o christ_n have_v perfect_o wrought_v our_o redemption_n and_o have_v make_v our_o peace_n with_o god_n his_o father_n also_o if_o it_o be_v so_o that_o christ_n do_v see_v by_o his_o divine_a nature_n into_o the_o secret_n of_o all_o heart_n we_o ought_v to_o be_v vigilant_a and_o careful_a to_o keep_v our_o heart_n cleanse_v and_o purify_v from_o the_o guilt_n of_o sin_n into_o the_o blood_n of_o christ_n by_o the_o daily_a renew_n of_o our_o faith_n and_o true_a repentance_n that_o no_o darling_n sin_n may_v be_v cherish_v there_o for_o he_o can_v see_v it_o and_o find_v it_o out_o but_o this_o be_v not_o the_o chief_a end_n that_o christ_n do_v intend_v in_o this_o his_o office_n for_o he_o be_v anoint_v by_o the_o holy_a ghost_n at_o his_o baptism_n to_o preach_v the_o gospel_n of_o peace_n according_a to_o this_o pprophecy_n of_o he_o 18._o he_o isa_n 61._o luc._n 4._o 18._o the_o spirit_n of_o the_o lord_n be_v upon_o i_o because_o the_o lord_n have_v anoint_v i_o to_o preach_v good_a tiding_n unto_o the_o meek_a he_o have_v send_v i_o to_o bind_v up_o the_o break_a heart_a to_o proclaim_v liberty_n to_o the_o captive_n and_o the_o open_n of_o the_o prison_n to_o they_o that_o be_v bind_v to_o proclaim_v the_o acceptable_a year_n of_o the_o lord_n etc._n etc._n christ_n do_v execute_v the_o part_n of_o his_o prophetical_a office_n in_o the_o whole_a course_n of_o his_o ministry_n and_o 29._o and_o mat._n 7._o 28_o 29._o the_o people_n be_v astonish_v at_o his_o doctrine_n for_o 32_o for_o luc._n 4._o 32_o his_o word_n be_v with_o power_n and_o he_o teach_v they_o as_o one_o have_v authority_n his_o whole_a doctrine_n be_v pure_a and_o divine_a it_o be_v direct_v to_o the_o manifestation_n of_o his_o heavenly_a father_n will_n and_o to_o the_o regulate_v of_o our_o sinful_a life_n according_a to_o god_n commandment_n which_o he_o comprehend_v in_o this_o short_a sum_n 39_o sum_n mat._n 22_o 37._o 39_o thou_o shall_v love_v the_o l●rd_n thy_o god_n with_o all_o thy_o heart_n and_o with_o all_o thy_o soul_n and_o with_o all_o thy_o mind_n and_o thou_o shall_v love_v thy_o neighbour_n as_o thyself_o christ_n do_v right_o interpret_v the_o moral_a law_n and_o free_v it_o from_o the_o false_a gloss_n of_o the_o pharisee_n for_o whereas_o that_o command_v only_o external_a obedience_n to_o the_o commandment_n according_a to_o their_o interpretation_n of_o they_o as_o not_o to_o kill_v not_o to_o commit_v actual_a adultery_n and_o the_o like_a 5._o like_a mat._n 5._o his_o doctrine_n add_v internal_a observation_n as_o not_o to_o speak_v angry_a word_n to_o our_o neighbour_n hurt_n not_o to_o lust_n and_o the_o like_a and_o whereas_o the_o ceremonial_a law_n command_v to_o offer_v up_o a_o sheep_n or_o a_o ox_n for_o our_o sin_n the_o doctrine_n of_o christ_n do_v instruct_v we_o to_o offer_v up_o a_o break_a and_o a_o contrite_a heart_n that_o our_o sin_n may_v be_v wash_v away_o in_o the_o blood_n of_o christ_n by_o faith_n and_o to_o purpose_n and_o resolve_v the_o reformation_n of_o our_o sinful_a life_n christ_n doctrine_n tend_v whole_o to_o the_o perfect_a service_n of_o god_n to_o draw_v our_o mind_n from_o the_o vanity_n of_o this_o world_n and_o to_o set_v our_o affection_n upon_o the_o kingdom_n of_o heaven_n also_o it_o tend_v to_o the_o depression_n of_o our_o spiritual_a pride_n to_o the_o mortification_n of_o our_o sinful_a appetite_n and_o to_o the_o stir_v up_o of_o our_o heavenly_a cogitation_n to_o peace_n of_o conscience_n tranquillity_n of_o mind_n purity_n of_o body_n and_o the_o comfort_n of_o our_o soul_n in_o brief_a his_o doctrine_n do_v contain_v whatsoever_o be_v necessary_a to_o salvation_n for_o he_o do_v reveal_v the_o whole_a counsel_n of_o god_n as_o the_o doctrine_n of_o christ_n be_v divine_a and_o heavenly_a so_o his_o whole_a life_n and_o conversation_n be_v exact_o suitable_a thereunto_o for_o it_o be_v most_o upright_o and_o holy_a and_o a_o lively_a table_n wherein_o be_v express_v the_o perfection_n of_o his_o doctrine_n this_o may_v teach_v all_o the_o minister_n of_o his_o word_n to_o frame_v their_o life_n according_a to_o the_o purity_n of_o their_o doctrine_n that_o their_o good_a example_n may_v confirm_v their_o doctrine_n and_o be_v a_o pattern_n for_o other_o to_o follow_v christ_n do_v still_o execute_v this_o part_n of_o his_o prophetical_a office_n in_o his_o minister_n by_o the_o preach_n of_o his_o word_n and_o the_o virtue_n and_o power_n of_o his_o spirit_n do_v also_o join_v with_o their_o continual_a preach_n to_o make_v it_o powerful_a for_o edification_n and_o instruction_n and_o effectual_a to_o salvation_n wherefore_o our_o heart_n and_o affection_n must_v be_v sanctify_v and_o season_v with_o grace_n and_o our_o ear_n must_v be_v spiritual_o bore_v when_o we_o come_v to_o hear_v the_o word_n of_o god_n preach_v and_o we_o must_v faithful_o pray_v that_o his_o spirit_n will_v accompany_v the_o
from_o we_o if_o it_o may_v stand_v with_o god_n good_a pleasure_n to_o who_o holy_a will_v we_o must_v always_o submit_v our_o desire_n for_o if_o it_o be_v not_o his_o will_n to_o deliver_v we_o it_o will_v be_v his_o will_n to_o comfort_v we_o if_o we_o do_v patient_o attend_v his_o appoint_a time_n this_o be_v holy_a david_n counsel_n 14_o counsel_n ps_n 27._o 14_o wait_v on_o the_o lord_n say_v he_o be_v of_o good_a courage_n and_o he_o shall_v strengthen_v thy_o heart_n wait_v i_o say_v on_o the_o lord_n and_o again_o he_o say_v 8._o say_v ps_n 34_o 8._o bless_a be_v the_o man_n that_o trust_v in_o he_o if_o we_o thus_o wait_v on_o the_o lord_n he_o will_v also_o wait_v to_o do_v we_o good_a for_o thus_o the_o prophet_n express_v the_o wonderful_a goodness_n of_o god_n to_o his_o people_n 18_o people_n be_v 30._o 18_o and_o therefore_o will_v the_o lord_n wait_v that_o he_o may_v be_v gracious_a unto_o you_o what_o can_v more_o strong_o move_v we_o to_o wait_v patient_o the_o lord_n time_n when_o he_o will_v be_v please_v to_o send_v we_o comfort_n in_o our_o sorrow_n and_o deliverance_n out_o of_o they_o 15_o they_o psa_fw-la 50._o 15_o god_n have_v also_o command_v we_o to_o call_v upon_o he_o in_o our_o trouble_n and_o he_o have_v promise_v to_o deliver_v we_o and_o as_o he_o have_v command_v the_o one_o so_o he_o will_v never_o fail_v to_o perform_v the_o other_o but_o when_o the_o lord_n give_v this_o cup_n to_o the_o wicked_a 28._o wicked_a jer._n 25._o 25._o 28._o it_o be_v the_o wine_n cup_n of_o his_o fury_n to_o they_o for_o their_o destruction_n and_o though_o they_o refuse_v to_o take_v it_o yet_o they_o shall_v certain_o drink_v it_o sometime_o the_o lord_n make_v his_o own_o people_n drink_v very_o deep_a of_o this_o cup_n for_o thus_o the_o prophet_n bewail_v the_o sorrow_n and_o affliction_n of_o jerusalem_n 17._o jerusalem_n isa_n 51._o 17._o awake_v awake_a stand_v up_o o_o jerusalem_n which_o have_v drink_v at_o the_o hand_n of_o the_o lord_n the_o cup_n of_o his_o fury_n thou_o have_v drunken_a the_o dregs_o of_o the_o cup_n of_o tremble_a and_o wring_v they_o out_o but_o the_o lord_n their_o god_n will_v take_v a_o time_n to_o plead_v their_o cause_n when_o they_o repent_v and_o forsake_v their_o sin_n and_o turn_v unto_o he_o 23._o he_o be_v 51._o 22_o 23._o behold_v say_v the_o lord_n i_o have_v take_v out_o of_o thy_o hand_n the_o cup_n of_o tremble_a even_o the_o dregs_o of_o the_o cup_n of_o my_o sury_n thou_o shall_v no_o more_o drink_v it_o again_o but_o i_o will_v put_v it_o into_o the_o hand_n of_o they_o that_o afflict_v thou_o if_o god_n be_v angry_a with_o his_o servant_n it_o will_v be_v but_o for_o a_o night_n joy_n will_v come_v in_o the_o morning_n if_o he_o do_v suffer_v the_o wicked_a to_o afflict_v they_o it_o will_v be_v for_o a_o short_a time_n and_o then_o he_o will_v give_v they_o a_o double_a measure_n of_o consolation_n for_o their_o sorrow_n and_o at_o length_n will_v pour_v out_o his_o fury_n in_o full_a measure_n upon_o their_o enemy_n though_o it_o be_v the_o will_n of_o god_n that_o christ_n in_o his_o humane_a nature_n shall_v drink_v this_o cup_n and_o the_o very_a dregs_o of_o it_o which_o bring_v he_o so_o low_o in_o his_o own_o apprehension_n as_o if_o god_n have_v forsake_v he_o yet_o his_o divine_a nature_n do_v so_o uphold_v he_o that_o he_o be_v able_a to_o bear_v it_o whereby_o he_o have_v make_v that_o cup_n mild_a and_o gentle_a to_o we_o for_o all_o that_o belong_v unto_o he_o must_v taste_v of_o this_o cup_n in_o this_o life_n and_o as_o peter_n say_v if_o judgement_n first_o begin_v at_o the_o house_n of_o god_n what_o shall_v be_v the_o end_n of_o they_o that_o obey_v not_o the_o gospel_n of_o god_n and_o if_o the_o righteous_a scarce_o be_v save_v where_o shall_v the_o ungodly_a and_o the_o sinner_n appear_v if_o god_n give_v this_o cup_n of_o tremble_v to_o his_o own_o dear_a son_n who_o be_v full_a of_o all_o good_a sure_o than_o he_o will_v not_o spare_v we_o that_o natural_o be_v dry_a barren_a and_o fruitless_a wherefore_o look_v narrow_o to_o thy_o way_n and_o walk_v circumspect_o before_o thy_o god_n for_o if_o thy_o sin_n and_o iniquity_n break_v upon_o thou_o and_o thou_o continue_v in_o they_o without_o repentance_n god_n will_v put_v his_o cup_n of_o fury_n in_o thy_o hand_n and_o thou_o must_v certain_o drink_v it_o which_o will_v make_v thy_o heart_n to_o quake_v and_o tremble_v when_o thou_o do_v taste_v it_o 6._o it_o ●an_v 5._o 5_o 6._o king_n belshazzar_n countenance_n be_v change_v and_o his_o thought_n trouble_v he_o so_o that_o the_o joint_n of_o his_o loin_n be_v loose_v and_o his_o knee_n smite_v one_o against_o another_o when_o he_o do_v but_o see_v the_o hand-writing_n that_o be_v upon_o the_o wall_n against_o he_o how_o much_o then_o will_v thou_o tremble_v that_o must_v drink_v the_o dregs_o of_o this_o cup_n if_o thou_o go_v on_o still_o in_o a_o rebellious_a way_n against_o god_n without_o repentance_n but_o if_o thou_o will_v seek_v the_o lord_n betimes_o and_o meet_v he_o by_o faith_n in_o christ_n and_o with_o a_o penitent_a heart_n he_o will_v be_v find_v of_o thou_o and_o this_o cup_n shall_v either_o pass_v from_o thou_o or_o else_o it_o shall_v be_v temper_v to_o thy_o strength_n that_o thou_o may_v drink_v it_o with_o comfort_n if_o we_o look_v upon_o our_o saviour_n bloody_a sweat_n we_o shall_v see_v the_o anguish_n of_o his_o soul_n and_o with_o what_o violence_n the_o devil_n do_v assault_v he_o thus_o terrible_a be_v his_o agony_n because_o the_o great_a dragon_n that_o old_a serpent_n the_o devil_n do_v set_v upon_o he_o with_o all_o his_o power_n and_o cast_v his_o venomous_a and_o poison_a dart_n to_o wound_v his_o very_a soul_n if_o it_o have_v be_v possible_a and_o to_o sting_v he_o unto_o death_n though_o the_o devil_n and_o his_o wicked_a instrument_n be_v suffer_v at_o last_o to_o take_v away_o his_o life_n yet_o the_o venom_n of_o their_o malice_n can_v not_o hurt_v he_o for_o as_o he_o live_v a_o innocent_a lamb_n without_o any_o spot_n or_o stain_v of_o sin_n so_o he_o die_v a_o sacrifice_n without_o blemish_n holy_a and_o acceptable_a to_o god_n and_o by_o his_o death_n he_o do_v vanquish_v sin_n which_o be_v the_o sting_n of_o death_n and_o by_o his_o resurrection_n he_o do_v vanquish_v the_o devil_n who_o have_v the_o power_n of_o death_n and_o also_o he_o subdue_v all_o the_o power_n of_o wicked_a man_n and_o perfect_o finish_v the_o whole_a work_n of_o man_n redemption_n in_o this_o agony_n christ_n find_v the_o burden_n of_o sin_n so_o heavy_a upon_o he_o and_o the_o power_n of_o the_o devil_n so_o strong_a against_o he_o that_o his_o soul_n be_v heavy_a even_o to_o the_o death_n what_o can_v be_v want_v to_o add_v sorrow_n to_o his_o soul_n when_o the_o great_a dragon_n of_o hell_n be_v unchained_a and_o let_v loose_a upon_o he_o yet_o by_o the_o power_n of_o his_o deity_n he_o overcome_v he_o though_o he_o be_v force_v to_o a_o bloody_a sweat_n if_o the_o beginning_n of_o our_o saviour_n passion_n be_v thus_o bitter_a and_o painful_a to_o he_o when_o he_o be_v in_o his_o full_a strength_n of_o body_n how_o terrible_a be_v it_o afterward_o when_o his_o body_n be_v faint_a and_o weak_a and_o his_o spirit_n almost_o spend_v if_o the_o devil_n by_o his_o own_o power_n do_v thus_o afflict_v his_o soul_n how_o be_v he_o afflict_v when_o his_o soul_n and_o body_n be_v torture_v and_o torment_v by_o the_o devil_n and_o his_o cruel_a instrument_n in_o his_o great_a weakness_n wherefore_o if_o he_o do_v sweat_v drop_n of_o blood_n for_o our_o sake_n it_o be_v a_o shame_n for_o we_o to_o take_v no_o pain_n in_o his_o service_n for_o the_o advancement_n of_o his_o name_n and_o to_o suffer_v nothing_o for_o his_o glory_n we_o can_v sweat_v abundant_o about_o our_o pleasure_n and_o profit_n and_o about_o our_o affair_n in_o this_o world_n but_o we_o can_v feel_v no_o warmth_n of_o holy_a zeal_n in_o our_o affection_n towards_o he_o neither_o will_v we_o take_v any_o pain_n about_o the_o affair_n of_o the_o kingdom_n of_o heaven_n we_o will_v not_o suffer_v our_o own_o name_n or_o credit_n to_o be_v blemish_v but_o we_o hear_v the_o sacred_a name_n of_o our_o bless_a redeemer_n dishonour_v and_o blaspheme_v we_o be_v not_o move_v at_o it_o but_o we_o can_v suffer_v it_o well_o enough_o also_o we_o can_v profess_v his_o name_n when_o there_o be_v no_o opposition_n against_o it_o but_o if_o cloud_n or_o storm_n of_o affliction_n and_o persecution_n do_v arise_v upon_o we_o for_o his_o sake_n we_o be_v ready_a quick_o to_o shrink_v from_o
it_o or_o if_o his_o enemy_n strike_v at_o he_o through_o our_o side_n we_o be_v then_o much_o trouble_v and_o we_o can_v bear_v no_o smart_n for_o he_o though_o he_o do_v sweat_v clot_n of_o blood_n for_o we_o if_o this_o be_v our_o condition_n if_o this_o be_v our_o love_n to_o our_o redeemer_n and_o our_o faithfulness_n to_o our_o saviour_n and_o if_o there_o be_v such_o cowardice_n in_o we_o that_o we_o can_v stand_v for_o he_o we_o do_v then_o discover_v too_o much_o ingratitude_n and_o unthankfulness_n to_o our_o most_o love_a and_o dear_a saviour_n and_o too_o much_o forgetfulness_n of_o his_o great_a goodness_n to_o we_o if_o we_o do_v well_o consider_v how_o bitter_a christ_n agony_n be_v to_o his_o very_a soul_n it_o will_v stir_v we_o up_o to_o magnify_v he_o for_o his_o grace_n and_o goodness_n and_o to_o express_v our_o thankfulness_n to_o his_o praise_n and_o glory_n by_o our_o piety_n in_o the_o duty_n of_o his_o worship_n and_o service_n and_o by_o our_o work_n of_o love_n and_o charity_n to_o his_o saint_n in_o their_o necessity_n for_o if_o we_o comfort_v the_o comfortless_a and_o relieve_v the_o needy_a according_a to_o our_o ability_n for_o his_o sake_n he_o will_v then_o comfort_v we_o when_o we_o be_v in_o any_o sad_a condition_n for_o he_o be_v the_o fountain_n of_o all_o true_a consolation_n and_o he_o know_v by_o his_o own_o experience_n how_o great_a a_o burden_n it_o be_v to_o have_v a_o sorrowful_a soul_n according_a to_o this_o of_o the_o wise_a man_n 14._o man_n prov._n 18._o 14._o a_o wound_a spirit_n who_o can_v bear_v but_o if_o we_o hope_v to_o find_v comfort_n in_o our_o grief_n and_o sorrow_n by_o secondary_a mean_n without_o christ_n our_o hope_n will_v deceive_v we_o and_o we_o can_v expect_v comfort_n from_o christ_n unless_o we_o be_v true_o sensible_a of_o the_o burden_n of_o our_o misery_n and_o that_o we_o have_v relation_n to_o he_o by_o faith_n for_o nothing_o can_v comfort_v we_o without_o he_o what_o true_a comfort_n can_v we_o have_v in_o our_o riches_n and_o honour_n if_o we_o do_v not_o enjoy_v christ_n with_o they_o and_o if_o we_o have_v not_o make_v our_o peace_n with_o god_n by_o faith_n in_o he_o and_o by_o our_o true_a repentance_n what_o ease_n can_v the_o best_a physic_n give_v we_o in_o our_o pain_n or_o sickness_n if_o god_n do_v not_o send_v the_o physician_n and_o also_o bless_v the_o physic_n we_o take_v yea_o what_o angel_n can_v comfort_v we_o in_o the_o anguish_n of_o our_o soul_n if_o god_n do_v not_o send_v he_o to_o give_v we_o some_o assurance_n of_o his_o love_n to_o we_o in_o christ_n though_o it_o be_v the_o will_n of_o god_n that_o in_o sickness_n we_o use_v the_o lawful_a mean_n of_o our_o health_n and_o recovery_n and_o in_o our_o trouble_n to_o use_v the_o mean_n of_o our_o comfort_n and_o deliverance_n yet_o it_o be_v not_o his_o will_n that_o we_o shall_v rest_v upon_o the_o mean_n without_o he_o but_o first_o we_o must_v have_v recourse_n unto_o god_n and_o with_o all_o humble_a reverence_n make_v know_v our_o state_n and_o condition_n to_o he_o and_o withal_o to_o crave_v his_o blessing_n upon_o the_o mean_v we_o shall_v use_v according_a to_o our_o several_a necessity_n and_o thus_o we_o shall_v receive_v from_o god_n what_o we_o desire_v or_o else_o what_o be_v better_o for_o we_o from_o hence_o also_o we_o may_v learn_v by_o the_o example_n of_o our_o gracious_a saviour_n to_o wait_v upon_o god_n for_o comfort_n in_o our_o sorrow_n and_o to_o be_v constant_a in_o our_o prayer_n until_o he_o shall_v be_v please_v to_o return_v we_o a_o gracious_a answer_n for_o 44._o for_o mat._n 26._o 44._o christ_n pray_v three_o time_n in_o his_o agony_n before_o he_o have_v any_o answer_n from_o his_o heavenly_a father_n and_o as_o the_o bitterness_n of_o his_o agony_n do_v increase_v so_o the_o fervency_n and_o zeal_n of_o his_o prayer_n be_v strong_a but_o such_o be_v the_o weakness_n of_o our_o faith_n and_o confidence_n in_o god_n that_o we_o be_v ready_a to_o give_v over_o wait_v upon_o he_o when_o we_o be_v in_o trouble_n if_o he_o do_v not_o send_v we_o help_v and_o succour_v when_o we_o expect_v it_o neither_o can_v we_o with_o christian_a constancy_n persevere_v in_o our_o prayer_n if_o god_n do_v not_o grant_v our_o request_n at_o our_o own_o time_n and_o according_a to_o our_o own_o desire_n except_o he_o do_v assist_v and_o strengthen_v we_o with_o his_o grace_n and_o holy_a spirit_n for_o it_o be_v god_n peculiar_a work_n to_o corroborate_v our_o mind_n and_o to_o confirm_v our_o heart_n with_o a_o settle_a resolution_n to_o rest_n and_o depend_v upon_o he_o in_o all_o our_o difficulty_n and_o danger_n otherwise_o we_o shall_v soon_o start_v aside_o at_o the_o fear_n of_o every_o temptation_n and_o trouble_n also_o such_o be_v our_o security_n and_o carelessnesse_n that_o we_o regard_v not_o the_o sorrow_n of_o the_o servant_n of_o god_n we_o can_v mourn_v though_o the_o church_n of_o god_n be_v in_o great_a heaviness_n through_o affliction_n we_o can_v watch_v though_o we_o see_v eminent_a danger_n our_o eye_n be_v so_o dim_a and_o heavy_a that_o we_o can_v see_v the_o judgement_n of_o god_n that_o be_v upon_o a_o nation_n or_o upon_o a_o people_n 43._o people_n mat._n 26._o 43._o the_o disciple_n be_v asleep_a when_o christ_n be_v in_o this_o sharp_a agony_n 5_o agony_n jon._n 1._o 4_o 5_o jo●as_n be_v also_o fast_o asleep_a in_o the_o ship_n when_o it_o be_v like_a to_o be_v break_v with_o a_o mighty_a tempest_n thus_o be_v the_o best_a of_o god_n servant_n subject_a to_o the_o like_a infirmity_n and_o fail_n through_o the_o frailty_n of_o the_o flesh_n which_o will_v sometime_o prevail_v against_o the_o spiritual_a part_n that_o be_v in_o they_o consider_v further_o that_o as_o the_o first_o adam_n lose_v that_o happiness_n which_o he_o have_v in_o his_o creation_n in_o the_o garden_n of_o eden_n which_o be_v a_o place_n of_o as_o much_o pleasure_n and_o delight_n as_o the_o whole_a earth_n can_v afford_v so_o the_o second_o adam_n christ_n jesus_n our_o dear_a saviour_n begin_v his_o passion_n in_o a_o garden_n to_o repair_v our_o lose_a happiness_n whither_o christ_n do_v often_o resort_v to_o refresh_v himself_o and_o for_o his_o own_o private_a devotion_n and_o yet_o there_o the_o devil_n do_v seduce_v our_o first_o parent_n and_o here_o also_o he_o do_v violent_o assault_v our_o bless_a redeemer_n to_o cause_v the_o one_o to_o fall_v and_o sin_n against_o god_n and_o to_o hinder_v the_o other_o in_o the_o work_n of_o our_o redemption_n thus_o the_o devil_n lay_v his_o trap_n and_o snare_n in_o our_o lawful_a pleasure_n and_o delight_n to_o catch_v we_o at_o advantage_n and_o to_o make_v we_o sin_n against_o our_o god_n and_o thus_o also_o he_o do_v endeavour_v to_o hinder_v we_o in_o our_o holy_a devotion_n and_o in_o any_o special_a work_n which_o god_n have_v appoint_v we_o to_o do_v how_o then_o can_v we_o be_v free_a from_o his_o evil_a suggestion_n and_o how_o can_v we_o be_v secure_a from_o danger_n though_o we_o can_v be_v no_o where_o free_a from_o his_o temptation_n yet_o we_o shall_v be_v preserve_v from_o the_o evil_n of_o they_o if_o we_o keep_v close_o unto_o christ_n by_o a_o true_a and_o sincere_a faith_n though_o the_o devil_n be_v most-malicious_o bend_v to_o do_v we_o hurt_v yet_o christ_n will_v restrain_v his_o power_n that_o he_o shall_v not_o do_v so_o much_o as_o his_o malicious_a will_n desire_v 29._o desire_v isa_n 37._o 29._o for_o he_o will_v put_v a_o hock_v in_o his_o nose_n and_o a_o bridle_n in_o his_o lip_n to_o pull_v he_o back_o that_o he_o shall_v not_o hurt_v our_o soul_n though_o he_o may_v be_v permit_v to_o afflict_v our_o body_n wherefore_o this_o be_v our_o singular_a comfort_n that_o if_o the_o devil_n be_v any_o way_n too_o subtle_a or_o too_o strong_a for_o we_o christ_n will_v give_v we_o heavenly_a wisdom_n to_o prevent_v his_o subtlety_n and_o strength_n of_o grace_n to_o overcome_v his_o power_n if_o the_o devil_n do_v suggest_v into_o we_o fear_n and_o doubt_n of_o our_o salvation_n to_o afflict_v our_o mind_n to_o disquiet_v the_o peace_n of_o our_o conscience_n or_o to_o perplex_v our_o soul_n christ_n will_v sweet_o refresh_v and_o comfort_v we_o with_o more_o assurance_n thereof_o by_o faith_n also_o if_o he_o do_v call_v our_o sin_n to_o remembrance_n and_o do_v lay_v they_o before_o we_o with_o their_o several_a aggravation_n to_o affright_v and_o terrify_v we_o and_o to_o drive_v we_o into_o despair_n christ_n will_v show_v we_o the_o clot_n of_o blood_n which_o he_o do_v sweat_n in_o his_o agony_n for_o our_o sake_n and_o the_o wound_n that_o be_v make_v in_o his_o body_n that_o our_o sin_n may_v
but_o when_o they_o see_v christ_n in_o so_o mean_v a_o condition_n they_o be_v offend_v in_o he_o and_o refuse_v he_o according_a to_o this_o of_o paul_n 23._o paul_n 1_o cor._n 1._o 23._o that_o christ_n crucify_v be_v a_o stumble_a block_n unto_o the_o jew_n and_o foolishness_n unto_o the_o greek_n if_o caiaphas_n have_v right_o understand_v the_o prophet_n he_o will_v have_v apply_v their_o prophecy_n unto_o christ_n that_o he_o come_v not_o to_o deliver_v they_o from_o the_o roman_n but_o to_o deliver_v they_o ou●_n of_o the_o bondage_n of_o sin_n and_o satan_n also_o he_o have_v then_o understand_v by_o the_o word_n of_o christ_n that_o he_o be_v both_o the_o son_n of_o god_n and_o the_o son_n of_o man_n and_o though_o he_o stand_v before_o he_o in_o a_o contemptible_a manner_n and_o though_o his_o enemy_n do_v then_o insult_v over_o he_o yet_o they_o even_o they_o shall_v hereafter_o see_v he_o sit_v in_o his_o humane_a nature_n at_o the_o right_a hand_n of_o god_n and_o also_o come_v in_o the_o cloud_n of_o heaven_n at_o the_o last_o day_n to_o judge_v both_o the_o quick_a and_o the_o dead_a but_o he_o have_v no_o spiritual_a eye_n to_o discern_v the_o divininity_n of_o christ_n in_o this_o his_o despicable_a condition_n and_o he_o have_v no_o believe_a heart_n to_o give_v credit_n to_o his_o word_n though_o they_o be_v the_o word_n of_o truth_n and_o of_o eternal_a life_n but_o he_o make_v they_o a_o occasion_n of_o his_o death_n for_o present_o upon_o this_o he_o deliver_v he_o up_o to_o pilate_n the_o roman_a magistrate_n to_o be_v put_v to_o death_n for_o a_o blasphemer_n for_o the_o regal_a sceptre_n be_v now_o take_v from_o judah_n and_o they_o have_v no_o power_n to_o put_v any_o man_n to_o death_n here_o meditate_v with_o pious_a affection_n upon_o the_o boundless_a mercy_n and_o bountiful_a goodness_n of_o god_n in_o offer_v grace_n to_o all_o christ_n preach_v salvation_n even_o to_o those_o that_o do_v seek_v his_o life_n he_o reveal_v unto_o they_o that_o be_v his_o deadly_a foe_n the_o great_a mystery_n that_o ever_o be_v to_o wit_n the_o incarnation_n of_o the_o eternal_a son_n of_o god_n the_o exaltation_n of_o his_o humane_a nature_n and_o his_o glorious_a triumph_v over_o all_o his_o enemy_n both_o spiritual_a and_o temporal_a at_o his_o second_o come_v which_o will_v be_v at_o the_o great_a day_n of_o judgement_n 16._o judgement_n 1_o tim._n 3._o 16._o this_o be_v the_o great_a mystery_n of_o godliness_n god_n manifest_v in_o the_o flesh_n justify_v in_o the_o spirit_n see_v of_o angel_n preach_v unto_o the_o gentile_n believe_v on_o in_o the_o world_n receive_v up_o into_o glory_n but_o behold_v and_o see_v the_o ingratitude_n of_o most_o man_n who_o will_v not_o receive_v the_o glad_a tiding_n of_o salvation_n though_o it_o be_v bring_v home_o to_o their_o house_n except_o they_o may_v have_v it_o on_o their_o own_o condition_n if_o they_o may_v still_o enjoy_v the_o pleasure_n and_o vanity_n of_o the_o world_n their_o carnal_a delight_n and_o bosom_n sin_n they_o be_v willing_a to_o embrace_v it_o but_o if_o they_o must_v part_v with_o these_o and_o must_v have_v it_o with_o cross_n trouble_n persecution_n and_o torment_n and_o with_o such_o like_a encumbrance_n they_o be_v willing_a then_o to_o be_v without_o it_o proud_a man_n will_v not_o receive_v the_o gospel_n of_o peace_n of_o such_o as_o be_v of_o no_o esteem_n or_o reputation_n and_o caiaphas_n will_v not_o receive_v the_o mean_n of_o grace_n from_o christ_n himself_o nor_o learn_v the_o way_n to_o salvation_n of_o he_o because_o he_o be_v in_o band_n and_o his_o spiritual_a pride_n will_v not_o suffer_v he_o to_o hearken_v to_o the_o heavenly_a doctrine_n of_o christ_n as_o he_o be_v now_o in_o this_o sad_a condition_n because_o he_o conceive_v he_o to_o be_v a_o man_n of_o no_o extraordinary_a gift_n or_o endowment_n but_o be_v thou_o o_o my_o soul_n always_o ready_a and_o prepare_v to_o receive_v the_o gospel_n of_o salvation_n with_o all_o humbleness_n of_o mind_n meekness_n of_o spirit_n and_o with_o hearty_a and_o pure_a affection_n whensoever_o or_o howsoever_o it_o be_v bring_v to_o there_o from_o christ_n for_o this_o heavenly_a liquor_n come_v from_o christ_n may_v be_v as_o wholesome_a as_o comfortable_a and_o as_o profitable_a if_o it_o be_v bring_v in_o a_o earthen_a pitcher_n as_o in_o a_o silver_n cup_n so_o that_o it_o be_v pure_o temper_v and_o that_o the_o holy_a ghost_n do_v join_v in_o the_o administration_n of_o it_o to_o bring_v it_o close_o home_o to_o all_o thy_o spiritual_a disease_n that_o by_o faith_n in_o christ_n thou_o may_v be_v cure_v if_o the_o gospel_n of_o christ_n be_v sincere_o preach_v thou_o will_v find_v it_o full_a of_o heavenly_a comfot_n and_o of_o holy_a direction_n for_o a_o pious_a life_n and_o conversation_n 16._o 2_o tim._n 3._o 16._o for_o it_o be_v profitable_a for_o doctrine_n for_o reproof_n for_o correction_n and_o for_o instruction_n in_o righteousness_n that_o thou_o may_v be_v perfect_a and_o thorough_o furnish_v unto_o all_o good_a work_n if_o thou_o do_v esteem_v of_o it_o according_a to_o the_o condition_n or_o quality_n of_o he_o that_o bring_v it_o and_o not_o according_a to_o its_o own_o worth_n or_o the_o honour_n and_o majesty_n of_o he_o that_o send_v it_o thou_o do_v then_o too_o much_o undervalue_v it_o and_o do_v dishonour_n god_n himself_o that_o send_v it_o for_o god_n have_v wrought_v mighty_a thing_n by_o weak_a mean_n 27._o 1_o cor._n 1._o 27._o he_o have_v choose_v the_o foolish_a thing_n of_o the_o world_n to_o confound_v the_o wise_a and_o the_o weak_a thing_n of_o the_o world_n to_o confound_v the_o thing_n which_o be_v mighty_a also_o 5._o also_o jam._n 2._o 5._o he_o have_v choose_v the_o poor_a of_o this_o world_n to_o make_v they_o rich_a in_o faith_n and_o in_o grace_n for_o grace_n be_v the_o true_a riches_n of_o the_o soul_n and_o this_o be_v the_o wealth_n which_o be_v most_o to_o be_v desire_v when_o god_n work_v great_a thing_n by_o small_a mean_n he_o be_v then_o most_o to_o be_v glorify_v 2._o glorify_v judg._n 7._o 2._o god_n bring_v down_o gideon_n army_n of_o two_o and_o thirty_o thousand_o to_o three_o hundred_o that_o he_o may_v have_v the_o honour_n of_o the_o overthrow_n of_o the_o midianite_n that_o israel_n may_v not_o vaunt_v themselves_o against_o he_o say_v i_o own_o hand_n have_v save_v i_o the_o apostle_n of_o christ_n do_v many_o mighty_a work_n by_o their_o ministry_n though_o most_o of_o they_o be_v but_o poor_a fisherman_n for_o they_o do_v not_o work_v by_o their_o own_o strength_n but_o they_o have_v their_o power_n and_o ability_n from_o christ_n 20._o 2_o cor._n 5._o 19_o 20._o for_o they_o be_v his_o ambassador_n and_o the_o word_n of_o reconciliation_n be_v commit_v to_o they_o peter_n denial_n of_o christ_n consider_v now_o by_o peter_n example_n how_o weak_a the_o dear_a of_o god_n servant_n be_v if_o he_o do_v leave_v they_o to_o their_o own_o strength_n and_o how_o unable_a they_o be_v to_o resist_v any_o temptation_n if_o the_o devil_n be_v permit_v to_o assault_v they_o and_o if_o god_n do_v withdraw_v his_o assist_a grace_n from_o they_o in_o their_o temptation_n for_o though_o peter_n but_o a_o few_o hour_n before_o do_v stout_o oppose_v a_o band_n of_o soldier_n in_o his_o master_n defence_n to_o the_o hazard_n of_o his_o own_o life_n yet_o now_o he_o be_v surprise_v with_o sudden_a fear_n through_o the_o subtlety_n of_o the_o devil_n which_o do_v great_o shake_v and_o endanger_v his_o faith_n we_o may_v very_o well_o conceive_v that_o it_o be_v not_o bare_o the_o word_n of_o the_o high_a priest_n servant_n that_o make_v peter_n fall_v so_o fearfullie_o 69._o fearfullie_o mat._n 26._o 69._o as_o to_o deny_v his_o lord_n and_o master_n three_o several_a time_n and_o that_o with_o bitter_a execration_n see_v he_o love_v he_o so_o dearlie_o and_o do_v so_o faithful_o promise_v not_o to_o forsake_v he_o though_o he_o shall_v die_v with_o he_o but_o the_o devil_n put_v a_o sting_n into_o their_o word_n which_o do_v strike_v peter_n with_o deadly_a fear_n that_o he_o shall_v be_v bring_v into_o the_o like_a trouble_n as_o his_o master_n be_v then_o in_o and_o also_o into_o danger_n of_o his_o life_n without_o doubt_v the_o devil_n do_v use_v all_o mean_n to_o aggravate_v these_o fear_n in_o peter_n by_o his_o suggestion_n to_o make_v he_o forget_v his_o former_a promise_n and_o to_o abjure_v his_o belove_a master_n for_o doubtless_o he_o do_v suggest_v unto_o he_o that_o if_o christ_n be_v the_o son_n of_o god_n then_o sure_o god_n will_v not_o suffer_v he_o to_o be_v thus_o shameful_o entreat_v or_o if_o christ_n be_v able_a to_o help_v himself_o he_o will_v not_o endure_v such_o
and_o seek_v opportunity_n to_o betray_v he_o unto_o they_o then_o he_o stir_v up_o the_o chief_a priest_n and_o elder_n against_o he_o who_o out_o of_o malice_n and_o envy_n do_v persecute_v he_o and_o false_o accuse_v he_o before_o herod_n and_o pilate_n because_o the_o people_n do_v so_o much_o resort_n unto_o he_o pilate_n condemn_v he_o out_o of_o fear_n and_o flattery_n to_o keep_v his_o grace_n and_o favour_n with_o caesar_n and_o to_o please_v the_o people_n for_o he_o think_v he_o do_v it_o for_o caesar_n honour_n the_o soldier_n crucify_v he_o for_o a_o reward_n and_o to_o make_v a_o spoil_n of_o his_o garment_n thus_o they_o be_v all_o the_o devil_n instrument_n to_o put_v the_o immaculate_a lamb_n of_o god_n to_o a_o most_o shameful_a and_o cruel_a death_n for_o their_o own_o wicked_a end_n but_o god_n do_v over-rule_v they_o all_o by_o his_o gracious_a and_o wise_a providence_n and_o make_v all_o their_o purpose_n and_o action_n to_o serve_v for_o the_o further_a of_o his_o most_o love_a and_o merciful_a end_n which_o be_v decree_v from_o eternity_n from_o hence_o we_o may_v draw_v sweet_a meditation_n for_o our_o comfort_n upon_o the_o power_n and_o goodness_n of_o god_n who_o can_v and_o will_v over-rule_v the_o power_n of_o the_o devil_n and_o of_o all_o wicked_a man_n and_o will_v so_o dispose_v of_o all_o their_o plot_n and_o device_n which_o they_o intend_v for_o the_o hurt_n of_o his_o servant_n that_o they_o shall_v all_o serve_v for_o his_o own_o glory_n and_o for_o their_o good_a he_o can_v frustrate_v their_o wicked_a intention_n and_o can_v bring_v about_o his_o own_o end_n to_o effect_v his_o own_o work_n by_o they_o god_n have_v this_o provident_a care_n of_o his_o people_n that_o whatsoever_o their_o enemy_n do_v malicious_o intend_v or_o devise_v against_o they_o shall_v be_v bring_v to_o nought_o or_o else_o he_o will_v make_v it_o serve_v for_o their_o advantage_n and_o gain_v though_o our_o enemy_n be_v as_o strong_a as_o ●●_o as_o 1_o sam._n ●●_o goliath_n be_v and_o though_o we_o be_v as_o unfit_a to_o encounter_v with_o they_o as_o david_n be_v to_o fight_v with_o that_o great_a giant_n yet_o if_o we_o put_v our_o confidence_n in_o god_n as_o david_n do_v and_o keep_v close_o unto_o he_o by_o faith_n in_o christ_n he_o will_v direct_v a_o stone_n to_o beat_v out_o their_o brain_n and_o though_o they_o be_v as_o cunning_a and_o as_o subtle_a 17_o subtle_a 2_o sam_n 17_o as_o achitophel_n be_v yet_o god_n can_v confound_v they_o in_o their_o own_o craft_n and_o policy_n mark_v now_o and_o consider_v it_o well_o how_o god_n in_o justice_n do_v revenge_v the_o treachery_n and_o cruelty_n that_o be_v use_v in_o betray_v and_o in_o murder_v of_o his_o dear_a and_o only_a son_n and_o how_o he_o bring_v their_o wickedness_n upon_o their_o own_o head_n for_o judas_n be_v give_v up_o to_o a_o reprobate_a mind_n 5_o mind_n mat._n 27_o 5_o and_o immediate_o after_o he_o hang_v himself_o god_n do_v severe_o punish_v the_o whole_a nation_n of_o the_o jew_n for_o this_o most_o horrible_a fact_n and_o lay_v the_o innocent_a blood_n of_o his_o son_n upon_o they_o and_o upon_o their_o posterity_n which_o do_v still_o rest_n upon_o they_o because_o they_o do_v wilful_o without_o cause_n and_o out_o of_o malice_n shed_v it_o pilate_n also_o be_v soon_o after_o cast_v out_o of_o caesar_n favour_n and_o banish_v into_o france_n and_o the_o devil_n be_v hereby_o quite_o vanquish_v and_o overcome_v so_o that_o now_o he_o have_v no_o power_n to_o hurt_v the_o mean_a of_o god_n saint_n thus_o will_v the_o lord_n deal_v with_o all_o those_o that_o have_v their_o hand_n stain_v with_o the_o blood_n of_o his_o anoint_v once_o and_o with_o all_o such_o as_o be_v actor_n in_o any_o wicked_a design_n they_o may_v hide_v their_o counsel_n in_o the_o dark_a yet_o nothing_o can_v be_v hide_v from_o god_n for_o he_o have_v a_o all-seeing_a eye_n to_o discover_v what_o they_o go_v about_o and_o he_o will_v bring_v the_o evil_a of_o their_o do_n upon_o themselves_o or_o upon_o their_o child_n wherefore_o have_v thou_o no_o hand_n in_o the_o blood_n of_o god_n servant_n and_o partake_v not_o with_o the_o wicked_a in_o their_o evil_a design_n for_o the_o guilt_n of_o their_o sin_n will_v cleave_v to_o thou_o and_o god_n will_v not_o suffer_v it_o to_o go_v unpunished_a for_o if_o thou_o be_v partaker_n of_o other_o man_n sin_n thou_o shall_v also_o partake_v with_o they_o in_o their_o punishment_n therefore_o 7._o therefore_o eph._n 5._o 6_o 7._o paul_n advise_v the_o ephesian_n not_o to_o be_v partaker_n with_o wicked_a man_n because_o the_o wrath_n of_o god_n come_v upon_o the_o child_n of_o disobedience_n for_o their_o sin_n god_n call_v his_o people_n out_o of_o babylon_n say_v 4_o say_v 1_o rev._n 18._o 4_o come_v out_o of_o she_o my_o people_n that_o you_o be_v not_o partaker_n of_o her_o sin_n and_o that_o you_o receive_v not_o of_o her_o plague_n but_o it_o be_v a_o bless_a thing_n to_o partake_v with_o the_o child_n of_o god_n in_o his_o holy_a ordinance_n in_o all_o holy_a duty_n 7._o duty_n 2_o cor._n 1._o 5_o 7._o and_o in_o the_o suffering_n of_o christ_n because_o we_o shall_v also_o partake_v with_o they_o in_o the_o consolation_n that_o be_v by_o christ_n thus_o the_o servant_n of_o god_n shall_v mutual_o join_v together_o in_o the_o worship_n and_o service_n of_o god_n that_o they_o may_v also_o mutual_o have_v the_o benefit_n and_o comfort_n of_o those_o service_n here_o and_o also_o partake_v together_o with_o they_o of_o the_o glory_n that_o afterward_o shall_v be_v reveal_v of_o the_o penitent_a thief_n now_o we_o come_v to_o consider_v that_o christ_n be_v crucify_v between_o two_o thief_n according_a to_o this_o of_o the_o prophet_n 12_o prophet_n isa_n 53._o 12_o he_o be_v number_v with_o the_o transgressor_n one_o of_o they_o have_v no_o remorse_n of_o conscience_n nor_o grief_n of_o heart_n for_o his_o offence_n but_o begin_v to_o rail_v upon_o christ_n to_o revile_v he_o and_o blasphemous_o to_o taunt_v he_o say_v 39_o say_v luk._n 23._o 39_o if_o thou_o be_v christ_n save_v thyself_o and_o we_o but_o the_o other_o be_v touch_v by_o the_o holy_a ghost_n with_o a_o godly_a sorrow_n and_o a_o relent_a heart_n for_o his_o sin_n and_o do_v free_o confess_v that_o they_o two_o do_v just_o and_o deserve_o suffer_v death_n for_o their_o offence_n but_o he_o do_v justify_v our_o belove_a saviour_n for_o his_o blameless_a innocency_n and_o he_o rebuke_v his_o fellow_n say_v fear_v thou_o not_o god_n see_v thou_o be_v in_o the_o same_o condemnation_n then_o he_o turn_v to_o christ_n to_o implore_v his_o mercy_n and_o make_v this_o short_a and_o sweet_a prayer_n to_o he_o lord_n remember_v i_o when_o thou_o shall_v come_v into_o thy_o kingdom_n to_o who_o christ_n immediate_o give_v this_o gracious_a answer_n very_o i_o say_v unto_o thou_o this_o day_n shall_v thou_o be_v with_o i_o in_o paradise_n sure_o these_o gracious_a word_n of_o christ_n do_v much_o mitigate_v and_o assuage_v the_o sorrow_n of_o his_o perplex_a mind_n and_o much_o ease_v the_o bitterness_n of_o his_o torment_n and_o this_o bless_a promise_n give_v he_o good_a assurance_n that_o after_o his_o present_a suffering_n and_o pain_n he_o shall_v enjoy_v rhe_n bless_a society_n of_o christ_n in_o the_o heavenly_a paradise_n for_o as_o faith_n wrought_v in_o his_o heart_n a_o true_a contrition_n to_o repentance_n and_o open_v his_o mouth_n to_o make_v a_o good_a confession_n of_o his_o sin_n and_o to_o vindicate_v the_o innocency_n of_o christ_n from_o the_o aspersion_n of_o his_o fellow_n malefactor_n and_o also_o to_o present_v his_o humble_a request_n unto_o christ_n his_o lord_n for_o some_o gracious_a remembrance_n of_o he_o so_o no_o doubt_n it_o seal_v such_o a_o holy_a assurance_n of_o future_a happiness_n to_o his_o sorrowful_a soul_n and_o wound_a conscience_n that_o he_o do_v steadfast_o believe_v the_o promise_n and_o faithful_o look_v for_o the_o performance_n of_o it_o whereby_o his_o faint_a spirit_n be_v much_o comfort_v and_o the_o cruel_a torturing_n of_o his_o body_n which_o he_o suffer_v be_v sanctify_v and_o sweeten_v to_o he_o here_o set_v the_o meditation_n of_o thy_o heart_n upon_o the_o free_a love_n and_o mercy_n of_o christ_n to_o poor_a sinner_n he_o choose_v who_o he_o will_v and_o who_o he_o will_v he_o refuse_v his_o gift_n of_o grace_n be_v free_a his_o love_n and_o favour_n be_v not_o necessitate_v to_o any_o 2d_o any_o gen._n 25._o 2d_o there_o be_v twin_n in_o reb●ccas_n womb_n 13._o womb_n rom._n 9_o 13._o god_n love_v the_o one_o and_o he_o hate_v the_o other_o two_o man_n may_v be_v in_o one_o bed_n god_n may_v take_v the_o one_o and_o he_o may_v leave_v the_o
resurrection_n whereof_o the_o earthly_a paradise_n be_v but_o a_o shadow_n 1._o shadow_n psal_n 16._o 1._o 1._o this_o bless_a place_n be_v in_o the_o presence_n of_o god_n where_o we_o shall_v have_v fullness_n of_o joy_n and_o it_o be_v at_o god_n right_a hand_n where_o there_o be_v pleasure_n for_o evermore_o 6._o evermore_o exod._n 34._o 6._o thus_o be_v christ_n abundant_a in_o goodness_n and_o in_o truth_n if_o we_o have_v but_o little_a comfort_n in_o this_o short_a time_n of_o our_o life_n yet_o when_o we_o come_v to_o the_o end_n of_o our_o day_n we_o shall_v have_v fullness_n of_o joy_n in_o the_o paradise_n of_o god_n together_o with_o christ_n our_o saviour_n for_o evermore_o wherefore_o though_o this_o life_n be_v full_a of_o vexation_n and_o trouble_n the_o meditation_n and_o hope_n of_o heavenly_a happiness_n which_o we_o shall_v hereafter_o enjoy_v to_o all_o eternity_n will_v sweeten_v the_o bitterness_n of_o all_o our_o momentany_a affliction_n and_o tribulation_n now_o comfort_n thyself_o o_o penitent_a sinner_n if_o thou_o be_v so_o cast_v down_o in_o the_o apprehension_n of_o thy_o sin_n that_o thou_o dare_v not_o come_v into_o the_o presence_n of_o god_n in_o regard_n of_o divine_a justice_n 13._o justice_n luk._n 18._o 13._o or_o lift_v up_o thy_o eye_n unto_o heaven_n with_o the_o poor_a publican_n to_o crave_v what_o thou_o want_v or_o desire_v because_o thou_o have_v just_o incur_v his_o high_a displeasure_n by_o thy_o manifold_a transgression_n yet_o be_v not_o dishearten_v faint_v not_o but_o come_v cheerful_o to_o christ_n with_o true_a faith_n and_o firm_a confidence_n to_o be_v receive_v for_o he_o will_v open_v a_o fountain_n to_o thou_o from_o whence_o all_o divine_a mercy_n flow_v and_o thou_o will_v find_v he_o always_o ready_a and_o willing_a to_o accept_v of_o thou_o make_v thy_o condition_n therefore_o true_o know_v unto_o he_o put_v up_o thy_o prayer_n and_o supplication_n to_o he_o and_o though_o thou_o desire_v but_o a_o drop_n of_o comfort_n yet_o he_o will_v give_v thou_o abundant_a consolation_n in_o what_o thou_o suffer_v and_o much_o more_o than_o thou_o desire_v by_o the_o example_n of_o this_o malefactor_n we_o may_v draw_v holy_a meditation_n upon_o the_o divine_a nature_n of_o true_a faith_n for_o our_o instruction_n and_o comfort_n for_o it_o look_v beyond_o the_o eye_n of_o reason_n and_o above_o the_o reach_n of_o nature_n it_o make_v we_o evident_o to_o apprehend_v that_o which_o our_o reason_n or_o natural_a capacity_n can_v show_v we_o and_o it_o will_v make_v we_o believe_v in_o hope_n even_o against_o hope_n that_o which_o be_v impossible_a to_o nature_n and_o incredible_a to_o humane_a reason_n this_o miserable_a sinner_n have_v no_o reason_n to_o believe_v in_o christ_n and_o to_o confide_v in_o he_o for_o his_o salvation_n for_o we_o do_v not_o read_v that_o ever_o he_o hear_v his_o preach_n or_o see_v any_o of_o his_o miracle_n but_o he_o see_v he_o now_o ready_a to_o die_v a_o ignominious_a and_o curse_a death_n upon_o the_o cross_n and_o he_o hear_v he_o thus_o revile_v 39_o revile_v mat._n 27._o 39_o if_o thou_o be_v the_o son_n of_o god_n come_v down_o from_o the_o cross_n also_o he_o hear_v he_o mock_v in_o this_o manner_n by_o the_o chief_a priest_n and_o elder_n he_o save_v other_o himself_o he_o can_v save_v if_o he_o be_v the_o king_n of_o israel_n let_v he_o come_v down_o from_o the_o cross_n and_o we_o will_v believe_v in_o he_o he_o trust_v in_o god_n let_v he_o deliver_v he_o now_o if_o he_o will_v have_v he_o for_o he_o say_v i_o be_o the_o son_n of_o god_n though_o these_o and_o the_o like_a blasphemous_a word_n be_v speak_v in_o derision_n against_o he_o which_o be_v sufficient_a in_o all_o reason_n to_o keep_v back_o this_o malefactor_n from_o trust_v in_o he_o yet_o the_o holy_a ghost_n do_v so_o work_v upon_o his_o heart_n that_o he_o do_v faithful_o believe_v that_o christ_n be_v the_o son_n of_o god_n that_o he_o be_v the_o king_n of_o israel_n that_o he_o have_v save_v other_o and_o therefore_o he_o can_v save_v he_o also_o which_o make_v he_o to_o apply_v himself_o to_o christ_n for_o comfort_n and_o for_o his_o salvation_n and_o in_o his_o address_n to_o he_o he_o come_v with_o all_o modesty_n and_o humble_a submission_n he_o give_v he_o all_o due_a honour_n and_o reverence_n as_o much_o as_o he_o be_v then_o able_a to_o express_v and_o then_o he_o make_v this_o humble_a suit_n and_o supplication_n to_o he_o and_o no_o soon_o be_v his_o request_n make_v but_o it_o be_v grant_v because_o christ_n do_v see_v truth_n and_o sincerity_n in_o his_o heart_n and_o integriry_a in_o his_o expression_n we_o may_v observe_v from_o hence_o for_o our_o instruction_n and_o consolation_n that_o the_o holy_a ghost_n can_v work_v the_o conversion_n of_o a_o sinner_n either_o without_o mean_n or_o by_o contrary_a mean_n he_o do_v sometime_o work_v very_o strange_o upon_o the_o will_n and_o upon_o the_o affection_n of_o the_o heart_n for_o christ_n be_v now_o preach_v by_o his_o deadly_a foe_n out_o of_o scorn_n and_o mockery_n 15_o mockery_n phil._n 1_o 15_o as_o there_o be_v some_o in_o paul_n time_n that_o do_v preach_v christ_n even_o of_o envy_n and_o strife_n other_o of_o love_n and_o good_a will_n yet_o the_o spirit_n of_o god_n do_v so_o enlighten_v the_o understanding_n of_o this_o sinful_a man_n and_o do_v so_o work_v upon_o his_o will_n and_o so_o season_v his_o heart_n with_o save_v grace_n that_o he_o receive_v holy_a instruction_n thereby_o and_o what_o the_o enemy_n of_o christ_n do_v speak_v in_o his_o disgrace_n he_o do_v apply_v it_o to_o himself_o to_o confirm_v he_o in_o the_o truth_n of_o his_o divinity_n which_o make_v he_o stick_v close_o to_o he_o by_o faith_n when_o he_o be_v in_o the_o low_a degree_n of_o his_o humiliation_n his_o faith_n make_v he_o rest_v upon_o christ_n and_o upon_o his_o promise_n above_o the_o strength_n of_o nature_n and_o contrary_a to_o all_o humane_a reason_n if_o he_o have_v see_v the_o glory_n of_o christ_n in_o his_o transfiguration_n upon_o mount_n tabor_n and_o if_o he_o have_v see_v some_o of_o his_o great_a miracle_n or_o have_v hear_v his_o divine_a doctrine_n and_o powerful_a preach_v his_o faith_n have_v not_o seem_v so_o great_a but_o now_o he_o do_v see_v he_o only_o upon_o mount_n calvary_n nail_v to_o his_o cross_n as_o the_o worst_a of_o malefactor_n be_v and_o reject_v of_o his_o own_o nation_n so_o that_o to_o the_o outward_a eye_n he_o appear_v nothing_o else_o but_o a_o pitiful_a spectacle_n of_o woeful_a misery_n and_o yet_o this_o penitent_a sinner_n do_v express_v a_o admirable_a faith_n in_o the_o pang_n of_o a_o cruel_a and_o violent_a death_n though_o his_o fault_n have_v be_v intolerable_a in_o his_o dissolute_a life_n for_o nothing_o but_o faith_n can_v move_v he_o to_o honour_n and_o reverence_n christ_n now_o he_o be_v in_o this_o sad_a condition_n and_o to_o sue_v unto_o he_o to_o be_v remember_v in_o his_o kingdom_n by_o the_o eye_n of_o his_o faith_n he_o do_v see_v in_o christ_n more_o than_o humane_a meekness_n and_o patience_n in_o his_o suffering_n undaunted_a courage_n above_o the_o strength_n of_o nature_n to_o go_v through_o with_o all_o constancy_n those_o torturing_n and_o torment_n which_o with_o all_o cruelty_n and_o malice_n be_v inflict_v upon_o he_o and_o he_o do_v see_v some_o glimpse_n of_o divine_a mercy_n in_o he_o when_o he_o hear_v he_o pray_v so_o gracious_o for_o his_o persecutor_n and_o tormentor_n and_o for_o those_o that_o put_v he_o to_o death_n in_o the_o last_o place_n ponder_v well_o in_o thy_o heart_n upon_o the_o merciful_a answer_n of_o christ_n to_o this_o penitent_a malefactor_n very_o i_o say_v unto_o thou_o to_o day_n thou_o shall_v be_v with_o i_o in_o paradise_n whereby_o he_o do_v show_v his_o power_n to_o forgive_v sin_n upon_o earth_n thus_o he_o say_v to_o the_o sick_a of_o the_o palsy_n 10._o palsy_n mar._n 2._o 5●_n 10._o son_n thy_o sin_n be_v forgive_v thou_o and_o hereby_o also_o he_o do_v show_v that_o he_o have_v power_n to_o dispose_v of_o heaven_n at_o his_o own_o pleasure_n 18._o pleasure_n mat._n 28._o 18._o for_o all_o power_n be_v give_v to_o he_o both_o in_o heaven_n and_o in_o earth_n therefore_o he_o do_v assure_v this_o petitioner_n that_o though_o his_o body_n do_v now_o suffer_v the_o torment_n of_o a_o cruel_a death_n yet_o his_o soul_n shall_v live_v and_o present_o enjoy_v a_o most_o happy_a and_o bless_a condition_n in_o the_o paradise_n of_o god_n and_o in_o the_o mansion_n of_o heaven_n to_o all_o eternity_n which_o place_n 2._o place_n john_n 14._o 2._o christ_n have_v prepare_v for_o his_o servant_n we_o shall_v meet_v with_o labour_n and_o toil_n trouble_n and_o cross_n in_o this_o
life_n which_o do_v embitter_v all_o our_o comfort_n here_o but_o when_o we_o shall_v enjoy_v this_o heavenly_a paradise_n 13._o paradise_n rev._n 14._o 13._o the_o spirit_n say_v that_o we_o shall_v rest_v from_o our_o labour_n and_o we_o shall_v feel_v no_o more_o sorrow_n our_o body_n shall_v sleep_v in_o the_o dust_n until_o the_o general_a resurrection_n but_o our_o soul_n shall_v rest_v in_o joy_n and_o happiness_n for_o evermore_o though_o we_o live_v a_o restless_a and_o uncomfortable_a life_n in_o this_o world_n it_o will_v be_v but_o for_o a_o short_a time_n but_o in_o the_o world_n to_o come_v we_o shall_v have_v fullness_n of_o joy_n and_o felicity_n with_o christ_n and_o with_o his_o holy_a angel_n and_o bless_a saint●_n in_o heaven_n which_o never_o shall_v have_v a_o end_n consider_v also_o that_o christ_n do_v present_o grant_v his_o request_n and_o do_v sudden_o perform_v his_o promise_n for_o god_n do_v sometime_o answer_v the_o desire_n of_o our_o heart_n before_o we_o speak_v and_o he_o will_v give_v what_o we_o need_v before_o we_o ask_v when_o daniel_n pray_v for_o the_o restauration_n of_o jerusalem_n god_n answer_v he_o before_o he_o have_v make_v a_o end_n of_o his_o prayer_n 21_o prayer_n dan._n 9_o 21_o and_o cause_v his_o angel_n gabriel_n to_o fly_v swift_o to_o touch_v he_o and_o to_o inform_v he_o of_o the_o time_n when_o jerusasalem_n shall_v be_v restore_v but_o sometime_o it_o be_v long_o before_o we_o have_v a_o return_n of_o our_o prayer_n because_o god_n will_v try_v our_o patience_n and_o constancy_n in_o wait_v his_o good_a pleasure_n and_o by_o his_o delay_n to_o make_v we_o more_o fervent_a in_o our_o supplication_n for_o he_o love_v a_o holy_a importunity_n 12._o importunity_n 1_o sam._n 1._o 12._o hannah_n continue_v long_o before_o the_o lord_n in_o pray_v for_o a_o child_n before_o she_o obtain_v her_o request_n also_o god_n do_v sometime_o long_o delay_v the_o performance_n of_o his_o promise_n to_o try_v our_o faith_n and_o confidence_n in_o he_o as_o he_o do_v to_o abraham_n for_o diverse_a year_n before_o he_o give_v he_o a_o child_n by_o sarah_n his_o wife_n and_o also_o before_o he_o deliver_v his_o people_n out_o of_o egypt_n wherefore_o faint_v not_o in_o thy_o prayer_n for_o what_o thou_o desire_v neither_o be_v weak_a in_o faith_n if_o thou_o have_v a_o promise_n from_o god_n but_o rest_n upon_o it_o with_o a_o assure_a hope_n for_o he_o will_v choose_v the_o fit_a time_n to_o answer_v th●_n prayer_n and_o to_o perform_v his_o promise_n which_o may_v most_o advance_v his_o own_o glory_n and_o be_v best_a for_o thy_o good_a of_o the_o virgin_n mary_n now_o do_v the_o sorrow_n of_o this_o bless_a virgin_n begin_v when_o she_o see_v she_o dear_o belove_a son_n in_o this_o lamentable_a condition_n upon_o the_o cross_n and_o hear_v the_o blasphemy_n and_o reproach_n both_o of_o the_o jew_n and_o gentile_n she_o see_v how_o the_o barbarous_a people_n do_v insult_v over_o he_o and_o what_o cruel_a torman_n be_v inflict_v upon_o every_o part_n of_o his_o body_n and_o that_o he_o be_v now_o ready_a in_o this_o extremity_n of_o misery_n to_o give_v up_o the_o ghost_n 35._o ghost_n luk._n 2._o 34._o 35._o now_o be_v old_a simeon_n prophesy_v fulfil_v now_o do_v a_o sword_n pierce_v through_o her_o soul_n 14._o soul_n isa_n 8._o 14._o he_o be_v now_o set_v for_o the_o fall_n and_o rise_v again_o of_o many_o in_o israel_n and_o for_o a_o sign_n which_o shall_v be_v speak_v against_o if_o christ_n have_v not_o strengthen_v her_o faith_n she_o have_v be_v swallow_v up_o of_o too_o much_o grief_n and_o sorrow_n for_o her_o tender_a heart_n can_v not_o indu●e_v to_o see_v the_o barbarous_a inhumanity_n and_o savage_a cruelty_n that_o her_o dear_a son_n suffer_v who_o she_o know_v to_o be_v innocent_a and_o just_a and_o free_a from_o any_o offence_n for_o no_o doubt_n christ_n have_v former_o reveal_v to_o she_o 34._o she_o mar._n 10._o 33_o 34._o as_o he_o do_v to_o his_o disciple_n both_o by_o his_o word_n and_o by_o his_o spirit_n what_o he_o shall_v suffer_v at_o jerusalem_n and_o it_o be_v so_o decree_v by_o god_n his_o father_n for_o the_o redemption_n of_o man_n that_o their_o faith_n and_o confidence_n in_o he_o may_v be_v strengthen_v also_o that_o god_n send_v he_o into_o the_o world_n for_o this_o very_a end_n and_o purpose_n that_o he_o may_v work_v the_o salvation_n of_o all_o his_o elect_n by_o his_o death_n and_o that_o the_o holy_a virgin_n may_v be_v the_o better_o arm_v to_o bear_v her_o great_a affliction_n at_o this_o time_n she_o know_v he_o to_o be_v the_o eternal_a son_n of_o the_o live_a god_n though_o he_o be_v clothe_v with_o her_o flesh_n and_o therefore_o he_o be_v able_a to_o bear_v whatsoewer_n shall_v be_v inflict_v upon_o he_o and_o that_o he_o shall_v suffer_v no_o more_o than_o what_o be_v decree_v in_o the_o secret_a counsel_n of_o god_n she_o be_v also_o full_o persuade_v that_o though_o they_o do_v kill_v he_o yet_o he_o will_v rise_v again_o the_o three_o day_n according_a to_o his_o own_o word_n in_o conquest_n and_o triumph_n over_o all_o his_o enemy_n maugre_o all_o their_o power_n and_o policy_n to_o prevent_v i●_n the_o bless_a virgin_n do_v ponder_v these_o thing_n in_o her_o mind_n she_o lay_v they_o up_o in_o her_o heart_n and_o do_v faithful_o believe_v they_o which_o do_v much_o sweeten_v her_o sorrow_n and_o mitigate_v the_o anguish_n of_o her_o soul_n and_o hereby_o she_o do_v bear_v her_o affliction_n with_o the_o more_o content_a patience_n thus_o will_v christ_n arm_v his_o servant_n with_o christian_a fortitude_n and_o will_v furnish_v they_o with_o spiritual_a ability_n when_o they_o be_v to_o encounter_v with_o any_o hard_a trial_n and_o he_o will_v give_v they_o heavenly_a comfort_n for_o their_o encouragement_n when_o they_o suffer_v any_o sorrow_n or_o affliction_n for_o his_o sake_n for_o they_o be_v all_o as_o dear_a unto_o he_o as_o his_o mother_n be_v wherefore_o if_o we_o be_v in_o any_o distress_n or_o put_v upon_o any_o service_n which_o be_v above_o the_o strength_n of_o nature_n we_o must_v look_v upon_o the_o almighty_a power_n of_o christ_n with_o the_o eye_n of_o faith_n as_o he_o be_v god_n as_o well_o as_o man_n and_o upon_o his_o goodness_n and_o tender_a love_n to_o all_o his_o servant_n and_o also_o upon_o god_n eternal_a decree_n and_o wise_a providence_n that_o nothing_o can_v be_v impose_v upon_o we_o but_o what_o be_v preordain_v &_o foresee_v by_o god_n himself_o for_o his_o own_o glory_n and_o then_o christ_n our_o bless_a redeemer_n will_v fit_v we_o for_o it_o and_o if_o it_o be_v too_o hard_a for_o we_o to_o undergo_v he_o will_v direct_v and_o assist_v we_o with_o his_o spirit_n in_o it_o also_o if_o the_o burden_n be_v too_o heavy_a for_o our_o strength_n to_o bear_v he_o will_v either_o lessen_v the_o burden_n or_o increase_v our_o strength_n or_o else_o he_o will_v act_v the_o part_n of_o the_o cyrenian_a and_o take_v it_o off_o from_o we_o in_o his_o good_a time_n the_o best_a of_o god_n servant_n can_v claim_v no_o privilege_n from_o cross_n sorrow_n and_o affliction_n in_o this_o life_n for_o they_o must_v pass_v through_o many_o tribulation_n before_o they_o come_v to_o their_o eternal_a rest_n in_o heaven_n god_n have_v many_o gracious_a end_n in_o suffer_v his_o servant_n to_o be_v tempt_v to_o be_v try_v to_o be_v buffet_v and_o afflict_v and_o whatsoever_o the_o instrument_n which_o he_o use_v do_v intend_v against_o they_o yet_o he_o will_v frustrate_v their_o wicked_a design_n and_o will_v effect_v his_o own_o work_n for_o his_o own_o glory_n and_o for_o their_o good_a 9_o good_a ●_o cor._n 12_o ●_o ●_o 9_o paul_n have_v his_o temptation_n and_o his_o buffet_n by_o the_o messenger_n of_o satan_n to_o keep_v he_o from_o spiritual_a pride_n through_o the_o abundance_n of_o revelation_n and_o to_o manifest_v the_o power_n of_o god_n in_o his_o weakness_n and_o the_o grace_n and_o favour_n of_o christ_n in_o sustain_v he_o in_o his_o suffering_n how_o strange_o be_v abraham_n faith_n and_o job_n patience_n try_v how_o be_v god_n glorify_v thereby_o and_o how_o be_v they_o reward_v for_o their_o obedience_n and_o constancy_n what_o affliction_n do_v the_o israelite_n suffer_v in_o the_o wilderness_n and_o yet_o they_o be_v but_o the_o correction_n of_o a_o love_a father_n to_o a_o stiffnecked_a son_n for_o thus_o say_v moses_n to_o they_o 5_o they_o deut._n 8._o 5_o thou_o shall_v also_o consider_v in_o thy_o heart_n that_o as_o a_o man_n chasten_v his_o son_n so_o the_o lord_n thy_o god_n chasten_v thou_o holy_a david_n do_v often_o feel_v the_o smart_n of_o god_n rod_n and_o he_o find_v much_o good_a and_o comfort_n by_o it_o 6●_n it_o psal_n 119
darken_n of_o the_o sun_n be_v also_o a_o evident_a sign_n to_o the_o jew_n of_o their_o unbelief_n and_o to_o show_v the_o blindness_n of_o their_o understanding_n the_o obstinacy_n of_o their_o will_n and_o that_o they_o be_v give_v up_o to_o a_o reprobate_a mind_n as_o a_o just_a judgement_n of_o god_n for_o their_o unbelief_n and_o for_o this_o their_o loud_a cry_a sin_n in_o which_o sad_a condition_n they_o continue_v even_o to_o this_o day_n 14._o day_n 2_o cor._n 3._o 13_o 14._o for_o their_o mind_n be_v blind_v and_o in_o the_o read_n of_o the_o old_a testament_n there_o be_v a_o vail_n upon_o their_o heart_n so_o that_o they_o can_v not_o steadfast_o look_v to_o the_o end_n of_o that_o which_o be_v abolish_v which_o vail_n be_v not_o yet_o take_v away_o from_o they_o this_o be_v typify_v by_o that_o vail_n which_o moses_n put_v over_o his_o face_n when_o he_o be_v come_v down_o from_o the_o mount_n and_o from_o 33._o ●_o exod._n 34._o 33._o the_o presence_n of_o god_n in_o the_o day_n of_o samuel_n god_n do_v show_v a_o manifest_a token_n of_o his_o high_a displeasure_n against_o his_o people_n for_o their_o great_a sin_n 17._o sin_n 1_o sam._n 12._o 17._o when_o he_o send_v thunder_n and_o rain_n in_o the_o time_n of_o wheat_n harvest_n to_o let_v they_o know_v that_o their_o wickedness_n be_v great_a in_o the_o sight_n of_o the_o lord_n in_o ask_v they_o a_o king_n 7._o king_n 2_o sam._n 8._o 7._o because_o they_o have_v reject_v the_o lord_n that_o he_o shall_v not_o reign_v over_o they_o god_n will_v set_v his_o mark_n upon_o obstinate_a and_o rebellious_a sinner_n that_o will_v not_o be_v reclaim_v and_o turn_v to_o the_o lord_n as_o he_o do_v upon_o cain_n and_o other_o to_o brand_v they_o with_o perpetual_a infamy_n and_o shame_n for_o their_o impenitency_n god_n have_v also_o several_a judgement_n for_o wicked_a man_n as_o we_o may_v see_v by_o daily_a experience_n in_o these_o sinful_a time_n some_o he_o mark_n for_o the_o sword_n some_o for_o famine_n other_o for_o the_o pestilence_n sudden_a death_n or_o the_o like_a upon_o whosoever_o his_o mark_n be_v set_v there_o the_o judgement_n will_v fall_v god_n have_v likewise_o his_o mark_n of_o preservation_n which_o he_o will_v set_v upon_o his_o own_o servant_n in_o time_n of_o mortality_n or_o of_o any_o other_o common_a calamity_n 4._o calamity_n zech._n 9_o 4._o for_o when_o he_o send_v forth_o his_o destroy_a angel_n in_o a_o general_a calamity_n to_o destroy_v thousand_o he_o will_v also_o in_o much_o mercy_n send_v forth_o another_o angel_n to_o mark_n and_o seal_v those_o in_o their_o forehead_n who_o be_v to_o be_v preserve_v that_o whatsoever_o the_o calamity_n be_v it_o may_v not_o hurt_v they_o consider_v now_o how_o uncomfortable_a it_o be_v to_o want_v the_o light_n of_o the_o sun_n and_o what_o little_a joy_n we_o can_v take_v in_o this_o life_n if_o we_o want_v the_o light_n of_o our_o eye_n and_o then_o we_o shall_v see_v that_o it_o be_v much_o more_o uncomfortable_a to_o want_v the_o spiritual_a light_n of_o our_o understanding_n thus_o say_v christ_n 23._o christ_n mat._n 6._o 22_o 23._o the_o light_n of_o the_o body_n be_v the_o eye_n if_o therefore_o thy_o eye_n be_v single_a thy_o whole_a body_n shall_v be_v full_a of_o light_n but_o if_o thy_o eye_n be_v evil_a thy_o whole_a body_n shall_v be_v full_a of_o darkness_n if_o therefore_o the_o light_n that_o be_v in_o thou_o be_v darkness_n how_o great_a be_v that_o darkness_n wherefore_o if_o the_o sun_n of_o righteousness_n do_v not_o shine_v upon_o we_o to_o give_v light_n to_o our_o understanding_n if_o he_o do_v not_o heal_v the_o perverseness_n of_o our_o will_n and_o the_o sinfulness_n of_o our_o affection_n we_o shall_v walk_v in_o darkness_n and_o in_o the_o shadow_n of_o death_n for_o we_o shall_v be_v without_o a_o guide_n to_o keep_v we_o from_o stumble_v and_o fall_v dangerous_o into_o gross_a sin_n wherein_o if_o we_o continue_v without_o repentance_n we_o may_v just_o fear_v some_o judgement_n of_o god_n to_o fall_v on_o we_o or_o some_o manifest_a sign_n of_o his_o indignation_n to_o be_v show_v upon_o we_o for_o our_o sin_n we_o shall_v therefore_o learn_v this_o heavenly_a wisdom_n to_o break_v off_o from_o our_o sin_n to_o day_n by_o true_a repentance_n &_o turn_v to_o the_o lord_n lest_o we_o be_v mark_v for_o destruction_n too_o morrow_n and_o we_o shall_v make_v our_o peace_n with_o god_n by_o faith_n in_o christ_n that_o we_o may_v be_v mark_v with_o the_o seal_n of_o redemption_n which_o christ_n will_v stamp_v upon_o every_o true_a believer_n heart_n for_o their_o preservation_n from_o evil_a in_o this_o life_n and_o for_o their_o eternal_a felicity_n in_o the_o life_n to_o come_v consider_v yet_o further_o how_o the_o sun_n in_o the_o firmament_n do_v mourn_v to_o see_v the_o king_n of_o glory_n thus_o abase_v to_o see_v the_o ignominy_n and_o disgrace_n that_o be_v cast_v upon_o he_o how_o cruel_o he_o be_v use_v and_o how_o unjust_o he_o be_v put_v to_o death_n this_o shall_v teach_v we_o to_o mourn_v for_o the_o calamity_n of_o the_o church_n of_o god_n &_o for_o the_o loss_n of_o any_o pillar_n in_o that_o spiritual_a building_n we_o have_v many_o example_n of_o the_o servant_n of_o god_n for_o this_o pious_a duty_n jeremiah_n ezrah_n nehemiah_n and_o other_o mourn_v and_o lament_v great_o for_o the_o first_o desolation_n of_o jerusalem_n and_o of_o the_o temple_n 43._o temple_n luk._n 19_o 41_o 42_o 43._o christ_n himself_o weep_v over_o jerusalem_n when_o he_o behold_v it_o because_o he_o know_v the_o final_a destruction_n that_o shall_v short_o after_o come_v upon_o it_o when_o elisha_n 14._o l_o 2_o king_n 13._o 14._o the_o prophet_n be_v fall_v sick_a of_o the_o sickness_n whereof_o he_o die_v joash_n the_o king_n of_o israel_n come_v down_o unto_o he_o and_o weep_v over_o his_o face_n and_o say_v o_o my_o father_n my_o father_n the_o chariot_n of_o israel_n and_o the_o horseman_n thereof_o this_o be_v a_o full_a expression_n of_o the_o grief_n and_o sorrow_n of_o his_o heart_n for_o the_o loss_n of_o so_o great_a a_o prophet_n who_o be_v a_o strong_a pillar_n in_o the_o house_n of_o israel_n consider_v also_o that_o if_o there_o be_v no_o mourning_n and_o no_o tear_n for_o the_o sin_n of_o a_o nation_n or_o people_n god_n will_v make_v the_o heaven_n to_o mourn_v and_o the_o cloud_n to_o pour_v down_o river_n of_o tear_n to_o teach_v we_o what_o we_o shall_v do_v when_o the_o land_n be_v overgrow_v with_o the_o weed_n of_o sin_n if_o it_o be_v so_o that_o the_o servant_n of_o god_n do_v mourn_v for_o the_o misery_n that_o his_o church_n do_v suffer_v and_o for_o the_o loss_n or_o pull_v down_o of_o any_o polish_a stone_n in_o that_o heavenly_a build_n than_o who_o servant_n be_v they_o and_o what_o master_n do_v they_o serve_v that_o dismember_v the_o mystical_a body_n of_o christ_n that_o pull_v down_o any_o pillar_n of_o his_o church_n or_o pull_v any_o polish_a stone_n out_o of_o his_o spiritual_a temple_n whereby_o it_o may_v be_v in_o danger_n of_o ruin_n or_o to_o fall_v to_o decay_v also_o they_o be_v in_o a_o sad_a condition_n that_o pollute_v deface_v or_o throw_v down_o his_o material_a temple_n to_o the_o dishonour_n of_o his_o name_n to_o the_o suppress_n of_o his_o true_a worship_n and_o service_n and_o to_o bring_v in_o sect_n and_o schism_n profaneness_n and_o superstition_n god_n will_v not_o suffer_v such_o instrument_n of_o wickedness_n to_o go_v unpunished_a but_o in_o his_o due_a time_n he_o will_v make_v they_o example_n of_o his_o fury_n if_o they_o do_v not_o sincere_o repent_v of_o their_o cry_a sin_n and_o curse_a abomination_n by_o this_o strange_a darkness_n of_o the_o sun_n we_o may_v also_o learn_v how_o uncomfortable_a it_o be_v to_o a_o child_n of_o god_n to_o have_v the_o light_n of_o his_o countenance_n cloud_v from_o he_o 7_o he_o psal_n 30._o 7_o david_n be_v much_o trouble_v when_o god_n do_v hide_v his_o face_n from_o he_o how_o be_v christ_n himself_o perplex_v in_o his_o soul_n when_o the_o light_n of_o god_n countenance_n be_v withdraw_v from_o he_o it_o make_v he_o cry_v out_o in_o the_o bitterness_n of_o his_o spirit_n my_o god_n my_o god_n why_o have_v thou_o forsake_v i_o as_o it_o be_v the_o great_a blessedness_n to_o ●njoy_v the_o favour_n of_o god_n so_o it_o be_v most_o uncomfortable_a when_o we_o have_v no_o apprehension_n of_o it_o thus_o say_v david_n of_o himself_o 6_o himself_o psal_n 21._o 6_o thou_o haste_v make_v he_o exceed_v glad_a with_o thy_o countenance_n also_o thus_o he_o pray_v 6._o pray_v psal_n 4._o 6._o lord_n lift_v thou_o up_o the_o light_n of_o thy_o countenance_n upon_o we_o it_o do_v likewise_o teach_v we_o
a_o spiritual_a manner_n because_o christ_n will_v draw_v he_o to_o himself_o by_o his_o spirit_n thus_o be_v christ_n also_o present_a with_o we_o by_o his_o grace_n and_o holy_a spirit_n to_o assist_v and_o support_v we_o to_o teach_v and_o instruct_v we_o in_o what_o condition_n soever_o we_o be_v there_o be_v the_o same_o relation_n by_o faith_n between_o christ_n and_o we_o as_o be_v between_o the_o head_n and_o the_o member_n and_o we_o shall_v enjoy_v the_o comfort_n of_o this_o bless_a relation_n by_o our_o heavenly_a meditation_n of_o he_o for_o then_o by_o his_o spirit_n he_o be_v present_a with_o we_o to_o teach_v we_o some_o heavenly_a instruction_n for_o our_o edification_n which_o we_o ought_v careful_o to_o practice_n that_o he_o may_v be_v honour_v thereby_o there_o be_v no_o time_n or_o place_n but_o we_o may_v take_v occasion_n to_o meditate_v something_o on_o christ_n for_o the_o good_a and_o comfort_n of_o our_o soul_n either_o as_o he_o be_v our_o mediator_n and_o redeemer_n or_o as_o he_o be_v our_o prophet_n to_o teach_v and_o instruct_v we_o our_o high_a priest_n to_o present_v our_o prayer_n and_o oblation_n to_o god_n or_o our_o king_n to_o rule_v and_o govern_v we_o by_o his_o spirit_n if_o we_o meditate_v upon_o his_o passion_n upon_o his_o death_n and_o burial_n he_o will_v show_v we_o how_o low_o he_o do_v humble_v himself_o to_o advance_v we_o and_o it_o will_v much_o comfort_v we_o in_o our_o affliction_n and_o sorrow_n and_o also_o it_o will_v fit_v and_o prepare_v we_o for_o death_n and_o for_o the_o grave_n that_o we_o may_v as_o willing_o lie_v down_o in_o the_o grave_n where_o we_o shall_v rest_v in_o peace_n as_o we_o take_v our_o rest_n and_o sleep_v in_o our_o bed_n by_o these_o and_o the_o like_a meditation_n of_o christ_n we_o shall_v enjoy_v his_o sacred_a society_n by_o his_o spirit_n and_o he_o will_v make_v we_o feel_v true_a consolation_n thereby_o but_o if_o we_o meditate_v upon_o the_o exhortation_n of_o christ_n we_o must_v raise_v our_o affection_n up_o to_o the_o high_a heaven_n for_o there_o he_o sit_v at_o the_o right_a hand_n of_o god_n above_o all_o principality_n and_o power_n and_o then_o he_o will_v show_v we_o how_o victorious_o he_o triumph_v over_o all_o his_o enemy_n and_o that_o he_o have_v subdue_v all_o the_o enemy_n of_o our_o salvation_n to_o teach_v we_o to_o fear_v and_o reverence_v his_o sacred_a majesty_n to_o perform_v all_o dutiful_a obedience_n to_o his_o command_n and_o to_o submit_v to_o his_o rule_n and_o government_n and_o because_o he_o be_v our_o advocate_n with_o the_o father_n we_o may_v come_v bold_o to_o he_o in_o all_o our_o want_n trouble_n and_o necessity_n also_o faithful_a prayer_n be_v another_o special_a mean_n to_o enjoy_v the_o comfort_n of_o this_o happy_a relation_n and_o communion_n which_o we_o have_v with_o our_o saviour_n christ_n in_o all_o condition_n of_o life_n and_o upon_o all_o occasion_n whatsoever_o to_o give_v we_o comfort_v in_o all_o our_o distress_n strength_n of_o grace_n against_o temptation_n protection_n in_o all_o danger_n and_o deliverance_n out_o of_o all_o trouble_n if_o our_o prayer_n proceed_v from_o a_o faithful_a heart_n they_o can_v return_v without_o a_o blessing_n for_o they_o will_v open_v christ_n rich_a treasury_n and_o whatsoever_o be_v there_o we_o shall_v have_v so_o much_o of_o it_o as_o be_v good_a for_o we_o this_o kind_n of_o prayer_n will_v yet_o reach_v high_o for_o it_o will_v so_o prevail_v with_o christ_n that_o he_o will_v open_v his_o heart_n to_o we_o and_o conceal_v nothing_o from_o we_o that_o may_v conduce_v to_o a_o holy_a and_o sanctify_a life_n here_o and_o to_o the_o enjoyment_n of_o eternal_a blessedness_n hereafter_o if_o we_o daily_o converse_v thus_o with_o christ_n in_o our_o meditation_n and_o prayer_n we_o shall_v have_v our_o conversation_n with_o he_o in_o heaven_n though_o we_o live_v in_o a_o vale_n of_o misery_n here_o upon_o earth_n now_o then_o examine_v thyself_o what_o communion_n thou_o have_v have_v with_o thy_o dear_a saviour_n have_v he_o walk_v with_o thou_o in_o the_o field_n as_o he_o do_v with_o isaac_n in_o his_o meditation_n have_v he_o travel_v with_o thou_o in_o the_o way_n as_o he_o do_v with_o the_o two_o disciple_n as_o they_o go_v to_o emmaus_n go_v he_o into_o a_o strange_a land_n as_o he_o do_v with_o joseph_n into_o egypt_n or_o be_v he_o in_o prison_n with_o thou_o as_o he_o be_v with_o he_o and_o with_o the_o apostle_n have_v thou_o have_v his_o company_n in_o thy_o bedchamber_n or_o in_o thy_o closet_n as_o david_n have_v be_v he_o in_o the_o dungeon_n with_o thou_o as_o he_o be_v with_o the_o jeremiah_n have_v thou_o have_v his_o company_n when_o thou_o have_v be_v among_o spoiler_n as_o daniel_n have_v among_o the_o lion_n and_o as_o paul_n have_v when_o he_o be_v in_o the_o lion_n mouth_n and_o have_v he_o be_v with_o thou_o upon_o thy_o sickbed_n as_o he_o be_v with_o hezekiah_n then_o sure_o thou_o have_v receive_v some_o blessing_n from_o he_o than_o thou_o have_v learn_v holy_a instruction_n of_o he_o how_o to_o bear_v thy_o cross_n without_o murmur_v and_o how_o to_o endure_v thy_o suffering_n with_o meekness_n of_o spirit_n then_o also_o thou_o have_v learn_v how_o to_o pray_v zealous_o how_o to_o live_v pious_o how_o to_o fix_v thy_o trust_n and_o confidence_n on_o he_o and_o how_o to_o set_v thy_o affection_n upon_o he_o by_o the_o plentiful_a experience_n which_o thou_o have_v have_v of_o his_o goodness_n to_o thou_o that_o so_o thou_o may_v die_v in_o his_o love_n and_o favour_n examine_v thyself_o also_o what_o sin_n thou_o have_v kill_v and_o bury_v for_o if_o thou_o do_v leave_v thy_o sin_n because_o thou_o have_v not_o ability_n to_o continue_v still_o in_o they_o thy_o sin_n do_v leave_v thou_o but_o thou_o do_v not_o leave_v they_o and_o they_o be_v not_o bury_v with_o christ_n in_o his_o sepulchre_n for_o thou_o retaine_v still_o the_o remembrance_n of_o they_o with_o delight_n and_o approbation_n and_o if_o thou_o have_v ability_n and_o opportunity_n thou_o will_v be_v as_o vicious_a still_o as_o ever_o thou_o be_v before_o for_o unless_o faith_n have_v seal_v thy_o union_n with_o christ_n thou_o can_v have_v no_o power_n from_o his_o death_n to_o mortify_v thy_o corruption_n or_o to_o bury_v thy_o sin_n with_o he_o neither_o can_v thou_o live_v unto_o righteousness_n and_o true_a holiness_n consider_v in_o the_o last_o place_n what_o subtle_a policy_n be_v use_v to_o make_v the_o sepulchre_n sure_a that_o the_o body_n of_o christ_n may_v not_o be_v steal_v away_o and_o to_o prevent_v his_o resurrection_n from_o the_o dead_a for_o they_o seal_v the_o stone_n and_o set_v a_o watch_n about_o the_o sepulchre_n but_o god_n do_v hereby_o make_v the_o truth_n of_o his_o resurrection_n the_o more_o evident_a to_o the_o great_a comfort_n of_o his_o child_n and_o servant_n but_o to_o the_o perpetual_a shame_n and_o confusion_n of_o his_o enemy_n and_o of_o such_o as_o will_v not_o believe_v it_o for_o god_n decree_n must_v stand_v and_o nothing_o can_v prevail_v to_o frustrate_v his_o determinate_a council_n whatsoever_o wicked_a man_n do_v vain_o imagine_v or_o contrive_v god_n will_v bring_v to_o pass_v what_o he_o have_v decree_v for_o his_o own_o glory_n this_o be_v great_a comfort_n to_o the_o servant_n of_o god_n that_o be_v under_o tyrannical_a pressure_n and_o can_v see_v no_o mean_n how_o to_o be_v deliver_v out_o of_o their_o slavery_n for_o god_n will_v bring_v about_o his_o own_o purpose_n and_o will_v be_v honour_v in_o their_o deliverance_n to_o the_o shame_n and_o rebuke_v of_o all_o their_o enemy_n consider_v also_o that_o those_o malicious_a jew_n can_v not_o but_o be_v convince_v in_o their_o conscience_n that_o christ_n be_v the_o son_n of_o god_n by_o those_o strange_a wonder_n which_o they_o see_v at_o his_o death_n and_o yet_o they_o still_o spit_v out_o their_o blasphemy_n against_o he_o though_o he_o be_v dead_a and_o in_o the_o presence_n of_o pilate_n they_o term_v he_o a_o deceiver_n thus_o it_o be_v with_o wicked_a man_n when_o they_o be_v give_v up_o to_o a_o reprobate_a mind_n for_o there_o be_v no_o end_n of_o their_o wickedness_n against_o god_n and_o no_o end_n of_o their_o malicious_a and_o mischievous_a practice_n against_o his_o servant_n and_o against_o all_o that_o profess_v his_o name_n a_o brief_a sum_n of_o the_o humiliation_n of_o christ_n christ_n be_v in_o the_o bosom_n of_o the_o father_n from_o eternity_n where_o he_o be_v clothe_v with_o fullness_n of_o majesty_n and_o glory_n in_o the_o high_a heaven_n and_o have_v the_o dominion_n and_o power_n over_o all_o thing_n both_o in_o heaven_n and_o in_o earth_n but_o when_o he_o be_v to_o undertake_v the_o work_n of_o our_o redemption_n
which_o be_v determine_v by_o all_o the_o three_o person_n in_o the_o holy_a trinity_n before_o the_o world_n be_v he_o lay_v aside_o his_o glory_n and_o humble_v himself_o for_o that_o great_a work_n which_o be_v decree_v in_o the_o secret_a counsel_n of_o god_n and_o to_o be_v wrought_v at_o his_o appoint_a time_n the_o first_o degree_n of_o christ_n humiliation_n be_v that_o he_o give_v away_o the_o manifestation_n of_o glory_n of_o his_o deity_n which_o he_o have_v with_o the_o father_n in_o heaven_n which_o be_v his_o due_n from_o his_o first_o incarnation_n the_o bright_a beam_n whereof_o be_v cloud_v with_o his_o humanity_n for_o he_o take_v upon_o himself_o our_o flesh_n and_o be_v clothe_v with_o our_o weak_a and_o frail_a nature_n and_o be_v subject_a to_o such_o humane_a passion_n and_o infirmity_n as_o may_v be_v without_o sin_n this_o be_v a_o great_a degree_n of_o humiliation_n for_o the_o eternal_a king_n of_o glory_n to_o leave_v his_o glorious_a mansion_n in_o heaven_n and_o to_o come_v down_o and_o be_v with_o we_o man_n here_o upon_o earth_n and_o to_o take_v up_o his_o habitation_n in_o a_o earthly_a tabernacle_n which_o be_v subject_a to_o hunger_n thirst_n and_o heat_n and_o cold_a to_o pain_n torment_n and_o death_n itself_o the_o second_o degree_n of_o his_o humiliation_n be_v that_o he_o take_v upon_o himself_o the_o guilt_n of_o our_o sin_n and_o do_v undertake_v to_o fulfil_v the_o whole_a righteousness_n of_o the_o law_n for_o we_o and_o to_o satisfy_v the_o justice_n of_o god_n for_o all_o the_o sin_n of_o his_o elect_n not_o that_o his_o humane_a nature_n be_v pollute_v or_o stain_v with_o any_o sin_n for_o the_o holy_a ghost_n do_v so_o sanctify_v the_o virgin_n womb_n that_o he_o be_v conceive_v and_o bear_v without_o original_a sin_n and_o he_o live_v without_o any_o actual_a transgression_n but_o our_o sin_n be_v impute_v to_o he_o and_o therefore_o as_o the_o apostle_n say_v 13_o say_v gal._n 3._o 13_o he_o be_v make_v a_o curse_n for_o we_o also_o 14._o also_o tit._n 2._o 14._o christ_n give_v himself_o for_o we_o that_o he_o may_v redeem_v we_o from_o all_o iniquity_n and_o purify_v unto_o himself_o a_o peculiar_a people_n zealous_a of_o good_a work_n he_o give_v his_o body_n and_o all_o the_o part_n of_o it_o to_o the_o persecutor_n &_o tormentor_n he_o give_v his_o blood_n to_o be_v spill_v and_o his_o life_n for_o the_o redemption_n of_o man_n he_o give_v his_o soul_n to_o suffer_v anguish_n and_o sorrow_n 10._o sorrow_n ●sa_fw-la 53._o 10._o and_o to_o be_v a●_n of_o fere_v for_o sin_n also_o in_o some_o sort_n he_o give_v his_o deity_n by_o suffer_v most_o horrible_a blasphemy_n that_o be_v cast_v upon_o he_o 28._o he_o act_n 20._o 28._o and_o god_n purchase_v to_o himself_o a_o church_n with_o his_o own_o blood_n this_o be_v a_o very_a low_a abasement_n of_o christ_n when_o he_o leave_v all_o his_o glory_n in_o heaven_n and_o come_v down_o to_o live_v here_o upon_o earth_n not_o in_o the_o nature_n of_o angel_n but_o he_o clothe_v himself_o with_o our_o flesh_n which_o be_v all_o stain_a and_o defile_v with_o the_o guilt_n of_o our_o sin_n 6._o sin_n isa_n 53._o 6._o for_o god_n lay_v on_o he_o the_o iniquity_n of_o we_o all_o the_o three_o degreee_v of_o christ_n humiliation_n be_v that_o he_o be_v content_a with_o a_o mean_a condition_n of_o life_n here_o upon_o earth_n his_o birth_n and_o education_n be_v very_o mean_a he_o be_v expose_v to_o want_n and_o necessity_n to_o peril_n and_o danger_n even_o from_o his_o infancy_n and_o after_o he_o begin_v his_o ministry_n he_o have_v no_o abide_v place_n 20._o place_n mat._n 8._o 20._o he_o have_v not_o where_o to_o lay_v his_o head_n and_o he_o do_v the_o office_n of_o a_o servant_n to_o his_o own_o disciple_n 5_o disciple_n john_n 13._o 5_o when_o he_o wash_v their_o foot_n for_o as_o the_o apostle_n say_v 7._o say_v ph●l_n 2._o 7._o he_o make_v himself_o of_o n●_n reputation_n and_o take_v upon_o he_o the_o form_n of_o a_o servant_n christ_n continual_o travel_v from_o place_n to_o place_n to_o teach_v the_o people_n to_o heal_v the_o sick_a to_o cleanse_v the_o leper_n and_o to_o cast_v out_o devil_n he_o be_v often_o weary_v often_o hungry_a and_o often_o thirsty_a thus_o be_v his_o whole_a life_n full_a of_o sorrow_n and_o full_a of_o affliction_n and_o thus_o low_o do_v the_o eternal_a son_n of_o god_n humble_a and_o abase_v himself_o to_o advance_v we_o and_o to_o perfect_a the_o work_n of_o our_o redemption_n last_o in_o his_o passion_n he_o be_v make_v a_o scorn_n to_o the_o most_o abject_a of_o all_o the_o people_n and_o a_o derision_n both_o to_o jew_n and_o gentile_n he_o suffer_v both_o in_o his_o soul_n and_o in_o his_o body_n as_o much_o anguish_n pain_n and_o torment_n as_o the_o power_n of_o the_o devil_n and_o the_o malice_n of_o wicked_a man_n be_v able_a to_o inflict_v upon_o he_o and_o as_o if_o all_o this_o be_v not_o sufficient_a to_o humble_v he_o enough_o god_n himself_o do_v fierce_o assault_v he_o for_o he_o keep_v all_o comfort_n from_o he_o when_o he_o be_v in_o his_o great_a extremity_n and_o his_o wrath_n go_v along_o with_o all_o his_o other_o suffering_n when_o christ_n have_v suffer_v to_o the_o full_a so_o much_o as_o the_o justice_n of_o god_n require_v in_o satisfaction_n for_o all_o our_o sin_n and_o that_o the_o work_n of_o our_o redemption_n be_v perfect_o finish_v than_o he_o commend_v his_o soul_n unto_o god_n and_o die_v upon_o the_o cross_n according_a to_o this_o of_o the_o apostle_n 8._o apostle_n phil._n 2_o 8._o he_o humble_v himself_o and_o become_v obedient_a unto_o death_n even_o the_o death_n of_o the_o cross_n this_o kind_n of_o death_n be_v most_o painful_a shameful_a and_o accurse_a here_o be_v a_o short_a view_n of_o the_o humiliation_n of_o christ_n for_o our_o weak_a understanding_n can_v reach_v to_o the_o depth_n of_o that_o which_o christ_n suffer_v for_o we_o much_o less_o can_v we_o reach_v to_o the_o honour_n and_o dignity_n of_o his_o person_n in_o his_o divine_a nature_n which_o do_v make_v his_o suffering_n and_o his_o humiliation_n far_o the_o great_a if_o we_o do_v serious_o meditate_v upon_o it_o with_o pious_a affection_n it_o will_v teach_v we_o to_o adore_v his_o sacred_a majesty_n with_o reverence_n and_o godly_a fear_n to_o love_v he_o with_o a_o perfect_a love_n to_o serve_v and_o obey_v he_o with_o a_o pure_a and_o upright_a heart_n and_o to_o suffer_v any_o thing_n for_o his_o sake_n with_o a_o cheerful_a mind_n also_o if_o we_o have_v gain_v any_o grace_n by_o the_o death_n and_o passion_n of_o christ_n it_o will_v teach_v we_o meekness_n of_o spirit_n and_o humility_n of_o mind_n though_o we_o have_v place_n of_o pre-eminence_n and_o authority_n above_o other_o man_n if_o god_n shall_v bring_v we_o down_o from_o a_o high_a degree_n to_o a_o mean_a condition_n of_o life_n we_o shall_v bear_v it_o content_o because_o god_n be_v the_o sole_a disposer_n of_o all_o thing_n and_o he_o can_v raise_v we_o to_o a_o high_a degree_n if_o he_o please_v if_o what_o we_o have_v be_v too_o little_a for_o we_o and_o that_o we_o can_v improve_v more_o to_o the_o best_a advantage_n of_o god_n glory_n he_o will_v then_o in_o his_o good_a time_n bestow_v more_o upon_o we_o if_o our_o life_n be_v full_a of_o trouble_n and_o sorrow_n the_o humiliation_n of_o christ_n will_v teach_v we_o 7_o we_o 1_o pet._n 5._o 6_o 7_o to_o humble_v ourselves_o under_o the_o mighty_a hand_n of_o god_n that_o he_o may_v exalt_v we_o in_o due_a time_n we_o may_v safe_o cast_v our_o care_n upon_o he_o for_o he_o care_v for_o we_o 35_o we_o psal_n 18._o 35_o his_o right_a hand_n will_v hold_v we_o up_o 5_o up_o psal_n 17._o 5_o he_o will_v hold_v up_o our_o go_n in_o his_o path_n that_o our_o footstep_n slip_v not_o 6._o not_o cant._n 2._o 6._o christ_n also_o will_v put_v his_o left_a hand_n under_o our_o head_n and_o with_o his_o right_a hand_n he_o will_v embrace_v we_o wherefore_o if_o we_o have_v this_o gracious_a humility_n of_o spirit_n it_o will_v produce_v these_o and_o many_o more_o bless_a fruit_n to_o give_v we_o comfort_v in_o a_o troublesome_a and_o painful_a life_n and_o when_o death_n come_v it_o will_v be_v favourable_a to_o a_o meek_a and_o humble_a spirit_n and_o welcome_a to_o a_o good_a conscience_n if_o we_o be_v thus_o qualify_v it_o will_v bring_v we_o to_o our_o grave_n in_o peace_n and_o then_o we_o shall_v have_v a_o joyful_a and_o a_o bless_a resurrection_n christ_n do_v willing_o humble_v himself_o to_o the_o death_n for_o we_o why_o shall_v we_o be_v unwilling_a to_o resign_v up_o our_o life_n unto_o he_o do_v we_o know_v no_o other_o happiness_n or_o
up_o thy_o spirit_n thou_o faint_a soul_n for_o christ_n have_v redeem_v thy_o body_n from_o the_o grave_n and_o thy_o soul_n from_o death_n by_o his_o resurrection_n he_o have_v conquer_v all_o the_o enemy_n of_o thy_o salvation_n sin_n have_v no_o condemn_a power_n over_o thou_o death_n be_v advantage_n to_o thou_o hell_n be_v lock_v up_o from_o thou_o and_o the_o devil_n himself_o can_v go_v beyond_o his_o commission_n for_o thy_o hurt_n though_o the_o world_n do_v frown_v upon_o thou_o 33_o thou_o joh._n 16._o 33_o and_o thou_o find_v tribulation_n here_o yet_o be_v of_o good_a cheer_n and_o lift_v up_o thy_o head_n for_o christ_n have_v overcome_v the_o world_n and_o he_o will_v sanctify_v all_o thy_o tribulation_n to_o thou_o thou_o live_v here_o subject_a to_o shame_n and_o reproach_n to_o disease_n of_o body_n and_o sorrow_n of_o spirit_n and_o to_o all_o misery_n and_o calamity_n but_o death_n will_v put_v a_o end_n to_o all_o thy_o labour_n and_o travel_n the_o grave_n will_v refine_v thy_o body_n from_o all_o imperfection_n and_o disease_n and_o thy_o resurrection_n will_v bring_v thou_o to_o thy_o reward_n which_o be_v lay_v up_o for_o thou_o in_o heaven_n if_o the_o power_n of_o darkness_n set_v themselves_o in_o array_n against_o thou_o if_o the_o terror_n of_o death_n assault_v thou_o fear_v not_o but_o keep_v close_o to_o the_o resurrection_n of_o thy_o saviour_n by_o faith_n he_o have_v overcome_v they_o all_o and_o will_v also_o subdue_v they_o unto_o thou_o 30._o thou_o eph_n ●_o 30._o if_o thou_o be_v a_o member_n of_o his_o body_n of_o his_o flesh_n and_o of_o his_o bone_n thou_o must_v be_v make_v conformable_a to_o he_o as_o to_o thy_o head_n as_o well_o in_o his_o glory_n as_o in_o his_o shame_n as_o well_o in_o his_o resurrection_n as_o in_o his_o death_n and_o burial_n if_o the_o cross_n must_v try_v thy_o strength_n he_o will_v not_o tire_v thou_o with_o a_o great_a burden_n than_o thou_o be_v well_o able_a to_o bear_v if_o pain_n or_o sickness_n bring_v thou_o near_o unto_o death_n the_o faithful_a hope_n of_o a_o joyful_a resurrection_n will_v great_o refresh_v and_o comfort_v thy_o soul_n for_o though_o thy_o soul_n must_v be_v part_v from_o thy_o body_n yet_o neither_o thy_o soul_n nor_o thy_o body_n shall_v be_v part_v fuom_n christ_n but_o thou_o shall_v rise_v again_o out_o of_o the_o dust_n with_o a_o spiritual_a and_o immortal_a body_n to_o be_v join_v unto_o christ_n thy_o head_n for_o ever_o now_o think_v on_o these_o thing_n with_o holy_a affection_n and_o they_o will_v minister_v heavenly_a comfort_n to_o thy_o soul_n when_o thou_o be_v in_o any_o perplexity_n of_o mind_n or_o body_n consider_v now_o to_o who_o christ_n appear_v after_o his_o resurrection_n it_o be_v first_o to_o holy_a woman_n who_o in_o their_o pious_a devotion_n and_o love_n to_o he_o come_v to_o embalm_v his_o body_n with_o spice_n and_o sweet_a odour_n then_o he_o appear_v to_o his_o disciple_n at_o sundry_a time_n and_o also_o to_o many_o brethren_n that_o they_o all_o may_v be_v well_o confirm_v in_o the_o truth_n of_o his_o resurrection_n and_o of_o his_o deity_n to_o comfort_v they_o in_o their_o sorrow_n to_o uphold_v they_o in_o their_o suffering_n to_o strengthen_v their_o faith_n against_o all_o persecution_n and_o bloody_a trial_n and_o to_o be_v able_a to_o strengthen_v other_o in_o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o resurrection_n thus_o do_v the_o holy_a apostle_n testfiie_v that_o they_o have_v see_v the_o lord_n jesus_n after_o he_o be_v rise_v to_o confirm_v their_o doctrine_n of_o his_o resurrection_n but_o christ_n do_v not_o appear_v to_o any_o wicked_a or_o ungodly_a man_n for_o they_o can_v neither_o believe_v it_o nor_o understand_v it_o nor_o receive_v any_o comfort_n or_o benefit_n by_o it_o because_o they_o have_v no_o spiritual_a eye_n to_o discern_v his_o glorify_a body_n but_o chief_o because_o they_o have_v no_o relation_n to_o he_o as_o their_o saviour_n christ_n do_v appear_v to_o we_o at_o this_o day_n by_o his_o spirit_n when_o he_o do_v manifest_a to_o we_o the_o truth_n of_o his_o resurrection_n by_o his_o word_n and_o do_v give_v we_o grace_n to_o apply_v it_o to_o ourselves_o for_o the_o confirmation_n of_o our_o faith_n in_o the_o resurrection_n of_o our_o body_n at_o the_o last_o day_n but_o chief_o christ_n do_v appear_v to_o we_o when_o by_o faith_n we_o draw_v virtue_n and_o power_n from_o his_o resurrection_n to_o rise_v from_o the_o death_n of_o sin_n to_o the_o life_n of_o grace_n when_o we_o can_v raise_v up_o the_o affection_n of_o our_o heart_n from_o earthly_a and_o worldly_a care_n to_o heavenly_a contemplation_n and_o when_o we_o can_v with_o the_o wing_n of_o faith_n mount_v up_o above_o the_o sinful_a delight_n and_o pleasure_n of_o this_o life_n and_o above_o all_o the_o calamity_n and_o tribulation_n that_o we_o shall_v meet_v with_o here_o upon_o earth_n to_o have_v our_o conversation_n in_o heaven_n and_o can_v draw_v comfort_n to_o ourselves_o in_o all_o our_o sorrow_n and_o misery_n from_o the_o hope_n of_o our_o resurrection_n there_o will_v also_o be_v a_o day_n of_o resurrection_n to_o the_o wicked_a which_o will_v be_v most_o sad_a woeful_a and_o miserable_a to_o they_o for_o they_o shall_v not_o rise_v with_o purify_a and_o glorify_a body_n but_o with_o filthy_a ugly_a and_o unclean_a body_n all_o besmear_v with_o the_o guilt_n of_o sin_n which_o will_v make_v they_o odious_a to_o look_v upon_o and_o they_o have_v no_o cover_n to_o hide_v their_o sin_n but_o only_o the_o devil_n liverey_n which_o be_v a_o guilty_a conscience_n that_o they_o may_v be_v know_v to_o who_o they_o belong_v for_o there_o be_v no_o place_n and_o no_o inheritance_n in_o heaven_n for_o such_o unclean_a monster_n but_o they_o shall_v be_v thrust_v down_o into_o the_o low_a hell_n to_o partake_v with_o the_o devil_n and_o his_o angel_n in_o their_o everlasting_a torment_n which_o be_v the_o reward_n of_o all_o wicked_a man_n for_o their_o evil_a work_n of_o christ_n ascension_n up_o into_o heaven_n when_o christ_n have_v full_o instruct_v his_o apostle_n after_o his_o resurrection_n in_o those_o thing_n which_o concern_v the_o kingdom_n of_o heaven_n and_o have_v teach_v they_o how_o to_o plant_v his_o church_n here_o upon_o earth_n he_o be_v take_v up_o in_o the_o sight_n and_o view_v of_o they_o all_o and_o ascend_v up_o into_o heaven_n where_o he_o sit_v at_o the_o right_a hand_n of_o god_n in_o fullness_n of_o majesty_n and_o glory_n until_o he_o shall_v come_v again_o to_o judge_v both_o the_o quick_a and_o the_o dead_a whereby_o christ_n be_v now_o become_v our_o eternal_a advocate_n with_o the_o father_n to_o make_v intercession_n for_o we_o and_o he_o be_v also_o our_o eternal_a high_a priest_n to_o present_v our_o prayer_n and_o oblation_n to_o god_n at_o his_o ascension_n he_o carry_v up_o our_o humane_a nature_n with_o he_o into_o heaven_n and_o have_v advance_v it_o above_o the_o angel_n and_o above_o all_o principality_n and_o power_n also_o christ_n have_v take_v possession_n of_o that_o heavenly_a inheritance_n which_o we_o shall_v hereafter_o enjoy_v for_o he_o keep_v it_o for_o we_o wherefore_o now_o let_v the_o thought_n of_o our_o heart_n be_v raise_v up_o in_o our_o holy_a meditation_n to_o contemplate_v the_o transcendent_a glory_n of_o christ_n now_o he_o be_v at_o the_o right_a hand_n of_o the_o father_n that_o we_o may_v firm_o confide_v in_o he_o and_o have_v a_o long_a desire_n to_o be_v with_o he_o to_o enjoy_v that_o place_n of_o true_a blessedness_n 2_o blessedness_n john_n 14._o 2_o which_o he_o have_v prepare_v for_o we_o in_o his_o father_n house_n also_o let_v all_o our_o prayer_n and_o sacrifice_n proceed_v from_o a_o upright_a and_o a_o believe_a heart_n that_o they_o may_v be_v such_o as_o christ_n will_v present_v to_o his_o father_n for_o we_o and_o then_o we_o may_v confident_o believe_v that_o god_n will_v gracious_o receive_v they_o here_o be_v also_o great_a comfort_n for_o we_o that_o though_o we_o sin_v daily_o through_o humane_a frailty_n or_o through_o the_o corruption_n of_o our_o nature_n 2._o nature_n 1_o john_n 2._o 1_o 2._o that_o we_o have_v a_o advocate_n with_o the_o father_n jesus_n christ_n the_o righteous_a and_o he_o be_v the_o propitiation_n for_o our_o sin_n who_o will_v intercede_v for_o we_o and_o will_v present_v the_o merit_n of_o his_o blood_n unto_o he_o in_o full_a satisfaction_n for_o all_o our_o sin_n whereof_o we_o may_v have_v a_o holy_a assurance_n by_o faith_n and_o true_a repentance_n if_o we_o do_v faithful_o believe_v that_o we_o have_v such_o a_o high_a priest_n and_o such_o a_o advocate_n in_o heaven_n why_o do_v we_o give_v ourselves_o liberty_n in_o sin_n to_o displease_v he_o why_o do_v we_o cherish_v any_o darling_n sin_n
in_o our_o affection_n why_o be_v our_o prayer_n our_o praise_n and_o our_o thanksgiving_n so_o few_o and_o so_o seldom_o send_v up_o to_o he_o why_o be_v they_o so_o cold_a and_o so_o dull_a that_o they_o can_v mount_v up_o to_o he_o and_o why_o be_v our_o spiritual_a oblation_n so_o full_a of_o unbelief_n do_v we_o think_v that_o christ_n will_v intercede_v for_o we_o if_o we_o sin_v witting_o and_o willing_o against_o god_n will_v he_o procure_v our_o pardon_n if_o there_o be_v any_o accurse_a thing_n hide_v in_o our_o heart_n will_v christ_n present_v our_o prayer_n to_o god_n if_o they_o proceed_v out_o of_o feign_a lip_n and_o will_v he_o present_v our_o duty_n and_o service_n to_o god_n if_o they_o be_v perform_v with_o unbelieving_a and_o deceitful_a heart_n if_o we_o thus_o conceive_v of_o the_o intercession_n of_o christ_n we_o delude_v ourselves_o and_o endanger_v our_o soul_n to_o utter_v perdition_n if_o we_o do_v true_o believe_v that_o christ_n have_v take_v possession_n of_o that_o heavenly_a inheritance_n which_o be_v prepare_v for_o we_o our_o soul_n will_v be_v ravish_v with_o a_o holy_a desire_n to_o enjoy_v it_o we_o will_v contemn_v the_o vanity_n of_o this_o world_n in_o comparison_n of_o that_o and_o our_o affection_n will_v not_o be_v carry_v after_o sinful_a pleasure_n affliction_n and_o cross_n will_v not_o cast_v down_o and_o deject_v our_o spirit_n but_o we_o will_v live_v cheerful_o in_o the_o midst_n of_o all_o trouble_n and_o sorrow_n because_o by_o faith_n in_o christ_n we_o be_v make_v heir_n of_o the_o kingdom_n of_o heaven_n if_o that_o place_n be_v so_o perfect_o pure_a that_o no_o unclean_a thing_n can_v enter_v there_o we_o shall_v study_v to_o live_v pious_o and_o virtuous_o to_o the_o glory_n of_o god_n while_o we_o live_v in_o the_o flesh_n that_o we_o may_v have_v a_o sure_a hope_n to_o enjoy_v it_o hereafter_o if_o a_o king_n son_n that_o be_v heir_n apparent_a but_o to_o a_o earthly_a crown_n shall_v live_v like_o a_o base_a peasant_n and_o delight_n in_o the_o company_n of_o such_o as_o be_v of_o mean_a and_o low_a degree_n we_o will_v be_v ready_a to_o say_v that_o he_o be_v unworthy_a of_o such_o a_o inheritance_n let_v we_o make_v this_o our_o own_o case_n and_o consider_v to_o what_o honour_n and_o dignity_n we_o be_v bear_v by_o our_o adoption_n in_o christ_n that_o we_o may_v not_o live_v in_o subjection_n to_o every_o base_a and_o sinful_a lust_n as_o unworthy_a of_o that_o inheritance_n which_o christ_n have_v prepare_v for_o we_o in_o the_o kingdom_n of_o heaven_n though_o our_o condition_n ●e_v mean_v in_o this_o world_n and_o our_o calling_n such_o as_o that_o we_o must_v converse_v with_o ungodly_a people_n as_o to_o the_o outward_a man_n yet_o the_o conversation_n of_o the_o inward_a man_n may_v be_v spiritual_a and_o holy_a 15_o holy_a joh._n 17._o 15_o for_o christ_n have_v pray_v his_o father_n to_o keep_v we_o from_o the_o evil_a that_o be_v in_o the_o world_n that_o we_o may_v imitate_v here_o upon_o earth_n the_o bless_a angel_n and_o saint_n in_o heaven_n by_o glorify_v god_n and_o by_o our_o readiness_n to_o fulfil_v his_o will_n and_o pleasure_n thus_o say_v the_o apostle_n 2_o apostle_n col._n 3._o 1_o 2_o if_o we_o be_v rise_v with_o christ_n we_o shall_v seek_v those_o thing_n which_o be_v above_o where_o christ_n sit_v on_o the_o right_a hand_n of_o god_n and_o there_o shall_v our_o affection_n be_v set_v and_o not_o on_o thing_n on_o the_o earth_n thus_o we_o may_v have_v our_o conversation_n in_o heaven_n thus_o we_o may_v live_v a_o spiritual_a life_n upon_o earth_n and_o thus_o we_o may_v enjoy_v the_o sweet_a communion_n of_o the_o bless_a trinity_n even_o in_o this_o life_n for_o god_n the_o father_n will_v be_v gracious_a and_o love_a to_o we_o in_o christ_n as_o a_o father_n be_v to_o his_o child_n god_n the_o son_n will_v be_v righteousness_n sanctification_n and_o redemption_n to_o we_o according_a to_o the_o nature_n of_o a_o saviour_n to_o his_o elect_a people_n and_o god_n the_o holy_a ghost_n will_v abide_v with_o we_o for_o ever_o in_o all_o difficulty_n and_o danger_n according_a to_o the_o nature_n of_o a_o true_a comforter_n a_o brief_a sum_n of_o the_o exaltation_n of_o christ_n if_o we_o look_v now_o upon_o our_o belove_a saviour_n we_o may_v contemplate_v his_o great_a exaltation_n with_o much_o joy_n and_o gladness_n of_o heart_n 8._o heart_n eph._n 4._o 8._o for_o he_o be_v ascend_v up_o on_o high_a and_o have_v lead_v captivity_n captive_a 16._o captive_a rev._n 19_o 11_o 12_o 13_o 14_o 15_o 16._o john_n do_v describe_v he_o sit_v upon_o a_o white_a horse_n because_o he_o do_v judge_n in_o righteousness_n his_o eye_n be_v as_o a_o flame_n of_o fire_n and_o on_o his_o head_n be_v many_o crown_n he_o be_v clothe_v with_o a_o vestare_fw-la dip_v in_o blood_n and_o his_o name_n be_v call_v the_o word_n of_o god_n and_o the_o army_n which_o be_v in_o heaven_n follow_v he_o upon_o white_a horse_n and_o out_o of_o his_o mouth_n go_v a_o sharp_a sword_n that_o with_o it_o he_o shall_v smite_v the_o nation_n and_o he_o shall_v rule_v they_o with_o a_o rod_n of_o iron_n and_o he_o tread_v the_o wine-press_n of_o the_o fierceness_n and_o wrath_n of_o almighty_a god_n and_o he_o have_v on_o his_o vesture_n and_o on_o his_o thigh_n a_o name_n write_v king_n of_o king_n and_o lord_n of_o lord_n 16._o lord_n 1_o tim._n 6._o 15_o 16._o he_o be_v the_o bless_a and_o only_a potentate_n who_o only_o have_v immortality_n dwell_v in_o the_o light_n which_o no_o man_n can_v approach_v unto_o who_o no_o man_n have_v see_v or_o can_v see_v 10._o see_v phil._n 2._o 9_o 10._o god_n have_v high_o exalt_v he_o and_o give_v he_o a_o name_n which_o be_v above_o every_o name_n that_o at_o the_o name_n of_o jesus_n every_o knee_n shall_v bow_v of_o thing_n in_o heaven_n and_o thing_n in_o earth_n and_o thing_n under_o the_o earth_n 5._o earth_n rom._n 9_o 5._o for_o he_o be_v over_o all_o god_n bless_v for_o ever_o 8_o ever_o psal_n 2._o 6_o 8_o god_n have_v now_o make_v christ_n a_o king_n and_o set_v he_o upon_o his_o holy_a hill_n of_o zion_n he_o have_v give_v he_o the_o heathen_a for_o his_o inheriritance_n and_o the_o uttermost_a part_n of_o the_o earth_n for_o his_o possession_n also_o the_o apostle_n say_v 10._o say_v col._n 2._o 9_o 10._o in_o christ_n dwell_v all_o the_o fullness_n of_o the_o godhead_n bodily_a and_o we_o be_v complete_a in_o he_o which_o be_v the_o head_n of_o all_o principality_n and_o power_n we_o may_v yet_o consider_v further_o how_o god_n have_v exalt_v christ_n 23._o christ_n eph._n 5._o 23._o for_o he_o have_v make_v he_o the_o head_n of_o his_o church_n 22._o church_n eph._n 1._o 22._o and_o have_v put_v all_o thing_n under_o his_o foot_n and_o give_v he_o to_o be_v head_n over_o all_o thing_n to_o the_o church_n also_o 12._o also_o psal_n 118._o 12._o christ_n be_v become_v the_o head_n stone_n of_o the_o corner_n in_o this_o spiritual_a building_n and_o he_o do_v so_o firm_o bind_v every_o stone_n of_o this_o build_n to_o himself_o that_o they_o shall_v never_o depart_v from_o he_o thus_o god_n be_v please_v to_o reveal_v in_o some_o measure_n how_o high_o he_o have_v exalt_v our_o dear_a saviour_n after_o his_o great_a suffering_n in_o his_o bitter_a passion_n but_o as_o we_o be_v not_o able_a to_o conceive_v what_o he_o suffer_v so_o our_o weak_a capacity_n can_v reach_v to_o that_o transcendent_a glory_n and_o majesty_n which_o he_o now_o have_v in_o the_o same_o nature_n as_o he_o be_v our_o redeemer_n god_n and_o man._n if_o god_n have_v so_o high_o exalt_v our_o glorify_a redeeemer_n than_o we_o must_v study_v and_o meditate_v with_o a_o holy_a zeal_n and_o pious_a devotion_n how_o to_o exalt_v he_o in_o our_o heart_n how_o to_o prize_v he_o in_o our_o affection_n according_a to_o his_o excellency_n and_o dignity_n how_o to_o have_v a_o reverend_a esteem_n of_o his_o worth_n how_o to_o honour_v and_o reverence_v he_o for_o his_o greatness_n and_o 5._o and_o hos_fw-la 3._o 5._o how_o to_o fear_v and_o love_v he_o for_o his_o goodness_n also_o we_o must_v have_v a_o diligent_a care_n to_o obey_v his_o rule_n and_o government_n as_o he_o reign_v and_o rule_v in_o our_o heart_n by_o his_o spirit_n that_o we_o may_v withstand_v and_o resist_v the_o temptation_n of_o the_o devil_n that_o the_o allure_a vanity_n of_o the_o world_n may_v not_o ensnare_v we_o and_o that_o no_o evil_a concupiscence_n may_v overpower_v we_o to_o make_v we_o dishonour_v our_o god_n or_o disobey_v the_o will_n of_o our_o dear_a saviour_n if_o christ_n be_v true_o advance_v in_o our_o mind_n and_o thought_n according_a to_o the_o glory_n
true_a believer_n have_v by_o christ_n in_o this_o life_n above_o all_o other_o man_n that_o have_v no_o interest_n in_o he_o by_o faith_n and_o examine_v thyself_o hereby_o what_o thou_o have_v gain_v by_o he_o if_o thou_o have_v use_v the_o blessing_n of_o god_n and_o his_o good_a creature_n sober_o and_o temperate_o to_o his_o glory_n and_o not_o to_o pamper_v or_o cherish_v any_o sin_n to_o dishonour_v he_o thereby_o and_o do_v return_v thanks_o unto_o god_n for_o they_o with_o a_o sincere_a heart_n because_o he_o be_v the_o sole_a giver_n of_o all_o thing_n that_o thou_o injoye_v then_o christ_n have_v take_v away_o the_o curse_n that_o be_v upon_o they_o and_o have_v make_v they_o blessing_n to_o thou_o which_o thou_o may_v free_o use_v to_o thy_o comfort_n otherwise_o thou_o can_v find_v little_a comfort_n in_o they_o also_o if_o thou_o do_v true_o believe_v that_o thy_o sin_n be_v impute_v unto_o christ_n and_o have_v a_o holy_a assurance_n hereof_o by_o the_o daily_o renew_v of_o thy_o repentance_n for_o thy_o daily_a sin_n then_o thou_o may_v be_v full_o persuade_v that_o the_o guilt_n of_o sin_n which_o be_v a_o burden_n to_o thy_o conscience_n and_o do_v cleave_v close_o to_o thy_o soul_n be_v take_v away_o and_o that_o christ_n have_v nail_v it_o to_o his_o cross_n whereby_o thou_o be_v free_v from_o the_o curse_n of_o the_o law_n and_o from_o the_o condemnation_n of_o sin_n this_o consideration_n will_v much_o comfort_v thou_o when_o thou_o be_v under_o the_o cross_n for_o the_o evil_a of_o punishment_n that_o be_v in_o thy_o affliction_n be_v take_v away_o it_o be_v part_n of_o the_o curse_n and_o thou_o be_v but_o chastise_v for_o thy_o good_a and_o not_o punish_v for_o thy_o hurt_n examine_v thyself_o yet_o further_o what_o thou_o have_v gain_v by_o christ_n for_o if_o thou_o can_v overpower_v thy_o corruption_n by_o the_o strength_n of_o grace_n and_o can_v leave_v thy_o sin_n before_o they_o leave_v thou_o and_o that_o the_o remembrance_n of_o they_o be_v bitter_a to_o thy_o soul_n and_o do_v daily_o strive_v with_o a_o true_a purpose_n of_o heart_n to_o newness_n of_o life_n then_o thou_o have_v a_o evident_a sign_n that_o christ_n have_v take_v away_o the_o dominion_n of_o sin_n in_o thou_o 25._o thou_o ezek._n 36._o 25._o and_o have_v pour_v clean_a water_n upon_o thy_o soul_n to_o purify_v &_o cleanse_v thou_o from_o all_o thy_o filthiness_n also_o if_o thou_o do_v find_v the_o fruit_n of_o the_o spirit_n of_o sanctification_n that_o thou_o have_v a_o holy_a desire_n to_o the_o mean_n of_o grace_n and_o a_o faithful_a endeavour_n to_o grow_v strong_a in_o grace_n that_o thy_o heart_n may_v be_v establish_v in_o the_o truth_n and_o thy_o faith_n firm_a to_o uphold_v thou_o in_o thy_o suffering_n and_o trial_n then_o thou_o have_v get_v great_a gain_n and_o much_o advantage_n by_o christ_n but_o if_o thou_o be_v persuade_v of_o thy_o adoption_n by_o faith_n in_o he_o thou_o can_v not_o conceive_v how_o great_a thy_o gain_n will_v be_v for_o whatsoever_o a_o child_n can_v desire_v of_o a_o love_a father_n thou_o may_v expect_v much_o more_o from_o god_n nothing_o shall_v be_v too_o dear_a for_o thou_o nothing_o shall_v be_v hurtful_a to_o thou_o and_o nothing_o shall_v be_v conceal_v from_o thou_o that_o may_v be_v profitable_a and_o advantageous_a to_o the_o salvation_n of_o thy_o soul_n let_v we_o consider_v now_o that_o our_o heart_n may_v ruminate_v well_o upon_o it_o for_o our_o great_a comfort_n what_o honour_n we_o have_v by_o be_v make_v the_o son_n of_o god_n 23._o god_n 1_o sam._n 18._o 23._o when_o saul_n servant_n come_v to_o persuade_v david_n to_o be_v the_o king_n son_n in_o law_n he_o give_v they_o this_o answer_n seem_v it_o to_o you_o a_o light_a thing_n to_o be_v a_o king_n son_n in_o law_n see_v that_o i_o be_o a_o poor_a man_n and_o light_o esteem_v how_o great_a then_o be_v the_o honour_n and_o how_o high_o to_o be_v esteem_v for_o a_o poor_a wretched_a captive_a to_o be_v make_v the_o son_n of_o the_o eternal_a and_o everliving_a god_n to_o have_v such_o a_o father_n to_o come_v to_o in_o all_o our_o necessity_n such_o a_o refuge_n in_o all_o our_o distress_n such_o a_o protector_n against_o all_o our_o enemy_n and_o to_o be_v heir_n to_o such_o a_o inheritance_n as_o be_v incorruptible_a and_o eternal_a which_o christ_n have_v reserve_v for_o we_o in_o heaven_n wherefore_o we_o shall_v be_v holy_a and_o undefiled_a in_o our_o conversation_n as_o become_v the_o son_n of_o such_o a_o father_n we_o shall_v not_o walk_v stubborn_o before_o he_o but_o in_o filial_a fear_n and_o reverence_n obey_v his_o holy_a will_n and_o command_n with_o filial_a love_n and_o submit_v to_o his_o rod_n and_o correction_n as_o a_o child_n ought_v to_o submit_v to_o his_o father_n if_o our_o service_n be_v thus_o perform_v to_o god_n he_o will_v then_o be_v a_o tender_a and_o a_o gracious_a father_n to_o we_o if_o we_o have_v this_o gain_n by_o christ_n in_o this_o life_n what_o be_v the_o gain_n of_o the_o whole_a world_n to_o it_o what_o be_v all_o earthly_a honour_n to_o the_o honour_n of_o a_o true_a christian_n and_o yet_o most_o man_n covet_v and_o desire_v that_o gain_n and_o that_o honour_n and_o they_o neglect_v the_o true_a gain_n and_o the_o true_a honour_n of_o a_o christian_a which_o be_v chief_o to_o be_v desire_v 26_o desire_v mat._n 16._o 26_o what_o be_v a_o man_n profit_v say_v christ_n if_o be_v shall_v gain_v the_o whole_a world_n and_o lose_v his_o own_o soul_n if_o we_o enjoy_v christ_n we_o have_v a_o rich_a patrimony_n we_o can_v want_v no_o comfort_n whatsoever_o shall_v betide_v we_o in_o soul_n or_o in_o body_n in_o good_n or_o good_a name_n he_o will_v repair_v all_o our_o loss_n in_o adam_n with_o his_o abundant_a righteousness_n he_o will_v also_o repair_v all_o our_o loss_n in_o child_n servant_n or_o estate_n either_o in_o this_o life_n 10_o life_n job_n 42_o 10_o as_o he_o do_v unto_o job_n or_o else_o in_o the_o life_n to_o come_v in_o a_o more_o plentiful_a manner_n christ_n will_v likewise_o furnish_v we_o with_o all_o spiritual_a ability_n to_o encounter_v with_o the_o enemy_n of_o our_o salvation_n to_o stand_v firm_o for_o the_o truth_n and_o for_o a_o good_a conscience_n and_o to_o endure_v the_o trial_n of_o our_o faith_n love_n hope_v and_o patience_n and_o he_o will_v make_v perfect_a whatsoever_o be_v want_v or_o imperfect_a in_o we_o 9_o we_o 2_o cor._n 12._o 9_o for_o his_o grace_n be_v sufficient_a for_o we_o and_o his_o strength_n be_v make_v perfect_a in_o weakness_n his_o love_n and_o his_o care_n of_o we_o do_v most_o shine_v forth_o when_o we_o do_v most_o a_o base_a and_o humble_a ourselves_o and_o when_o we_o do_v acknowledge_v our_o unworthiness_n of_o it_o in_o the_o last_o place_n we_o shall_v meditate_v with_o all_o thankfulness_n upon_o the_o great_a benefit_n that_o we_o have_v by_o the_o covenant_n of_o grace_n which_o christ_n have_v seal_v for_o we_o with_o his_o blood_n for_o we_o may_v faithful_o believe_v and_o comfortable_o expect_v that_o god_n will_v perform_v his_o condition_n express_v therein_o to_o we_o though_o we_o can_v perfect_o perform_v our_o condition_n to_o he_o also_o that_o he_o will_v purify_v and_o cleanse_v we_o from_o all_o our_o filthiness_n 40._o filthiness_n jer._n 32._o 40._o and_o will_v put_v his_o fear_n in_o our_o heart_n that_o we_o shall_v not_o depart_v from_o he_o wherefore_o let_v not_o the_o fail_n and_o frailty_n of_o the_o flesh_n discomfort_v we_o nor_o weaken_v our_o faith_n and_o confidence_n in_o the_o goodness_n of_o god_n to_o we_o in_o christ_n for_o the_o flesh_n will_v rebel_v against_o the_o spirit_n and_o the_o corruption_n of_o the_o unregenerate_a part_n will_v sometime_o break_v out_o upon_o we_o to_o dash_v and_o hinder_v our_o comfort_n in_o this_o gracious_a covenant_n therefore_o christ_n have_v ordain_v the_o two_o sacrament_n to_o seal_v this_o covenant_n to_o our_o soul_n for_o the_o better_a confirmation_n of_o our_o faith_n 27._o faith_n gal._n 3._o 26_o 27._o for_o if_o we_o be_v baptize_v into_o christ_n by_o faith_n we_o have_v put_v on_o christ_n we_o be_v member_n of_o his_o church_n and_o this_o covenant_n be_v seal_v to_o we_o 7_o we_o 1_o john_n 1._o 7_o and_o the_o blood_n of_o christ_n have_v cleanse_v we_o from_o all_o sin_n if_o age_n or_o sickness_n or_o any_o thing_n else_o beside_o sanctify_a grace_n do_v keep_v we_o from_o sin_v against_o god_n this_o be_v not_o the_o true_a purge_n away_o of_o sin_n nor_o the_o regeneration_n and_o renew_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n because_o the_o evil_a concupiscence_n of_o the_o flesh_n and_o the_o sinful_a desire_n of_o the_o mind_n will_v remain_v strong_a and_o
will_v still_o reign_v in_o we_o though_o we_o can_v actual_o commit_v sin_n so_o likewise_o if_o we_o do_v spiritual_o feed_v upon_o the_o body_n and_o blood_n of_o christ_n at_o the_o lord_n table_n we_o do_v then_o seal_v this_o covenant_n of_o grace_n to_o our_o soul_n and_o we_o shall_v find_v the_o comfort_n of_o all_o those_o promise_n that_o be_v contain_v in_o it_o this_o spiritual_a food_n be_v the_o fruit_n that_o the_o spouse_n do_v feed_v upon_o 3._o upon_o cant._n 2._o 3._o which_o be_v so_o sweet_a to_o her_o taste_n and_o we_o shall_v also_o find_v the_o same_o sweetness_n in_o that_o bless_a fruit_n but_o if_o we_o come_v to_o that_o holy_a supper_n with_o mind_n full_a of_o worldly_a care_n or_o sinful_a lust_n and_o with_o heart_n full_a of_o hypocrisy_n and_o unbelief_n we_o do_v eat_v and_o drink_v damnation_n to_o ourselves_o we_o need_v not_o now_o envy_v at_o the_o prosperity_n of_o ungodly_a man_n their_o wealth_n be_v their_o snare_n to_o bring_v they_o into_o the_o path_n of_o perdition_n their_o gain_n be_v their_o loss_n their_o pleasure_n will_v be_v their_o pain_n and_o their_o sweetness_n will_v be_v bitterness_n to_o they_o in_o the_o end_n so_o that_o what_o gain_n soever_o they_o make_v of_o this_o world_n if_o they_o do_v not_o also_o gain_v christ_n with_o it_o they_o will_v find_v no_o advantage_n nor_o true_a comfort_n by_o it_o it_o be_v a_o shame_n for_o rich_a man_n and_o a_o dishonour_n for_o such_o as_o be_v in_o eminent_a place_n of_o authority_n if_o they_o be_v not_o true_o virtuous_a and_o religious_a this_o heavenly_a gain_n be_v peculiar_a only_o to_o the_o child_n of_o god_n which_o they_o have_v only_o by_o christ_n and_o they_o seek_v it_o not_o where_o but_o of_o he_o our_o advantage_n and_o gain_n by_o christ_n in_o death_n as_o christ_n be_v our_o spiritual_a gain_n in_o this_o life_n so_o he_o be_v no_o less_o our_o advantage_n and_o gain_n in_o our_o death_n for_o he_o have_v so_o conquer_v death_n that_o it_o shall_v neither_o sting_v we_o nor_o hurt_v we_o though_o we_o must_v at_o god_n appoint_a time_n yield_v and_o submit_v unto_o it_o death_n of_o itself_o be_v a_o terrible_a enemy_n and_o destructive_a to_o our_o whole_a nature_n and_o it_o be_v the_o great_a part_n of_o the_o curse_n for_o the_o breach_n of_o the_o law_n but_o christ_n have_v make_v it_o our_o friend_n and_o have_v take_v the_o curse_n from_o it_o so_o that_o if_o we_o live_v a_o holy_a and_o pious_a life_n in_o christ_n we_o shall_v also_o die_v a_o comfortable_a and_o a_o christian_a death_n in_o he_o 12_o he_o rom._n 5._o 12_o by_o the_o fall_n of_o adam_n sin_n enter_v into_o the_o world_n and_o death_n by_o sin_n and_o so_o death_n pass_v upon_o all_o man_n for_o that_o all_o have_v sin_v 2d_o sin_v heb._n 9_o 2d_o therefore_o it_o be_v appoint_v unto_o all_o man_n once_o to_o die_v and_o after_o this_o be_v the_o judgement_n thus_o say_v the_o psalmist_n 48_o psalmist_n psal_n 89._o 48_o what_o man_n be_v be_v that_o live_v and_o shall_v not_o see_v death_n shall_v he_o deliver_v his_o soul_n from_o the_o hand_n of_o the_o grave_n paul_n say_v 7_o say_v 2_o cor._n 4._o 7_o that_o our_o body_n be_v but_o earthen_a vessel_n which_o be_v soon_o break_v or_o 1._o or_o 2_o cor._n 5._o 1._o earthly_a house_n which_o be_v soon_o dissolve_v the_o wise_a man_n have_v no_o privilege_n from_o death_n more_o than_o the_o fool_n one_o event_n happen_v to_o they_o both_o 16_o both_o eccl._n 2._o 14_o 16_o how_o die_v the_o wise_a man_n as_o the_o fool_n say_v the_o preacher_n 20_o preacher_n eccl._n 3._o 20_o all_o go_v unto_o one_o place_n both_o high_a and_o low_a rich_a and_o poor_a all_o be_v of_o the_o dust_n and_o all_o turn_n to_o dust_n again_o for_o we_o must_v be_v conform_v to_o christ_n in_o his_o death_n if_o we_o desire_v to_o be_v conform_v to_o he_o in_o his_o resurrection_n this_o be_v the_o way_n that_o every_o man_n must_v go_v before_o he_o can_v 23._o h_o rom._n 3._o 23._o come_v to_o eternal_a life_n for_o all_o have_v sin_v and_o come_v short_a of_o the_o glory_n of_o god_n 23_o god_n rom_n 6._o 23_o and_o the_o wage_n of_o sin_n be_v death_n if_o it_o be_v so_o that_o none_o can_v escape_v the_o stroke_n of_o death_n but_o that_o it_o will_v seize_v upon_o all_o flesh_n with_o a_o unresistible_a power_n we_o ought_v then_o to_o be_v always_o well_o prepare_v that_o death_n may_v not_o come_v sudden_o upon_o we_o to_o take_v we_o away_o in_o our_o sin_n before_o we_o have_v make_v our_o peace_n with_o god_n by_o faith_n in_o christ_n and_o before_o we_o have_v get_v a_o modest_a and_o sober_a assurance_n of_o the_o pardon_n of_o our_o sin_n by_o true_a repentance_n that_o we_o may_v willing_o part_v with_o this_o world_n and_o comfortable_o resign_v up_o our_o soul_n to_o god_n in_o full_a hope_n that_o we_o shall_v enjoy_v a_o better_a life_n hereafter_n for_o evermore_o and_o this_o preparation_n for_o death_n be_v only_o by_o christ_n consider_v now_o that_o christ_n will_v fit_v and_o prepare_v we_o for_o death_n and_o will_v also_o fit_v a_o death_n for_o we_o which_o shall_v make_v most_o for_o the_o glory_n of_o god_n and_o be_v most_o advantageous_a to_o we_o and_o he_o will_v so_o sanctify_v it_o to_o we_o that_o our_o gain_n thereby_o shall_v be_v far_o great_a than_o our_o loss_n if_o we_o die_v in_o the_o lord_n or_o for_o the_o lord_n death_n may_v part_v our_o soul_n from_o our_o body_n but_o it_o can_v part_v our_o soul_n from_o christ_n the_o soul_n may_v be_v part_v for_o a_o time_n from_o a_o crazy_a disease_a and_o corruptible_a body_n which_o be_v but_o a_o earthly_a tabernacle_n but_o we_o shall_v receive_v the_o same_o body_n again_o in_o full_a strength_n in_o perfect_a beauty_n and_o incorruptible_a free_a from_o ache_n or_o disease_n from_o decay_n or_o corruption_n death_n may_v take_v our_o soul_n out_o of_o a_o world_n of_o misery_n and_o calamity_n of_o sorrow_n trouble_n and_o vexation_n but_o it_o will_v present_o convey_v they_o into_o a_o haven_n of_o rest_n and_o into_o a_o heaven_n of_o happiness_n where_o there_o be_v no_o labour_n nor_o toil_n no_o trouble_n nor_o sorrow_n but_o perfect_a peace_n and_o fullness_n of_o joy_n for_o ever_o and_o our_o body_n shall_v be_v raise_v up_o to_o enjoy_v the_o same_o blessedness_n with_o our_o soul_n 1._o soul_n 2_o cor._n 5._o 1._o death_n may_v dissolve_v the_o earthly_a house_n of_o our_o tabernacle_n but_o we_o have_v a_o build_n of_o god_n a_o house_n not_o make_v with_o hand_n eternal_a in_o the_o heaven_n what_o if_o we_o lose_v our_o land_n and_o possession_n whereunto_o we_o be_v but_o tenant_n at_o will_n 4_o will_n ●_o pet._n 1._o 3_o 4_o we_o have_v a_o lively_a hope_n by_o christ_n to_o enjoy_v a_o inheritance_n incorruptible_a and_o undefiled_a and_o that_o fade_v not_o away_o reserve_v in_o heaven_n for_o we_o death_n may_v take_v we_o from_o our_o earthly_a friend_n but_o it_o will_v bring_v we_o into_o the_o society_n of_o the_o glorious_a angel_n and_o bless_a saint_n in_o heaven_n and_o to_o be_v wed_v to_o christ_n our_o belove_a for_o ever_o to_o who_o in_o this_o life_n we_o be_v but_o espouse_v consider_v in_o the_o next_o place_n for_o our_o further_a comfort_n that_o we_o have_v this_o advantage_n by_o christ_n above_o other_o man_n when_o we_o be_v to_o die_v 56._o die_v 1_o cor._n 15._o 55_o 56._o that_o death_n have_v nothing_o to_o hurt_v we_o sin_n have_v no_o power_n to_o condemn_v we_o and_o therefore_o death_n can_v bind_v we_o over_o unto_o judgement_n thus_o say_v the_o lord_n by_o his_o prophet_n ●5_n prophet_n isa_n 42_o ●5_n i_o even_o i_o be_o he_o that_o blot_v out_o thy_o transgression_n for_o my_o own_o sake_n and_o will_v not_o remember_v thy_o sin_n how_o can_v death_n then_o be_v any_o way_n hurtful_a to_o we_o as_o christ_n have_v take_v away_o the_o guilt_n of_o our_o sin_n so_o he_o will_v also_o fasten_v all_o our_o good_a work_n and_o pious_a duty_n to_o our_o soul_n which_o will_v go_v with_o we_o to_o the_o grave_n 13_o grave_n rev._n 14._o 13_o and_o will_v follow_v we_o to_o the_o day_n of_o judgement_n to_o be_v have_v in_o remembrance_n then_o before_o god_n this_o be_v a_o bless_a advantage_n that_o we_o have_v by_o christ_n in_o death_n above_o other_o man_n that_o have_v no_o interest_n in_o christ_n for_o their_o evil_a work_n cleave_v so_o close_o to_o their_o soul_n that_o they_o will_v follow_v they_o unto_o judgement_n to_o increase_v their_o torment_n in_o their_o condemnation_n thus_o say_v paul_n 24._o paul_n 1_o tim._n 5._o 24._o some_o man_n sin_n be_v open_a before_o hand_n
bless_a saviour_n to_o we_o that_o he_o have_v not_o only_o give_v we_o the_o shield_n of_o faith_n for_o our_o defence_n against_o these_o spiritual_a enemy_n 6._o enemy_n eph._n 6._o but_o have_v also_o furnish_v we_o with_o the_o whole_a armour_n of_o god_n which_o we_o must_v put_v on_o and_o buckle_v close_o to_o we_o with_o the_o girdle_n of_o verity_n apprehend_v by_o faith_n that_o we_o may_v be_v strong_a in_o the_o lord_n and_o in_o the_o power_n of_o his_o might_n and_o be_v able_a to_o stand_v against_o the_o wile_n of_o the_o devil_n for_o we_o wrestle_v not_o against_o flesh_n and_o blood_n but_o against_o principality_n and_o power_n against_o the_o ruler_n of_o the_o darkness_n of_o this_o world_n and_o against_o spiritual_a wickedness_n in_o high_a place_n also_o christ_n have_v give_v we_o the_o wisdom_n of_o his_o spirit_n so_o to_o use_v every_o piece_n of_o this_o spiritual_a armour_n that_o neither_o by_o force_n nor_o by_o fraud_n the_o devil_n shall_v be_v able_a to_o hurt_v we_o or_o to_o hinder_v the_o salvation_n of_o our_o soul_n for_o christ_n know_v how_o violent_o we_o shall_v be_v assault_v and_o the_o weakness_n of_o our_o own_o strength_n to_o resist_v and_o how_o cunning_o our_o enemy_n will_v plot_v to_o undermine_v we_o and_o therefore_o we_o shall_v need_v this_o spiritual_a armour_n to_o defend_v ourselves_o and_o to_o offend_v our_o adversary_n and_o likewise_o his_o spirit_n of_o wisdom_n and_o his_o almighty_a power_n to_o use_v that_o armour_n as_o we_o ought_v five_o faith_n do_v much_o support_n and_o comfort_v we_o in_o all_o the_o sorrow_n and_o trouble_n of_o this_o life_n for_o so_o long_o as_o we_o live_v in_o the_o flesh_n we_o be_v subject_a to_o many_o tribulation_n and_o extremity_n which_o we_o can_v patient_o bear_v without_o the_o help_n of_o faith_n prince_n have_v their_o care_n the_o great_a man_n of_o the_o world_n be_v not_o free_a from_o trouble_n there_o be_v no_o condition_n of_o life_n that_o can_v challenge_v a_o privilege_n from_o worldly_a encumbrance_n and_o misery_n against_o all_o which_o faith_n do_v comfort_v the_o servant_n of_o god_n in_o his_o promise_n to_o uphold_v they_o from_o sink_v under_o their_o affliction_n by_o that_o virtue_n and_o power_n which_o they_o draw_v thereby_o from_o the_o suffering_n of_o christ_n wherefore_o if_o we_o do_v confide_v in_o the_o promise_n of_o god_n and_o rest_n upom_v they_o by_o faith_n as_o make_v unto_o we_o so_o that_o we_o can_v wait_v without_o murmur_a god_n own_o time_n for_o the_o performance_n of_o they_o they_o will_v then_o sweeten_v our_o sorrow_n ease_v we_o in_o our_o trouble_n comfort_v we_o in_o the_o affliction_n of_o our_o soul_n and_o give_v we_o a_o assure_a hope_n of_o deliverance_n out_o of_o our_o distress_n the_o good_a king_n of_o juda_n and_o the_o valiant_a man_n of_o israel_n obtain_v many_o great_a victory_n beyond_o humane_a expectation_n because_o they_o believe_v and_o rest_v upon_o the_o word_n of_o promise_n which_o they_o have_v from_o the_o lord_n 8._o lord_n josh_n 11._o 6_o 8._o when_o joshua_n see_v divers_a king_n come_v against_o he_o he_o be_v afraid_a but_o god_n do_v strengthen_v he_o with_o the_o promise_n of_o victory_n which_o he_o rest_v upon_o and_o god_n make_v his_o word_n good_a unto_o he_o 7._o he_o judg._n 4._o 7._o baruch_n have_v the_o like_a promise_n against_o sisera_n which_o the_o lord_n do_v faithful_o perform_v 20_o perform_v 1_o king_n 20_o ahab_n have_v two_o great_a victory_n over_o the_o syrian_n though_o he_o be_v a_o wicked_a king_n because_o he_o rest_v upon_o the_o promise_n of_o god_n 10._o god_n 1_o chron._n 14._o 10._o david_n overcome_v the_o philistines_n because_o he_o believe_v the_o word_n of_o god_n 8._o god_n 1_o sam._n 30._o 8._o also_o he_o recover_v all_o the_o spoil_n that_o the_o amalekite_n have_v take_v out_o of_o ziglag_n because_o he_o trust_v to_o the_o word_n of_o promise_n which_o he_o have_v from_o god_n david_n do_v find_v by_o manifold_a experience_n how_o faithful_a god_n be_v in_o the_o performance_n of_o his_o promise_n which_o make_v he_o so_o much_o delight_n in_o the_o word_n of_o god_n and_o so_o often_o to_o meditate_v on_o his_o promise_n which_o do_v exceed_o strengthen_v he_o in_o all_o his_o affliction_n and_o trouble_n 19_o trouble_n psa_fw-la 34._o 19_o many_o be_v the_o affliction_n of_o the_o righteous_a but_o the_o lord_n deliver_v he_o out_o of_o they_o all_o 15_o all_o psa_fw-la 50._o 15_o call_v upon_o i_o in_o the_o day_n of_o trouble_n i_o will_v deliver_v thou_o and_o thou_o shall_v glorify_v i_o 11_o i_o psa_fw-la 42._o 11_o why_o be_v thou_o cast_v down_o o_o my_o soul_n and_o why_o be_v thou_o disquiet_v within_o i_o hope_v thou_o in_o god_n for_o i_o shall_v yet_o praise_v he_o who_o be_v the_o health_n of_o my_o countenance_n and_o my_o god_n thus_o may_v a_o poor_a soul_n cheer_v up_o his_o droop_a spirit_n when_o his_o mind_n be_v perplex_v or_o when_o trouble_n and_o sorrow_n compass_v he_o about_o on_o every_o side_n if_o he_o have_v a_o word_n of_o promise_n from_o god_n to_o rest_v upon_o when_o god_n do_v visit_v we_o with_o affliction_n he_o have_v then_o some_o work_n to_o do_v in_o we_o for_o his_o own_o glory_n and_o for_o our_o good_a and_o we_o must_v then_o make_v use_n of_o our_o faith_n which_o will_v help_v we_o much_o to_o join_v with_o he_o in_o his_o own_o work_n because_o he_o intend_v our_o good_a thereby_o and_o then_o he_o will_v the_o soon_o remove_v his_o rod_n of_o correction_n from_o we_o we_o may_v understand_v what_o god_n purpose_n be_v when_o his_o rod_n be_v upon_o we_o if_o we_o mark_v and_o observe_v in_o what_o manner_n he_o do_v visit_v we_o and_o also_o if_o we_o do_v true_o examine_v our_o step_n how_o we_o walk_v before_o god_n from_o day_n to_o day_n for_o than_o we_o shall_v discover_v what_o good_a we_o have_v omit_v and_o what_o evil_a we_o have_v commit_v and_o we_o shall_v find_v some_o sweet_a motion_n of_o his_o spirit_n to_o direct_v we_o what_o we_o ought_v to_o do_v for_o the_o more_o speedy_a effect_n of_o his_o work_n in_o we_o if_o our_o conscience_n do_v tell_v we_o of_o some_o particular_a sin_n that_o have_v provoke_v god_n against_o we_o than_o he_o will_v punish_v we_o according_a to_o the_o nature_n of_o those_o sin_n if_o we_o be_v too_o much_o addict_v to_o the_o world_n he_o will_v visit_v we_o with_o cross_n loss_n and_o trouble_n in_o our_o estate_n if_o we_o be_v in_o danger_n of_o spiritual_a pride_n he_o will_v pull_v we_o down_o with_o a_o thorn_n in_o the_o flesh_n or_o send_v a_o messenger_n of_o satan_n to_o buffet_v we_o 7._o we_o 2_o cor._n 1●_n 7._o as_o he_o do_v paul_n if_o we_o be_v too_o fond_a and_o indulgent_a to_o our_o child_n he_o will_v either_o take_v they_o away_o or_o visit_v we_o with_o sorrow_n and_o grief_n of_o heart_n in_o they_o as_o it_o be_v with_o david_n if_o we_o have_v any_o darling_n sin_n as_o samson_n have_v his_o dalilah_n god_n will_v make_v that_o very_a sin_n to_o be_v bitterness_n to_o we_o in_o the_o end_n if_o by_o faith_n in_o christ_n we_o have_v not_o a_o sweet_a taste_n of_o the_o love_n and_o goodness_n of_o god_n to_o we_o if_o god_n see_v we_o secure_v or_o presume_v upon_o our_o own_o strength_n he_o will_v withdraw_v his_o assist_a grace_n and_o suffer_v we_o to_o fall_v into_o many_o temptation_n and_o into_o gross_a sin_n as_o he_o do_v peter_n to_o make_v we_o more_o watchful_a over_o our_o way_n and_o to_o depend_v more_o upon_o he_o thus_o we_o may_v find_v what_o god_n intend_v when_o we_o be_v under_o his_o visitation_n for_o then_o god_n call_v for_o true_a humiliation_n and_o repentance_n for_o that_o very_a sin_n which_o he_o have_v discover_v to_o we_o and_o a_o true_a turn_n from_o it_o unto_o god_n with_o a_o faithful_a endeavour_n to_o better_a obedience_n and_o then_o he_o will_v forgive_v our_o sin_n and_o heal_v our_o disease_n by_o faith_n in_o the_o blood_n of_o christ_n but_o if_o our_o conscience_n do_v clear_v we_o and_o yet_o god_n visitation_n be_v upon_o we_o it_o be_v then_o to_o exercise_v we_o under_o the_o cross_n to_o be_v make_v conformable_a unto_o christ_n our_o head_n in_o his_o suffering_n or_o to_o try_v our_o faith_n our_o patience_n our_o hope_n and_o affiance_n in_o god_n and_o what_o constancy_n we_o have_v to_o continue_v faithful_a to_o the_o end_n though_o god_n shall_v delay_v to_o remove_v the_o cross_n from_o we_o all_o which_o do_v tend_v to_o the_o glory_n of_o god_n and_o to_o our_o own_o good_a 3_o good_a john_n 9_o 3_o the_o man_n in_o the_o gospel_n be_v blind_a from_o his_o birth_n and_o yet_o neither_o he_o
david_n delight_n to_o meditate_v on_o the_o law_n of_o god_n because_o he_o find_v great_a sweetness_n in_o it_o 163._o it_o psal_n 119._o 163._o how_o sweet_a say_v he_o be_v thy_o word_n unto_o my_o taste_n yea_o sweet_a than_o honey_n to_o my_o mouth_n if_o we_o have_v david_n spiritual_a palate_n 13._o palate_n isa_n 58._o 13._o we_o shall_v delight_v in_o the_o lord_n sabbath_n as_o he_o say_v by_o his_o prophet_n we_o shall_v delight_v to_o hear_v his_o word_n to_o come_v to_o his_o holy_a table_n to_o meditate_v on_o his_o law_n and_o to_o practice_v all_o holy_a duty_n to_o the_o honour_n and_o glory_n of_o his_o name_n also_o if_o we_o do_v set_v ourselves_o to_o meditate_v on_o the_o strength_n and_o power_n of_o his_o grace_n we_o shall_v find_v that_o faith_n will_v give_v we_o sufficient_a power_n against_o all_o our_o spiritual_a enemy_n hope_n will_v uphold_v our_o faith_n in_o the_o promise_n of_o god_n when_o it_o be_v weak_a patience_n will_v make_v we_o bear_v our_o affliction_n and_o trial_n with_o a_o willing_a mind_n holy_a zeal_n will_v make_v our_o prayer_n effectual_a to_o prevail_v with_o god_n to_o grant_v what_o we_o desire_v or_o what_o be_v better_o for_o we_o and_o constancy_n will_v make_v we_o continue_v in_o well-doing_n unto_o the_o end_n that_o we_o may_v receive_v that_o recompense_n of_o reward_n which_o god_n of_o his_o infinite_a goodness_n have_v promise_v as_o faith_n be_v the_o mother_n of_o all_o other_o spiritual_a grace_n so_o it_o will_v always_o go_v along_o with_o every_o particular_a grace_n to_o make_v it_o the_o more_o effectual_a and_o powerful_a to_o help_v we_o in_o time_n of_o need_n now_o we_o know_v the_o quickness_n of_o our_o spiritual_a taste_n by_o our_o delight_n in_o holy_a duty_n and_o in_o the_o ordinance_n of_o god_n and_o we_o may_v know_v the_o strength_n of_o grace_n by_o the_o fruit_n and_o effect_n of_o it_o according_a to_o the_o nature_n of_o every_o particular_a grace_n also_o the_o truth_n of_o every_o grace_n that_o be_v in_o we_o will_v appear_v and_o that_o it_o be_v a_o fruit_n of_o faith_n if_o the_o power_n of_o faith_n go_v along_o with_o it_o how_o to_o increase_v faith_n every_o man_n have_v not_o alike_o measure_v of_o faith_n he_o that_o i●_n weak_a in_o faith_n may_v be_v make_v strong_a and_o he_o that_o be_v strong_a in_o faith_n may_v yet_o have_v more_o for_o it_o be_v a_o spiritual_a and_o heavenly_a grace_n which_o will_v grow_v and_o increase_v if_o it_o be_v spiritual_o water_v by_o the_o holy_a ghost_n christ_n do_v find_v a_o great_a faith_n in_o the_o woman_n of_o canaan_n and_o in_o some_o other_o 28._o other_o mat._n 15._o 28._o o_o woman_n say_v he_o to_o she_o great_a be_v thy_o faith_n but_o he_o do_v often_o reprove_v his_o disciple_n for_o the_o weakness_n of_o their_o faith_n and_o thus_o he_o say_v in_o particular_a unto_o peter_n 31_o peter_n mat._n 14._o 31_o o_o thou_o of_o little_a faith_n wherefoer_n do_v thou_o doubt_v peter_n doubt_v make_v he_o ready_a to_o sink_v as_o he_o walk_v upon_o the_o water_n unto_o christ_n and_o it_o do_v discover_v the_o weakness_n of_o his_o faith_n and_o confidence_n in_o christ_n as_o if_o he_o can_v not_o give_v he_o power_n to_o walk_v upon_o the_o water_n as_o he_o do_v this_o be_v the_o condition_n of_o many_o of_o god_n dear_a servant_n that_o when_o they_o see_v peril_n and_o danger_n ready_a to_o fall_v upon_o they_o and_o no_o mean_n either_o to_o escape_v they_o or_o to_o be_v deliver_v from_o they_o then_o fear_n and_o doubt_n will_v rise_v in_o their_o mind_n to_o discover_v the_o weakness_n of_o their_o faith_n and_o to_o make_v they_o distrust_v the_o providence_n of_o god_n to_o doubt_v of_o his_o fatherly_a care_n of_o they_o and_o of_o his_o almighty_a power_n to_o save_v they_o for_o sometime_o their_o faith_n may_v be_v so_o weak_a that_o it_o can_v mount_v above_o their_o humane_a capacity_n &_o they_o can_v see_v the_o wisdom_n and_o power_n of_o god_n to_o be_v far_o above_o the_o reach_n of_o their_o reason_n and_o understanding_n when_o god_n see_v such_o weakness_n in_o our_o faith_n he_o will_v tender_o visit_v we_o and_o will_v give_v we_o hope_v by_o some_o manifest_a sign_n to_o strengthen_v our_o faith_n against_o all_o our_o fear_n and_o doubt_n though_o our_o faith_n be_v weak_a yet_o if_o it_o be_v true_a it_o be_v save_v it_o be_v grow_v and_o it_o be_v last_v faith_n be_v save_v because_o it_o do_v unite_v we_o unto_o christ_n with_o a_o unseparable_a union_n who_o be_v the_o rock_n of_o our_o salvation_n and_o by_o who_o only_o we_o must_v be_v save_v 12._o save_v act._n 4._o 11_o 12._o christ_n be_v that_o stone_n which_o be_v set_v at_o nought_o of_o the_o bvilder_n which_o be_v bec●me_v the_o head_n of_o the_o corner_n neither_o be_v there_o salvation_n in_o any_o other_o for_o there_o be_v none_o other_o name_n under_o heaven_n give_v among_o man_n whereby_o we_o must_v be_v save_v also_o we_o may_v grow_v in_o faith_n first_o 2._o first_o 1_o pet._n 2._o 2._o if_o we_o desire_v the_o sincere_a milk_n of_o the_o word_n as_o new_o bear_v babe_n desire_v the_o milk_n of_o the_o breast_n that_o we_o may_v thereby_o grow_v in_o the_o knowledge_n of_o god_n and_o of_o his_o son_n jesus_n christ_n if_o the_o word_n of_o god_n be_v pure_o preach_v without_o the_o mixture_n of_o erroneous_a doctrine_n it_o be_v the_o seed_n of_o grace_n which_o god_n sow_v in_o our_o heart_n by_o his_o minister_n and_o he_o will_v water_v it_o with_o his_o spirit_n to_o make_v it_o increase_v and_o fructify_v that_o we_o may_v grow_v in_o grace_n until_o we_o come_v to_o a_o full_a stature_n in_o christ_n if_o we_o do_v hear_v i●_n with_o sanctify_a heart_n and_o pure_a affection_n second_o we_o may_v great_o increase_v our_o faith_n in_o christ_n if_o we_o do_v spiritual_o feed_v upon_o his_o body_n and_o blood_n when_o we_o come_v to_o the_o lord_n table_n which_o be_v the_o true_a food_n of_o our_o soul_n and_o the_o heavenly_a nourishment_n of_o that_o spiritual_a life_n which_o we_o have_v in_o christ_n by_o faith_n and_o the_o often_o we_o do_v thus_o feed_v at_o the_o lord_n table_n the_o more_o we_o cherish_v this_o spiritual_a life_n and_o the_o more_o we_o increase_v our_o faith_n and_o make_v all_o other_o save_v grace_n the_o strong_a in_o we_o three_o prayer_n be_v a_o special_a mean_n for_o the_o increase_n of_o our_o faith_n for_o we_o have_v the_o beginning_n of_o faith_n from_o god_n the_o increase_n of_o it_o also_o and_o the_o establishment_n of_o it_o be_v from_o god_n and_o we_o must_v beg_v it_o of_o he_o by_o our_o prayer_n and_o supplication_n or_o else_o we_o can_v obtain_v it_o thus_o say_v the_o apostle_n unto_o christ_n 5._o christ_n lu._n 17._o 5._o lord_n increase_v our_o faith_n also_o thus_o say_v the_o father_n of_o the_o dumb_a child_n unto_o christ_n 24_o christ_n mar._n 9_o 24_o lord_n i_o believe_v help_v thou_o my_o unbelief_n god_n be_v ready_a to_o hear_v the_o prayer_n of_o his_o servant_n but_o special_o when_o they_o make_v such_o petition_n as_o he_o be_v willing_a to_o grant_v which_o be_v such_o as_o do_v make_v most_o for_o his_o own_o glory_n and_o nothing_o can_v advance_v the_o glory_n of_o god_n more_o than_o when_o they_o crave_v the_o increase_n of_o their_o faith_n without_o which_o they_o can_v glorify_v god_n in_o no_o service_n which_o they_o perform_v unto_o he_o for_o without_o faith_n it_o be_v impossible_a to_o please_v god_n and_o so_o consequent_o to_o honour_v he_o in_o any_o holy_a duty_n which_o he_o command_v four_o faith_n will_v grow_v and_o increase_v by_o our_o daily_a meditation_n on_o the_o truth_n of_o god_n word_n how_o faithful_o he_o have_v perform_v all_o his_o promise_n how_o ready_a and_o how_o able_a he_o be_v still_o to_o perform_v they_o if_o we_o can_v rest_v and_o depend_v upon_o they_o by_o faith_n if_o we_o consider_v that_o god_n be_v immutable_a and_o omnipotent_a in_o his_o own_o essence_n that_o he_o be_v truth_n itself_o that_o he_o will_v not_o alter_v whatsoever_o he_o have_v decree_v in_o his_o secret_a counsel_n and_o that_o he_o will_v perform_v all_o that_o he_o have_v promise_v in_o his_o word_n it_o will_v great_o strengthen_v our_o faith_n and_o uphold_v our_o trust_n and_o confidence_n in_o god_n when_o any_o difficulty_n or_o danger_n press_v hard_a upon_o we_o which_o otherwise_o will_v shake_v the_o foundation_n of_o our_o faith_n five_o the_o daily_a experience_n which_o we_o have_v of_o the_o power_n of_o god_n and_o of_o his_o goodness_n to_o we_o in_o all_o condition_n of_o life_n whether_o we_o be_v in_o prosperity_n or_o in_o adversity_n in_o health_n or_o in_o
can_v they_o hate_v any_o thing_n that_o be_v wicked_a and_o sinful_a because_o it_o be_v so_o agreeable_a to_o their_o nature_n and_o they_o have_v no_o grace_n to_o check_v their_o corrupt_a nature_n for_o love_v that_o which_o god_n hate_v and_o have_v forbid_v whereas_o a_o regenerate_a man_n will_v find_v that_o the_o spirit_n of_o grace_n which_o be_v in_o he_o will_v give_v he_o a_o secret_a check_n if_o his_o unregenerate_a part_n do_v take_v pleasure_n and_o delight_n in_o any_o thing_n that_o be_v sinful_a for_o he_o must_v not_o conform_v himself_o to_o the_o fashion_n of_o the_o world_n the_o sense_n of_o faith_n may_v be_v lose_v by_o faith_n in_o christ_n we_o enjoy_v the_o light_n of_o god_n countenance_n and_o his_o assist_a grace_n which_o be_v our_o great_a comfort_n in_o all_o misery_n and_o distress_n and_o so_o long_o as_o we_o do_v enjoy_v that_o we_o be_v sensible_a of_o our_o faith_n and_o we_o feel_v the_o comfort_n of_o it_o but_o when_o god_n do_v hide_v his_o face_n from_o we_o and_o withdraw_v his_o assist_a grace_n it_o be_v the_o great_a trouble_n that_o can_v betide_v we_o it_o take_v away_o the_o comfort_n of_o faith_n from_o our_o soul_n and_o leave_v we_o in_o a_o sad_a and_o sorrowful_a condition_n in_o our_o apprehension_n because_o the_o support_n of_o our_o faith_n be_v cloud_v from_o we_o god_n do_v sometime_o withdraw_v himself_o from_o his_o dear_a servant_n and_o do_v suffer_v they_o to_o loose_v the_o sense_n of_o their_o faith_n for_o a_o time_n to_o make_v they_o prize_v it_o the_o more_o and_o to_o be_v the_o more_o careful_a of_o it_o this_o god_n will_v also_o do_v by_o lay_v his_o rod_n of_o correction_n heavy_a upon_o we_o if_o he_o see_v that_o we_o watch_v not_o careful_o over_o our_o faith_n that_o we_o be_v careless_a in_o the_o use_n and_o exercise_v of_o it_o that_o we_o sleep_v in_o security_n or_o lie_v dead_a in_o our_o sin_n without_o repentance_n or_o if_o we_o abuse_v his_o love_n and_o goodness_n to_o we_o for_o than_o he_o will_v leave_v we_o to_o ourselves_o to_o let_v we_o see_v our_o own_o weakness_n without_o his_o assist_a grace_n upon_o these_o and_o the_o like_a occasion_n the_o devil_n will_v be_v ready_a to_o take_v his_o advantage_n to_o assault_v we_o with_o his_o temptation_n to_o make_v we_o doubt_v of_o the_o love_n and_o favour_n of_o god_n when_o affliction_n press_v sore_o upon_o we_o also_o to_o aggravate_v our_o sin_n or_o else_o to_o hide_v they_o out_o of_o our_o sight_n as_o he_o do_v david_n sin_n of_o adultery_n if_o by_o any_o mean_n he_o can_v to_o keep_v we_o in_o unbelief_n or_o without_o repentance_n that_o we_o may_v not_o recover_v the_o sense_n and_o comfort_n of_o our_o faith_n for_o his_o main_a drift_n be_v at_o last_o to_o drive_v we_o into_o despair_n it_o be_v a_o cunning_a policy_n of_o the_o devil_n and_o full_a of_o danger_n if_o he_o can_v keep_v we_o from_o the_o sight_n and_o sense_n of_o our_o sin_n that_o we_o shall_v not_o confess_v they_o and_o lay_v they_o open_v before_o god_n with_o a_o true_o humble_v &_o penitent_a heart_n that_o so_o by_o ou●_n repentance_n we_o may_v have_v a_o holy_a assurance_n of_o the_o pardon_n of_o they_o for_o then_o will_v our_o faith_n break_v forth_o as_o th●_n sun_n out_o of_o a_o cloud_n to_o warm_v and_o refresh_v our_o soul_n with_o spiritual_a consolation_n for_o we_o can_v lose_v the_o habit_n of_o faith_n though_o the_o sense_n of_o it_o may_v be_v take_v from_o we_o for_o a_o time_n sometime_o god_n himself_o will_v sift_v and_o winnow_v we_o as_o wheat_n to_o cleanse_v we_o from_o our_o chaff_n to_o keep_v we_o from_o spiritual_a pride_n and_o to_o humble_v we_o for_o our_o sin_n thus_o he_o sift_v the_o house_n of_o israel_n as_o he_o say_v by_o his_o prophet_n 9_o prophet_n am●s_fw-la 9_o 9_o for_o lo_o i_o will_v command_v and_o i_o will_v sift_v the_o house_n of_o israel_n among_o the_o nation_n like_v as_o corn_n be_v sift_v in_o a_o five_o yet_o shall_v not_o the_o least_o grain_n fall_v upon_o the_o earth_n though_o god_n do_v sometime_o deal_v thus_o rigorous_o with_o we_o and_o do_v leave_v we_o no_o hope_n to_o support_v our_o faith_n yet_o not_o the_o least_o grain_n of_o his_o corn_n shall_v fall_v upon_o the_o earth_n but_o our_o faith_n shall_v recover_v her_o strength_n again_o it_o be_v only_a sin_n that_o make_v a_o separation_n between_o god_n and_o we_o according_a to_o this_o of_o the_o prophet_n 2._o prophet_n isai_n 59_o 2._o but_o your_o iniquity_n have_v separate_v between_o you_o and_o your_o god_n and_o your_o sin_n have_v hide_v his_o face_n from_o you_o that_o he_o will_v not_o hear_v 5._o hear_v cant._n 5._o it_o be_v sin_n that_o cause_v christ_n withdraw_v himself_o from_o his_o spouse_n because_o she_o will_v not_o open_v to_o he_o when_o he_o knock_v but_o when_o he_o be_v go_v and_o pass_v she_o be_v in_o a_o woeful_a and_o comfortless_a condition_n nothing_o can_v so_o much_o afflict_v we_o as_o the_o loss_n of_o our_o heavenly_a father_n love_n and_o nothing_o can_v shake_v our_o faith_n so_o much_o as_o when_o our_o soul_n be_v perplex_v because_o in_o our_o own_o apprehension_n god_n be_v either_o become_v our_o enemy_n or_o else_o he_o have_v quite_o forsake_v we_o how_o do_v job_n complain_v in_o his_o great_a affliction_n 28._o affliction_n job_n 30._o 27_o 28._o my_o bowel_n boil_v and_o rest_v not_o i_o go_v mourn_v without_o the_o sun_n my_o skin_n be_v black_a upon_o i_o and_o my_o bone_n be_v burn_v with_o heat_n my_o harp_n also_o be_v turn_v to_o mourning_n and_o my_o organ_n into_o the_o voice_n of_o they_o that_o weep_v holy_a david_n faith_n be_v bring_v to_o so_o low_a a_o degree_n by_o the_o sense_n of_o the_o burden_n of_o his_o sin_n and_o by_o the_o apprehension_n of_o the_o displeasure_n of_o god_n for_o it_o that_o he_o cry_v to_o the_o lord_n say_v 23._o say_v psal_n 38._o 4_o 6_o 21_o 23._o forsake_v i_o not_o o_o lord_n o_o my_o god_n be_v not_o far_o from_o i_o make_v haste_n to_o help_v i_o o_o lord_n my_o salvation_n and_o again_o he_o thus_o cry_v unto_o god_n in_o the_o bitterness_n of_o his_o soul_n 143._o soul_n psal_n 143._o hear_v i_o speedy_o o_o lord_n my_o spirit_n fail_v hide_v not_o thy_o face_n from_o i_o lest_o i_o be_v like_a unto_o they_o that_o go_v down_o into_o the_o pit_n 2._o pit_n psal_n 13._o ●_o 2._o how_o long_o will_v thou_o forget_v i_o o_o lord_n for_o ever_o how_o long_o will_v thou_o hide_v thy_o face_n from_o i_o how_o long_o shall_v i_o take_v counsel_n in_o my_o soul_n have_v sorrow_n in_o my_o heart_n daily_o how_o long_o shall_v my_o enemy_n be_v exalt_v over_o i_o sure_o david_n have_v at_o this_o time_n little_a or_o no●_n sense_n of_o faith_n to_o trust_v and_o depend_v upon_o god_n these_o and_o the_o like_a be_v the_o doleful_a complaint_n of_o god_n child_n when_o they_o be_v overwhelm_v with_o sorrow_n or_o feel_v any_o spiritual_a desertion_n in_o so_o much_o as_o they_o can_v receive_v comfort_n until_o the_o holy_a ghost_n who_o be_v the_o true_a comforter_n do_v give_v they_o some_o assurance_n of_o the_o grace_n and_o favour_n of_o god_n wherefore_o it_o be_v evident_a that_o our_o faith_n may_v be_v so_o strong_o assault_v with_o sorrow_n and_o grief_n of_o heart_n that_o we_o be_v not_o able_a to_o hold_v out_o but_o be_v ready_a to_o sink_v under_o the_o pressure_n of_o our_o misery_n because_o it_o will_v take_v away_o the_o sense_n of_o our_o faith_n which_o must_v uphold_v we_o but_o special_o when_o the_o guilt_n of_o sin_n lie_v upon_o the_o conscience_n for_o that_o will_v bring_v we_o to_o such_o a_o apprehension_n of_o a_o spiritual_a desertion_n that_o we_o can_v feel_v no_o comfort_n in_o god_n for_o the_o time_n for_o it_o will_v stop_v the_o current_n of_o all_o true_a consolation_n to_o our_o afflict_a spirit_n which_o we_o can_v have_v but_o by_o faith_n in_o christ_n and_o nothing_o will_v take_v impression_n in_o we_o to_o comfort_v we_o so_o long_o as_o we_o be_v under_o the_o guilt_n of_o sin_n but_o these_o or_o the_o like_a uncomfortable_a complaint_n will_v be_v ready_a to_o be_v utter_v that_o god_n have_v quite_o forsake_v we_o that_o there_o be_v no_o hope_n for_o we_o in_o christ_n and_o we_o can_v believe_v that_o there_o be_v any_o salvation_n for_o we_o because_o our_o sin_n be_v so_o many_o and_o so_o grievous_a if_o we_o be_v thus_o afflict_v and_o perplex_v in_o mind_n that_o fear_n and_o doubt_n of_o salvation_n trouble_v we_o because_o our_o faith_n be_v so_o weak_a that_o we_o can_v discern_v it_o this_o will_v give_v we_o great_a satisfaction_n and_o
whereas_o both_o his_o soul_n and_o his_o body_n ought_v to_o be_v keep_v clean_o and_o undefiled_a that_o the_o holy_a ghost_n may_v delight_v to_o dwell_v therein_o and_o that_o his_o heart_n and_o affection_n may_v be_v always_o fit_a for_o heavenly_a contemplation_n so_o likewise_o if_o his_o chief_a study_n and_o care_n be_v to_o adorn_v his_o profession_n of_o godliness_n only_o with_o a_o specious_a form_n and_o fair_a outside_n of_o purity_n and_o holiness_n and_o do_v not_o faithful_o strive_v to_o show_v the_o power_n of_o it_o in_o his_o life_n and_o conversation_n he_o delude_v his_o own_o soul_n and_o do_v feed_v it_o with_o the_o mere_a shadow_n of_o consolation_n and_o not_o with_o the_o substance_n of_o sound_a comfort_n which_o be_v only_o find_v in_o the_o power_n of_o godliness_n if_o these_o or_o the_o like_o be_v the_o meditation_n of_o our_o heart_n and_o if_o our_o affection_n keep_v at_o so_o far_o a_o distance_n from_o god_n and_o from_o all_o true_a goodness_n that_o we_o have_v scarce_o any_o thought_n tend_v that_o way_n it_o be_v then_o no_o marvel_n if_o we_o miss_v the_o comfort_n which_o our_o soul_n desire_v when_o we_o be_v in_o any_o anguish_n of_o spirit_n or_o under_o the_o buffet_n of_o satan_n and_o it_o be_v no_o wonder_n if_o we_o be_v sad_a and_o cast_v down_o and_o go_v mourn_a all_o the_o day_n long_o when_o the_o time_n be_v dangerous_a and_o full_a of_o trouble_n and_o we_o can_v hear_v nothing_o but_o complain_v in_o our_o street_n for_o hereby_o we_o have_v no_o support_n for_o our_o faith_n no_o anchor_n for_o our_o hope_n and_o no_o sure_a rock_n to_o rest_v upon_o that_o our_o soul_n may_v be_v true_o comfort_v in_o the_o day_n of_o visitation_n well_o may_v our_o spirit_n drop_v when_o we_o be_v peach_v with_o pain_n or_o sickness_n with_o want_n trouble_n or_o affliction_n if_o we_o ●rust_v only_o to_o earthly_a mean_n and_o comfort_n for_o we_o can_v find_v nothing_o in_o they_o but_o vanity_n and_o vexation_n of_o spirit_n which_o will_v soon_o increase_v our_o sorrow_n than_o comfort_n and_o support_v we_o under_o they_o wherefore_o if_o we_o will_v refresh_v our_o soul_n with_o true_a comfort_n when_o they_o be_v press_v with_o any_o sadness_n or_o sorrow_n we_o must_v fetch_v our_o comfort_n from_o above_o our_o delight_n must_v be_v to_o meditate_v on_o heavenly_a thing_n our_o heart_n and_o affection_n must_v be_v take_v off_o from_o these_o thing_n here_o below_o and_o raise_v up_o to_o contemplate_v those_o thing_n which_o concern_v the_o kingdom_n of_o heaven_n christ_n and_o he_o crucify_a must_v be_v the_o subject_n of_o our_o meditation_n if_o we_o will_v have_v any_o spiritual_a consolation_n and_o the_o holy_a ghost_n be_v the_o only_a mean_n to_o convey_v this_o comfort_n to_o our_o heart_n from_o christ_n for_o he_o do_v work_v all_o sanctify_a grace_n in_o we_o which_o be_v as_o so_o many_o pipe_n wherein_o this_o heavenly_a liquor_n do_v swift_o run_v down_o from_o christ_n to_o we_o and_o faith_n do_v fasten_v these_o golden_a pipe_n unto_o christ_n who_o be_v the_o fountain_n of_o all_o true_a consolation_n our_o repentance_n can_v give_v we_o no_o assurance_n of_o the_o pardon_n of_o our_o sin_n unless_o faith_n do_v fasten_v it_o unto_o christ_n our_o hope_n can_v give_v we_o no_o comfort_n in_o the_o promise_v of_o god_n if_o faith_n do_v not_o fasten_v it_o unto_o christ_n our_o patience_n can_v give_v we_o no_o comfort_n in_o our_o affliction_n and_o tribulation_n except_o faith_n do_v fasten_v it_o unto_o christ_n who_o have_v sanctify_v all_o our_o affliction_n by_o his_o own_o suffering_n thus_o faith_n do_v make_v these_o and_o all_o other_o save_v grace_n effectual_a and_o comfortable_a to_o we_o because_o it_o do_v bring_v they_o home_o unto_o christ_n wherefore_o if_o thou_o have_v any_o care_n of_o thy_o soul_n to_o comfort_v it_o when_o it_o be_v sad_a and_o heavy_a to_o feed_v it_o when_o it_o be_v hungry_a to_o refresh_v it_o when_o it_o be_v thirsty_a ruminate_v well_o upon_o these_o thing_n and_o if_o thou_o have_v any_o holy_a desire_n to_o be_v wean_v from_o the_o love_n of_o this_o world_n and_o to_o be_v familiar_o acquaint_v with_o god_n and_o with_o his_o son_n jesus_n christ_n and_o to_o enjoy_v the_o communion_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n to_o direct_v thou_o in_o the_o way_n to_o eternal_a happiness_n thou_o must_v then_o daily_a exercise_n and_o practice_v this_o holy_a and_o religious_a duty_n of_o zealous_a and_o devout_a meditation_n in_o heavenly_a and_o spiritual_a thing_n finis_fw-la